Hush Money - Parker
Hush Money
(Spenser 26)
By
Robert B. Parker
Copyright © 1999
For Joan;
all the day and night time
Contents
Chapter 1
Chapter 2
Chapter 3
Chapter 4
Chapter 5
Chapter 6
Chapter 7
Chapter 8
Chapter 9
Chapter 10
Chapter 11
Chapter 12
Chapter 13
Chapter 14
Chapter 15
Chapter 16
Chapter 17
Chapter 18
Chapter 19
Chapter 20
Chapter 21
Chapter 22
Chapter 23
Chapter 24
Chapter 25
Chapter 26
Chapter 27
Chapter 28
Chapter 29
Chapter 30
Chapter 31
Chapter 32
Chapter 33
Chapter 34
Chapter 35
Chapter 36
Chapter 37
Chapter 38
Chapter 39
Chapter 40
Chapter 41
Chapter 42
Chapter 43
Chapter 44
Chapter 45
Chapter 46
Chapter 47
Chapter 48
Chapter 49
Chapter 50
Chapter 51
Chapter 52
Chapter 53
Chapter 54
Chapter 55
Chapter 56
Chapter 57
Hush Money
(Spenser 26)
By
Robert B. Parker
Copyright © 1999
For Joan;
all the day and night time
Chapter 1
Outside my window, a mixture of rain and snow was settling into
slush on Berkeley Street. I was listening to a spring training game
from Florida between the Sox and the Blue Jays. Joe Castiglione and
Jerry Trupiano were calling the game and struggling bravely to read all
the drop-ins the station had sold. They did as well as anyone could,
but Red Barber and Mel Allen would have had trouble with the number of
commercials these guys had to slip in. The leisurely pace of baseball
had once been made for radio. It allowed the announcers to talk about
baseball in perfect consonance with the rhythm of the game. We listened
not only to hear what happened but because we liked the music of it.
The sound of a late game from the coast, between two teams out of
contention on a Sunday afternoon in August, driving home from the
beach. The crowd noise was faint in the background, the voices of the
play-by-play guys embroidering on a dull game. Now there was little
time for baseball talk. There was barely time for play-by-play. And
much of the music was gone. Still, it was the sound of spring, and it
took some of the chill out of the slush storm.
Just after the fifth inning started, Hawk came into my office with a
smallish man in a short haircut, wearing a dark three-piece suit and a
red and white polka dot bow tie. His skin was blue black and seemed
tight on him. I turned the radio down, but not off.
"Client," Hawk said.
"Ever hopeful," I said.
I recognized the small man. His name was Robinson Nevins. He was a
professor at the university, the author of at least a dozen books, a
frequent guest an television shows, and a nationally known figure in
what the press calls The Black Community. Time magazine had once
referred to him as "the Lion of Academe."
"I'm Robinson Nevins," he said and put his hand out. I leaned
forward and shook it without getting up. "Hawk may be premature in
calling me a client. We need to talk a bit first, among other things we
ought to find out if we can get along."
"Whose tab?" I said to Hawk.
"Guarantee half everything I get," Hawk said.
"That much," I said.
"I can't afford very much," Nevins said.
"Maybe we won't get along," I said.
"I am dependent largely on a university salary and, as I'm sure you know, that is not a handsome sum."
"Depends what sums you're used to," I said. "How about the books?"
"The books are well received, and have influence I hope beyond their
sales. Their sales are modest. I make some money on the lecture
circuit, but far too often I speak because I feel the cause is just
rather than the price is right."
"Don't you hate when that happens," I said.
Nevins smiled, but not as if he thought I was funny.
"What would you like to pay me a modest amount to do?" I said.
"I have been denied tenure," Nevins said.
I stared at him.
"Tenure?" I said.
"Yes. Unjustly."
"And you want me to look into that."
"Yes."
"Tenure," I said.
"Yes."
I was silent. Nevins didn't say anything else. I looked at Hawk.
"You want me to do this?" I said to Hawk.
"Yes."
I was silent again.
"I understand your reaction," Nevins said. "I sound churlish to you.
And you think that there are causes of greater urgency than whether I
get tenure at the university."
I pointed a finger at Nevins.
"Bingo," I said.
"I know, were I you that would be my reaction. But it is not simply
that I am denied tenure and therefore will have to leave. I can find
another job. What is at issue here is that I shouldn't have been denied
tenure. I am more qualified than most members of the tenure committee.
More qualified than many who have received tenure."
"You think it's racial?" I said.
"It would be an easy supposition and one most of us have made
correctly in our lives," Nevins said. "But I am, in fact, not sure that
it is."
"What else?" I said.
"I don't know. I am something of an anomaly for a black man at the university. I am relatively conservative."
"What do you teach?"
"American literature."
"Black perspective?"
"Well, my perspective. I include black writers, but I also include a number of dead white men."
"Daring," I said.
"Do you know that we are turning out English Ph.D.s who have never read Milton?"
"I didn't know that," I said. "You think you were shot down for being insufficiently correct?"
"Possibly," Nevins said. "I don't know. What I know is there was a
smear campaign orchestrated by someone, which I believe cost me tenure."
"You want me to find out who did the smearing?"
"Yes."
I looked at Hawk again. He nodded.
"Wouldn't an attorney be more likely to get you your tenure?"
"I am not fighting this because I didn't get tenure. I'm fighting this because it's wrong."
"If you got the tenure decision reversed, would you accept it?"
Nevins smiled at the question.
"You press a person, don't you," he said.
"I like to know things," I said.
"Like how sincere I am about fighting this because it's wrong."
"That would be good to know," I said.
"If I were offered tenure I would have to assess my options. But even if I accepted it, the process was still wrong."
"What was the thrust of the smear campaign?"
Hawk appeared to be listening to the faintly audible ball game. And
he was. If asked, he could give you the score and recap the last
inning. He would also be able to tell you everything I said or Nevins
said and how we looked when we said it.
"A young man, a graduate student, committed suicide this past
semester. It was alleged to be the result of a sexual relationship with
me."
"What was his name?" I said.
"Prentice Lamont."
"Any truth to it?"
"None."
I nodded.
"I imagine you'd like that laid to rest as well."
"Yes."
"Okay," I said.
"Okay meaning you'll do it?"
"Yep."
Nevins seemed mildly puzzled. "Like that?"
"Yep."
"Aren't you going to ask if I'm gay?"
"Nope."
"Why not?"
"Don't care."
"But," Nevins frowned, "it might be germane."
"If it is, I'll ask," I said.
Nevins opened his mouth and closed it and sat back in his chair.
Then he took a green-covered checkbook out of his inside coat pocket.
"What will you need for a retainer?"
"No need for a retainer," I said.
"Oh, but I insist. I don't want favors."
Hawk was looking out the window at the slush accumulating around the
stylishly booted ankles of the young women leaving the insurance
companies on their way to lunch.
Without turning around he said, "He doing me the favor, Robinson."
Nevins was not slow. He looked once at Hawk, and back at me, and
nodded to himself. He put the green checkbook back inside his coat and
stood.
"Do you need anything else right now?" he said.
"No. I'll poke around at it, see what develops."
"And I'll hear from you?"
"Yes," I said.
"Will you be involved, Hawk?"
Hawk turned from the window and grinned at Nevins.
"Sure," he said. "I'll help him with the hard stuff."
Nevins put out his hand. "I appreciate your taking this," he said, "for whomever you're doing the favor."
I shook it.
"You need a ride anyplace?" he said to Hawk.
Hawk shook his head. Nevins nodded as if to confirm something in his
head, and turned and left. Hawk continued to look out the window. The
ball game had moved quietly into the eighth inning. Outside my window
it was mostly rain now. Hawk turned away from the window and looked at
me without expression.
"Tenure?" I said.
Hawk smiled.
"'Fraid so," he said.
Chapter 2
Susan undertook periodically to make my office more homelike, and
one of her most successful attempts was the relatively recent
introduction of a coffeemaker, coffee canisters, and some
color-coordinated mugs. Milk for the coffee then required a small
refrigerator, in which I could also keep beer in case of an emergency.
The refrigerator, of course, matched the mugs and the canisters and the
sugar bowl and milk pitcher. The coffee filters and flatware were in a
little drawer in the cabinet that I had built under her direction to
hold the refrigerator. Hawk always smiled when he looked at it. Which
he was doing now as he made us some coffee.
"Surprised Susan don't have you color-coordinating your ammunition," Hawk said.
"Well, she does sort of like the .357," I said, "because she likes
how the lead nose of the bullets contrasts with the stainless steel
cylinder."
"Tasteful in small things," Hawk said, "tasteful in all things."
He poured a pot full of water into the coffeemaker and turned the machine on.
"Tell me about Robinson Nevins," I said.
"Father is Bobby Nevins," Hawk said.
"The trainer?"
"Un huh."
Hawk and I both watched the small trickle of coffee that Mr. Coffee was generating very slowly into the pot.
"A watched pot never brews," I said.
"Yeah it will," Hawk said.
"You know Bobby Nevins?" I said.
"Yeah."
"He ever train you?"
"Some," he said.
"That how you know the kid?"
"Un huh."
The pot had filled slowly.
"Tole you it would brew." Hawk said.
"Jeez," I said. "I was sure I was right."
Hawk took it from the machine and poured us two cups of coffee.
"You are a domestic fool," I said when Hawk handed me a cup.
"Ancestors were house slaves," Hawk said. "It's in the genes."
"So how well you know Robinson Nevins?" I said.
"Bobby come closer to bringing me up," Hawk said, "than anyone else."
"So you've known Robinson all your life."
"Yes."
"Well?"
"No, not so much. He was around some."
"But he came to you when he got in trouble," I said.
Hawk shook his head.
"Bobby did," Hawk said.
"He's still alive?"
"Yeah. Eighty-two now, still healthy, still hangs out at the gym looking for young fighters."
"So Robinson was born to him late."
"Yes, only kid. Got divorced when Robinson was pretty small. Wasn't a good divorce. Don't know where Robinson's mother is now."
"Kid close to his father?"
"Bobby loves that kid," Hawk said. "Kid grew up mostly with his
mother. But Bobby paid the bills and saw the kid when he could and when
the kid got to be a professor Bobby was walking around talking like the
kid had just become heavyweight champ. You know, I don't know if Bobby
ever even went to school. I'm not sure how much Bobby can read."
"How about Robinson. He close to Bobby?"
"I think he's a little embarrassed by his father," Hawk said. "He's
close to his mamma and his mamma never had much good to say about
Bobby."
I nodded.
"What do you know about his problems?" I said.
"Just what he told you:"
"What do you think?"
"'Bout the tenure or the suicide or what?"
"Any of the above." I said.
"Don't know shit about tenure," Hawk said. "Kid who died, Prentice
Lamont, was a very gay guy. I pretty sure Robinson knew him. Don't know
if Robinson is gay or not."
"How gay?" I said.
"Activist. Ran a little flier service that outed people."
"How nice," I said. "What's the rumor about him and Robinson?"
"That they had a big affair and Robinson broke it off and the kid killed himself."
"Love unrequited?"
"That's the rumor," Hawk said.
"Bobby Nevins know this rumor?"
"Yeah."
"What's he say?"
"He says fix it." Hawk said. "He wants the kid to get his tenure."
"Bobby got any money?"
Hawk shook his head. He was holding the coffee mug in both hands,
his hips resting against the color-coordinated countertop, the steam
from the coffee rising faintly in front of his face.
"So we're in this for the donut," I said.
Hawk nodded and smiled. When he smiled he looked like a large black
Mona Lisa, if Mona had shaved her head… and had a nineteen-inch
bicep… and a 29-inch waist… and very little conscience.
"How's that work, exactly," I said. "You take on somebody for no money, and I get to share in the profits?"
"You the detective;" Hawk said.
"True."
"Whereas," Hawk said, "I just a simple thug."
"Also true."
"And you my friend."
"Embarrassing, but true."
"So." Hawk spread his hands, holding the coffee cup with his right,
in a gesture of voila "I try to bring you as much business as I can."
"Like this thing."
"Exactly," Hawk said. "And I going to help you with it."
"Swell," I said.
"So what we going to do first?" Hawk said.
"Drink some more coffee," I said.
Hawk nodded. "Tha's a good start," he said. "Then what we going to do, bawse?"
"Get you diction lessons," I said. "I always know when you are
really jerking my chain, because you start sounding like Mantan
Moreland."
"Mantan Moreland?"
"I'm kind of proud of coming up with that one myself," I said. "Where did the Lamont kid do the deed?"
"Had a condo in the South End," Hawk said. "Did it there."
"Okay, that's Boston Homicide. Which means Quirk and Belson."
"So we talk with them first," Hawk said.
"I'll talk with them first," I said. "They'd arrest you."
"Bigots," Hawk said.
Chapter 3
I was in Cambridge with Susan. We were cleaning up the backyard
behind the house on Linnaean Street where she lived and worked. Pearl
the wonder dog was catching some rays on the top step of the back porch
while we worked. Since part of what we were cleaning up was left by
Pearl, it seemed only right that she be there.
I had dug a large hole in the recently thawed earth in one corner of
the yard and into it I was putting shovelfuls of yard waste which
Susan, wearing fingerless leather workout gloves, had raked into a
number of small piles. One of the things that made Susan so interesting
was the fact that she looked like a Jewish princess and worked like a
Bulgarian peasant. As far as I knew she had never been tired. I dumped
a shovelful of waste into the hole and shoveled a little dirt over it.
"Reminds me of my profession," I said.
"Cleaning up after?" Susan said.
"Yeah."
In addition to her workout gloves, Susan had on black tights, a
hip-length yellow jacket, and a black Polo baseball cap. In the spirit
of cleanup she had put on designer work boots, black leather with
silver eyelets, which looked odd, but good, over the tights.
"It's a good reminder," Susan said, "of life's essential messiness."
"Or Pearl's."
"Same thing," Susan said.
Pearl raised her head slightly at the mention of her name, and then
looked slightly annoyed that it was a false alarm. She sighed noisily
as she settled her head back down onto her front paws. The sun was
bright, and the earth had thawed, but in the shady corners against the
fence and under a couple of evergreen shrubs, granular snow lingered
like a dirty secret, and lurking inside the sixty-degree temperature
was an edge of cold to remind us that it was too early for planting.
When we were done, and I had shoveled the dirt over the waste hole
and tamped it down, Susan and I went and sat on the penultimate step,
just below Pearl.
"Are you actually going to investigate that tenure case at the university?" Susan said.
"Yes."
She smiled.
"What," I said.
"The thought of you rampaging about in the university tenure committee," Susan said, "is very engaging."
"Rampaging?" I said. "I can be delicate as a neurosurgeon when it's called for."
"Most university tenure committees call for rampaging, I think."
"I admit to being more comfortable with that approach," I said.
Moved by an impulse understandable only by another dog, Pearl raised
up and began to lap my face. I hunched up and endured it until she
decided I'd had enough and switched to Susan.
"How'd you know about the case?" I said.
She was fending Pearl off, so it took her a while to answer. But
finally, Pearl-free and makeup still mostly intact, Susan said, "Hawk
discussed it with me, before he asked you."
"He did?" I said.
"He wanted my view on whether he was asking more of you than he should," Susan said.
"And you answered?"
"I answered that he had the right to ask you for everything and vice versa."
"What'd he say?"
Susan smiled.
"He agreed," she said.
I nodded.
"Is Hawk's friend gay?" Susan said.
"Don't know," I said.
"But wouldn't raging heterosexuality be a useful defense against the
allegation that the graduate student killed himself as the result of an
affair with Professor Nevins?"
"I guess it would," I said.
"Did you ask him?"
"No."
"I understand why you would not, but isn't it something that needs to be established?"
"Can it be established?" I said. "In my experience it's not always so clear-cut."
Susan leaned her elbows on the top step and pressed her head back
against Pearl's rib cage. She thought about my question for a moment
while I observed the way in which her posture made her chest press sort
of tight against her jacket.
"Are you looking at my boobs?" Susan said.
"I'm a trained investigator," I said. "I notice everything."
"Do you make judgments on what you observe?"
"I try not to, but am sometimes forced to."
"And the boobs?"
"Top drawer," I said. "What about the question?"
"It's a good one." Susan said, "and much more complicated than is generally thought."
"Then I've come to the right place."
"Yes."
Susan smiled at me. It was a smile that could easily have launched a thousand ships.
"Complications 'R' Us."
She rubbed the back of her head on Pearl for a moment.
"Sexuality is not as fixed as is commonly thought, and the
discussion of it has become so political that if you quoted in public
what I'm about to say I'd probably deny I said it."
"Before or after the cock crowed?" I said.
"I didn't know it crowed," Susan said.
"Never mind;" I said. "Talk to me about sexuality."
Susan smiled but didn't go for the obvious remark. Instead, she
said, "I have treated people who experienced themselves as homosexual
at the beginning of therapy and experienced themselves as heterosexual
at the end." Susan was picking her words carefully, even with me. "I
have treated people who experienced themselves as heterosexual at the
start of therapy and experienced themselves as homosexual at the end."
"And if you said that in print?"
"A firestorm of outrage."
"Because you seem to be saying that sexuality can be altered by therapy?"
"I am recounting my experience," Susan said. "Obviously I have
experienced a self-selecting sample: people whose presence in therapy
is probably related to either uncertainty about, or dissatisfaction
with, their sexuality. It is not always the presenting syndrome, and it
is not always what people thought they wanted. Some people come to be
`cured' of their homosexuality, only to embrace it by the end of the
therapy."
I nodded. As she concentrated on what she was saying, Susan had
stopped rubbing Pearl's rib cage with her head, and Pearl leaned over
and nudged Susan with her nose. Susan reached up and patted her.
"And in the therapeutic community that would be unacceptably incorrect?" I said.
"I don't know anywhere, but here, that what I've said wouldn't stir up a ruckus."
"You've never minded a ruckus."
"No," Susan said. "Actually, I sometimes like ruckuses, but this
ruckus would get in the way of my work, and I like my work better even
than a ruckus."
"How about me," I said. "Do you like me better than a ruckus?"
"You are a ruckus," Susan said.
Chapter 4
I talked with Frand Belson in his spiffy new cubicle in the spiffy new police headquarters on Tremont Street in Roxbury.
"Golly," I said when I sat down.
"Yeah," Belson said.
"This will knock crime on its ear, won't it?" I said.
"Right on its ear," Belson said.
He was built like a rake handle, but harder. And, though I knew for
a fact that he shaved twice a day, he always had a blue sheen of beard.
"They issue you a nice new gun when you moved here?"
"I could call informational services," Belson said. "One of the ladies there be happy to tour you around the new facility."
"Maybe later,"' I said. "What do you know about a suicide named Prentice Lamont?"
"Kid from the university?"
"Yeah."
"Did a Brody out the window of his apartment. Ten stories."
"A Brody?"
"Yeah. I heard George Raft say that in an old movie last week," Belson said. "I liked it. I been saving it up."
"Why?"
"Why'd he do a Brody?" Belson grinned. "Left a note on his computer.
It said, I believe, `I can't go on. There's someone who will understand
why."'
"What kind of suicide note is that?" I said.
"What, is there some kind of form note?" Belson said. "Pick it up at the stationery store? Fill in the blanks?"
"Did he sign it?"
"On the computer?"
"Well, did he type his name at the end?"
"Yeah."
"Any thought that maybe he got Brodied?"
"Sure," Belson said. "You know you always think about that, but
there's nothing to suggest it. And when there isn't, we like to close
the case."
"Any more on the cause?"
"We were told that he was despondent over the end of a love affair."
"With whom?"
"That's confidential information," Belson said.
"Who told you?"
"Also confidential," Belson said.
He reached into the left-hand file drawer of his desk and ruffled some folders and took one out and put it on his desk.
"That's why we keep all that information right here in this folder
marked confidential. See right there on the front:
Con-fid-fucking-dential."
He put the blue file folder on his desk, and squared it neatly in the center of the green blotter.
"I'm going down the hall to the can," Belson said. "Be about ten
minutes. I don't want you poking around in this confidential folder on
the Lamont case while I'm gone. I particularly don't want you using
that photocopier beside the water cooler."
"You can count on me, Sergeant."
Belson got up and walked out of the squad room down the hall. I
leaned over the desk and turned the file toward me and opened it. The
report was ten pages long. I picked up the file and walked down to the
copy machine and made copies. Then I went back to Belson's cubicle.
When Belson came back the copies were folded the long way and
stashed in my inside coat pocket, and the file folder was neatly
centered on Belson's blotter. Belson picked the folder up without
comment and put it back in his file drawer.
"Unofficially," I said, "you got any thoughts about this thing?"
"I'm never unofficial," Belson said. "When I'm getting laid, I'm getting laid officially."
"How nice for Lisa," I said.
Belson grinned.
"I don't see anything soft in the case," he said. "The kid was gay,
apparently had a love affair with an older man that went sour, and he
did the, ah, Brody."
"You interview the older man?"
"Yep."
"He admit the affair?"
"Nope. He is a faculty member at the university. I heard he was up for tenure."
"So he'd have some reason to deny it."
"I don't know how they feel on the tenure committee about professors fucking students," Belson said. "You?"
"I'm guessing it's considered improper," I said.
"Maybe," Belson said.
"You ask?" I said.
Belson dropped his voice.
"The deliberations of the tenure committee are confidential;" he said.
"So they wouldn't tell you if sex with a student counted for or against tenure?"
"Some of the people I talked to, sex with anything would count," Belson said.
"But you got no information from the tenure folks."
"No."
"And if you yanked their ivy-covered tuchases down here for a talk?" I said.
"Tuchases?"
"You can always tell when a guy's scoring a Jewess," I said.
"I thought the plural was tuch-i," Belson said.
"Shows you're not scoring a Jewess," I said. "You didn't want to shake them up a little?"
"We had no reason to think that the case was anything but an open-and-shut suicide," Belson said.
He smiled. "Quirk wanted to run them down here just because they
annoyed him," he said. "But they had the university legal counsel
there, and like I say, we had no reason."
"But it would have been kind of fun," I said.
Belson smiled but he didn't comment. Instead he said, "So what's your interest. You think the suicide's bogus?"
"Got no opinion," I said. "I been hired to find out why Robinson Nevins didn't get tenure:"
"Really?" Belson said.
"He says a malicious smear campaign prevented it, including the
allegation that he was the faculty member for whom Lamont did the
Brody."
"See?" Belson said. "I knew you'd like that word. Does he admit it?"
"He denies it."
Belson shrugged.
"Should be easy enough to prove he had a relationship," Belson said.
"Harder to prove that he didn't."
"Yep.' I stood up. "Well, I think your new digs are fabulous:"
"Yeah, me too," Belson said.
"But it's a long way from Berkeley Street. What are you going to do when you need help?"
"You're as close as my nearest phone," Belson said.
"Well, that must be consoling to you," I said.
"Consoling," Belson said.
Chapter 5
At two in the afternoon the temperature was in the eighties, the sun
was bright, and there was only a very soft breeze. A perfect midsummer
day except that it was March 29. I was reading the paper with my feet
up and the window open.
Susan came into my office wearing white shorts and a dark blue sleeveless top. She had Pearl on a leash.
"It's summer," she said. "I want us to go outside and play."
"Don't you have patients?" I said.
"Not this afternoon. It's the afternoon I teach my seminar."
"And?"
"And I canceled my seminar because of the weather."
"I might have clients," I said.
Susan glanced around my office. "Un huh."
"And I might be studying evidence," I said.
She came around the desk and looked over my shoulder.
"Tank McNamara," she said.
"There could be a clue there;" I said. "You don't know."
Susan gave me a look that, had it not been diluted by affection,
would have been withering. I folded the paper carefully and put it down
on my desk.
"So," I said, "what would you like to do?"
"You don't know where there's a field of daffodils in bloom, do you?"
"Susan," I said, "it's March 29:"
"Okay, then let's walk along the river."
"Flexible," I said.
"You bet:"
"I like flexible," I said.
"I know."
We were crossing the footbridge near the Shell when Susan said to
me, "Do you have time between the Robinson Nevins case and Tank
McNamara to do a little something for a friend of mine?"
I said I did.
"KC Roth," Susan said. "Actually that's a nickname. Short for Katherine Carole. She is recently divorced, and being stalked."
"Ex-husband?" I said.
"That's what she thinks, but she's not actually seen him."
"So how does she know she's being stalked?" I said.
We were down on the Esplanade, and Pearl was leading out up the river.
"Phone calls, she answers, silence at the other end," Susan said. "A
flat tire, there's a nail in it; eerie music on her answering machine;
a guy she dated got a threatening letter."
"Anonymously," I said.
"Of course:"
"He keep it?"
"I don't know. She said she hasn't seen him since:"
"Course of true love," I said, "never did run smooth:" P
earl saw a cocker spaniel coming along the Esplanade from the other direction. She growled. The hair on her back rose.
"Not a friendly dog," I said to Susan.
"Friendly to you and me," Susan said.
"All you can ask," I said. "What you've described may legally be stalking, but it falls more into the realm of dirty tricks."
"I know."
"Husband abuse her when he was with her?"
"I asked that," Susan said. "She says he did not:"
"Why'd they divorce?"
"She left him for another man," Susan said.
"And the other man?" I said.
"Didn't work out."
"How come she doesn't think it's the other man doing the stalking?"
"He dumped her," Susan said.
"As soon as she became available?"
"Yes."
"You know his name?"
"No. She won't tell me, says he's a married man."
"Who was happy to sleep with her on the side and said `oh honey if only we were single' and she believed him and got single."
"I don't know what happened," Susan said, "but your scenario is not unheard of."
The spaniel passed by and kept going with its owner. Pearl looked
longingly after it and then stopped growling and let her hair back down
and forged ahead again, keeping the leash taut.
"What's her ex's name?" I said. "Burt-Burton. Burton Roth."
"You know him?"
"He seemed a pleasant man."
"Any kids?"
"One, she's with her father."
"Hmph," I said.
"Hmph?"
"Hmph."
"What's hmph mean?"
"Means now I've got two cases and no fee;" I said.
"Well, in this case there might not exactly be no fee," Susan said.
"I'll get right on it," I said.
Chapter 6
Hawk and I sat on a bench by the swan boat lagoon in the Public
Garden on the first good day of spring. The temperature was 77. The sun
was out. And the swan boats were cranking. We were looking at the notes
I made from Belson's confidential files.
"So," Hawk said when we were through. "Nobody actually claims to
have seen Robinson and the Lamont kid together in any romantic fashion
except these two professors:"
I looked at my photocopy of Belson's report. "Lillian Temple," I said, "and Amir Abdullah."
"Amir," Hawk said.
He was looking at a squirrel who kept skittering closer to us, and
rearing up and not getting anything to eat and looking as outraged as
squirrels get to look.
"You know Amir?" I said.
"Yeah, I do," Hawk said.
"Tell me about him," I said.
A man in an oversized double-breasted suit walked by eating peanuts from a bag.
"Gimme one of your peanuts, please," Hawk said.
The man in the big suit looked flustered and said, "Sure," and held the bag out to Hawk.
Hawk took a peanut out and said, "Thank you." Big Suit smiled
uncomfortably and walked on. Hawk gave the peanut to the squirrel and
then said again, "Amir."
I waited.
"Amir embarrassed as hell he didn't grow up poor. And he embarrassed
as hell he lived where there was white folks and he been working for
the Yankee dollar all his life."
"Most of us do," I said.
"But Amir, he never had no ghetto to drag himself out of, and been
treated decent by all the white folks he met along the way, and he got
a scholarship and then he got another one and he got a nice
middle-class income and now he got a Ph.D. and he can't stand it."
"Poor devil," I said.
"So to make up," Hawk said, "Amir so down even I don't understand him when he talk."
"So he'll be really pleased to help me with this investigation," I said.
"Can't hide the fact that you a blue-eyed devil, but I maybe talk to
him with you," Hawk said. "Give you some, ah, authenticity."
The aggressive squirrel returned and looked at Hawk, sitting up on its hind legs, balancing on its disproportionate tail.
"Give a squirrel a peanut and you feed him for a moment," I said. "But teach him to grow peanuts…"
"You and Amir going to get along so good," Hawk said. "Can't wait to watch."
"How about Ms. Temple," I said, "I don't suppose you know her."
"How I going to know her?" Hawk said.
"Well, for a while you were running a sub-specialization in female professors," I said. "She coulda been one of them."
"Good-looking female professors," Hawk said.
"How do you know Prof. Temple isn't good-looking?"
"Don't," Hawk said. "But the odds are with me."
"Just because she's an academic?" I said.
"Where she live?" Hawk said.
I checked my notes. "Cambridge," I said.
Hawk smiled.
"Well, it doesn't actually prove she's not a looker," I said.
Hawk continued to smile.
"This is bigotry;" I said. "You're generalizing based on profession and residence."
"Yowzah;' Hawk said.
"She might be a beauty," I said.
"What you figure the chances of that are?" Hawk said. I shrugged.
"Slim and none," I said.
Hawk smiled more widely.
Chapter 7
I went to visit KC Roth. She was livin in one unit of of a brick
complex of what used to be called garden apartments, on Route 28 in
Reading. Across the street was a liquor store and a fish place called
The Friendly Flounder. Up the street was what may have been the last
drive-in movie theater in Massachusetts. Next to the garden apartments
was an Exxon gas station and convenience store.
KC's apartment was neat enough, but it had been built for the
builder's profit. The doors were hollow core. The finish work was
minimal, mostly quarter round molding. The floors were plywood, covered
wall to wall with inexpensive tan carpeting which didn't wear well, but
showed the dirt easily. The furniture was fresh from the warehouse at
Chuck's Rent-All, Everything for the Home.
"Well," KC said when I introduced myself, "so that's what you look like:"
"This is it," I said.
"Susan spoke of you a lot, but I never knew what you looked like."
"But from the way she talked, you were picturing Adonis," I said.
"I guess," she said. "Come on in."
KC was wearing a man-tailored white shirt and blue jeans. She was
amazingly good-looking. Thick black hair worn a little too long, large
green eyes, wide mouth, flawless skin.
"You are so nice to come by," she said when we were sitting in her
ugly living room. "How about a nice cup of coffee, or a drink? Do
private eyes drink before lunch? I have some vodka."
"I don't need anything," I said. "Tell me about your problem."
"Oh boy, all business," she said.
She was sitting on the couch with her feet tucked up under her. I
sat across in an uncomfortable barrel-shaped gray plush armchair.
"Well," I said, "not all business."
She smiled brilliantly. There was something about her that seemed to
require flirtation. And when the requirement was filled, it pleased her.
"I'll keep it in mind," she said.
"So how about the harassment?" I said.
"The son of a bitch won't give up," she said. "Can you make him stop?"
"The son of a bitch being whom?"
"Burt, the bastard-I hope you don't mind swearing, I can't help it, I have a terrible mouth."
"I'll be all right," I said. "Burt is your husband?"
"Ex-husband," she said.
"And you know he's doing this?"
"Who else." She leaned forward and her voice became a little girl's. "Could you beat him up for me?"
She had more affect than a Miss America contestant. Her voice went
from contralto to soprano in an easy glissade. Her eyes widened and
narrowed as she spoke. Everything she said, she dramatized. She went
from seductress to child in an exhale. I was willing to bet she'd cry
before I left. I was pretty sure she could cry at will.
"We'll see," I said. "Could anyone else be harassing you?"
She cast her eyes down.
"No," she said softly. "Who else but Burt would have any reason?"
"Tell me about your boyfriend." I said.
She kept her eyes downcast and was silent. It was a pose, but I
didn't think it was an insincere one. In fact I didn't find her
insincere at all. Rather she seemed to have been playing this role,
whatever it was, for so long, that she probably didn't have any idea
when she was sincere and when she wasn't.
"I can't talk about him," she said.
"Why not?" I said.
She raised her head and she was angry, or seemed to be.
"I'm not hiring you to cross-examine me."
"You're not hiring me at all, yet," I said. "This is foreplay. See if we like each other."
"You only work for people you like?"
"I only work for people I want to," I said.
She smiled suddenly. It was quite spectacular.
"You'll want to work for me," she said.
"So what about the boyfriend?"
The smile went away.
"Must you?"
"'Fraid so," I said.
"Is it confidential?"
"Absolutely," I said. "But it's not privileged."
"What do you mean?"
"If you hired me through your attorney," I said, "under certain
circumstances what you told him, and he told me, could be privileged.
As it stands now, I won't tell anyone, but it is not privileged. If it
is information required by the police in the course of an
investigation, or a prosecutor in the course of a trial, then if I'm
asked I have to tell.'
"Police?"
"I'm just trying to be clear," I said. "I don't expect to tell anyone."
"If you told anyone I'd die."
"I'll try to remember that."
We were quiet. She was thinking, and, as she did everything else,
she dramatized thinking. Her eyes narrowed, she got a vertical wrinkle
between her eyebrows. Her lips pursed slightly. I waited. Finally she
leaned back and shifted on the couch so that she could hug her knees
while she talked.
"When we were together," she said, "we could barely breathe. We
couldn't eat. We didn't want to drink. All we wanted to do was be
together and look at each other and make love."
I nodded. I knew the feeling, though love had never made me lose my appetite.
"If only we were both free," she said.
"You're free," I said.
She shook her head sadly and a little condescendingly. "He can't leave his wife."
"Why?"
She shook her head again. Men were so dumb.
"He just can't. She's too dependent on him, and men can't do the hard things. He's such a baby."
"Might have been smart to wait until he left her, before you left your husband," I said.
"I'm not that way," she said. "When I commit, I commit entirely. I give everything."
"Would you have left your husband if you hadn't thought you'd be with him?" I said.
"And what? Live in this gruesome goddamned apartment by myself? Burt and I lived in a castle."
"Do you still see your boyfriend?" I said.
Again the downcast eyes. Her mouth pouting like, a sad child, albeit
a cute one, she traced a small circle on her kneecap with the
forefinger of her right hand.
"No."
"Why not?"
She began to cry. I waited, letting the question hang. She placed
both her hands over her face, being careful of her makeup, and cried
some more. I was pretty sure I was supposed to go and sit on the couch
and put my arm around her, in which case she would turn in and bury her
head on my shoulder and weep as if her heart would break. I stayed
where I was. Finally after waiting as long as was decorous she stopped
crying and lowered her hands, and raised her head so she could look
searchingly into my eyes.
"Men are such babies," she said.
"Maybe not all of them," I said.
"You're not, are you?"
"Except when I don't get my way," I said. "How come you and the BF are not still an item?"
"Somehow, I know this sounds… something… anyway,
somehow when we were both married and sleeping with each other it was,
like even. But then I was divorced and he was the only one that was
cheating. He couldn't stand it."
It did in fact sound… something.
"Sure," I said. "What is his name?"
"Oh, I can't give you his name," she said.
"You can if you wish me to work for you."
"Aren't you already hired, I mean, I've told you all this stuff."
"KC, the surest way to prevent the stalker involves knowing who he
is. Probably is your ex-husband; but it might be your ex-boyfriend, it
might be somebody else. If I'm going to do what you are trying to hire
me to do, I will do it better and quicker if you tell me what I ask."
She bit her lower lip gently and, with her hands laced over her knees, rocked slightly on the couch.
Finally she said, "Louis."
"That's a start," I said.
More lower-lip biting until finally she said, quite tragically, I thought,
"Vincent."
"Louis Vincent," I said.
Her voice softened almost reverentially. "Yes."
"And where does he live?"
"Hingham."
"Does he have a place of business?"
"Why?"
"Doesn't seem discreet to approach him at home," I said.
"Oh God, you can't approach him. He'd never forgive me."
"He'll never know I got it from you," I said.
Again a long and fully acted-out period of silent pondering.
"He's a stockbroker," she said. "Hall, Peary."
"Fifty-three State," I said.
She nodded. I had made her thoroughly miserable.
"Would you feel safer if I had someone outside your house until I, ah, crack the case?"
"I went down to the police department," she said. "The sergeant was so nice, really lovely to me."
"I'll bet he was."
"He says they'll keep an eye on my apartment."
"Have you notified the phone company?"
"No."
She seemed startled, either that she hadn't thought of it, or that I had.
"You should probably do that," I said.
"He never says anything when he calls."
"Most people don't," I said.
If she thought I was amusing she didn't let on.
Chapter 8
Hawk and I went to call on Amir Abdullah in his offices at the
African-American Center at the university. A couple of hard-looking
young guys in black suits and white shirts let us in. They eyed me like
I was a case of the clap.
"Teaching fellows?" I said to Hawk.
Hawk smiled and let his stare rest on the two men.
"Dr. Abdullah," I said. "He's expecting me."
They looked at me some more and at Hawk, who smiled at them engagingly.
Then one of them said, "Down this hall, third door on the left."
Hawk and the two young men kept eye contact until we were past them
and headed down the hall. There was African art on the walls, and some
splashy posters advocating action. Everyone I saw was black.
"I feel like Casper the friendly ghost," I said.
"You a pale one, all right," Hawk said, and we knocked on the half-open door of Abdullah's office.
A voice said, "Come!"
And in we went.
The walls of the office were covered with some sort of pan-African
proletarian art in which magnificent black men were throwing off yokes
of oppression. The white men in the posters were all mean-looking fat
guys. None of the white guys looked like me. None of the magnificent
black men looked like Abdullah. Abdullah was very light-skinned. In the
old days, before tans were unhealthy, Susan, in summer, was darker than
Amir. He was skinny, and quite tall. His hair was short and
militant-looking. He wore round gold glasses and a saffron-colored robe
and sandals. His nails were long and clean and looked manicured. He
wore rings on all four fingers of each hand. A Rolex watch peeked
diffidently out from under the sleeve of his robe. He was smoking a
long curved meerschaum pipe, and the room was rich with the pungency of
his tobacco. A six-foot shield made of ornamented hide stood in the
corner, with two long-bladed spears crossed over it. The bookcases were
full of books. Many names I didn't recognize, a few I did, Frantz
Fanon, Ralph Ellison, Richard Wright.
Abdullah nodded at Hawk.
"Do I know you?" he said to me.
"My name's Spenser," I said. "This is Hawk."
Abdullah looked thoughtfully at Hawk, and nodded.
"S'happenin', bro?"
Hawk didn't say anything. He moved to the left of the door and leaned on the wall. Abdullah looked back at me.
"Don't get many white men in here," Abdullah said.
"Too bad." I said.
"Why?"
"I hate segregation," I said.
"Don't need no smartass honky jivin' me 'bout segregation," Abdullah
said. "Nigger's got to get on with life. He do that best if he keep
Whitey at a distance."
I didn't see anything there to help me with Robinson Nevins' tenure problem so I let it slide.
"You're on the English department tenure committee?" I said.
"Why you axin?"
The strain of talking like a homeboy was palpable in Abdullah, you
could tell he had to rephrase things in his head so he wouldn't sound
like Clarence Thomas. Leaning against the wall, Hawk looked like he was
fighting a yawn.
"You caught me," I said. "Actually I know you're on the tenure
committee of the English department, I guess I was really wondering why
you don't have an office there."
"Ain't my business solvin' yo' problems," Abdullah said.
"Of course not," I said. "You ever see Robinson Nevins in a sexual circumstance with the late Prentice Lamont?"
"You ain't no cop," Abdullah said.
"How can you be sure?"
"You'da hassled me when you came in."
"Private cop," I said.
"And him." Abdullah nodded at Hawk.
"Amir," Hawk said. "You refer to me as `him' again and I will slap your skinny ass around this office like a handball."
Hawk's voice was calm and his diction was better than Tony Blair's. Abdullah flushed. He was so light that it was visible.
"Only way you talk to a brother like that, is if you a damned Tom," Abdullah said.
Without a word Hawk stepped toward Abdullah, who flinched back involuntarily behind his desk.
"Hawk," I said. "It won't get us what we're after."
Standing directly at Abdullah's desk, Hawk kept his eyes on Abdullah.
"No white man calls me nigger," Hawk said quietly, "no black man calls me Tom."
He leaned across the desk and grabbed a handful of Abdullah's
saffron robes. Abdullah screeched for help and several of the hard
young men in dark suits came dashing down the corridor. Hawk slapped
Abdullah across the face forehand and backhand, hard enough to rock his
head back. Abdullah was all skinny arms and legs scrambling to get
away. Hawk slapped him again as the first of the hard young men rushed
into the room. Hawk dropped Abdullah, turned, and flattened the hard
young man with a left hook. Three more crowded through the door. I took
in a deep breath and let it out, and hit one of them on the back of his
neck behind his right ear, and the fight was on. There were four of
them and two of us, but one of us was Hawk and one of us was me, and
they had Abdullah on their side. Having Abdullah on your side was like
subtracting one, so the fight was almost even. The young men were all
aficionados of some sort of Asian fighting technique, at which they
were technically skilled. But they'd used it mostly to frighten college
kids and intimidate professors. By the time the university cops
arrived, the fight was over, we had won, and the militant Professor
Abdullah was trying to crawl out of his office door from behind his
desk, before Hawk got hold of him again.
"He assaulted me," Abdullah shrieked to the first cop through the door. "He assaulted me."
The university cops were followed in pretty close order by a couple
of Boston cops, one of whom I knew. The university cops wanted to
arrest us, but I explained what I was doing there and swore that
Abdullah had started it, and the Boston cop that I knew interceded and
eventually Hawk and I walked, though we were to stay close in case
Abdullah pressed charges.
When we left the university police station we headed for the Harbor
Health Club. Atlantic Avenue was generously dug up and intricately
detoured as the Central Artery project lumbered ahead. I pulled in and
parked in among some heavy equipment near the Harbor Health Club.
After Henry Cimoli had stopped fighting, and before he opened what
at that time he'd called a gym on the waterfront, he'd worked corners
for a while as a cut man. I had a cut under my eye, and a puffy lip and
the knuckles on my left hand were scraped and swollen. Hawk had a black
eye and a cut on his bald scalp that bled a lot. We needed Henry's
repair service.
"Well," I said, "a fine mess you got us into this time, Ollie."
"He hurt my feelings," Hawk said.
He was pressing a folded paper towel against the cut on his head.
"You don't have feelings," I said. "I've heard blacks call you Tom,
and whites call you nigger, and for all you cared they could have been
singing `Louie, Louie."'
"I know."
"And all of a sudden you have a NO-BLACK-MAN-CALLS-ME-TOM fit and we're fighting four martial arts freaks."
"I know. Done good too," he said. "Didn't we."
"We're supposed to," I said. "What was all that wounded pride crap."
Hawk grinned.
"Scrawny fucker annoyed me," Hawk said.
"Well, of course he did," I said.
"Hate phonies," Hawk said.
"Sure," I said. "It's the right thing to do. But if it comes up again, could you hate them on your time?"
"Can't promise nothing," Hawk said.
Chapter 9
So far I was nowhere.
We had annoyed the hell out of Amir Abdullah but hadn't learned a
thing. I had talked with KC Roth and hadn't learned much about that
case, except that KC was a piece of work. I had talked with Belson and
gotten nothing to help me. My next appointment was at the university
with Professor Lillian Temple of the English department tenure
committee, that afternoon at two. Until then I had nothing else to do
except watch the swelling subside in my lip, so I decided to go up to
Reading and talk with the cops about KC Roth. No grass growing under my
feet. Two cases at a time. I thought about having "Master Sleuth" added
to my business cards.
I talked to a beefy red-faced Reading police sergeant named O'Connor in the squad room.
"Yeah, we have a car go by there usually about every hour. It's easy enough, we routinely patrol that stretch anyway."
"You vary the time?" I said.
"We're just sort of shit-kicker cops out here, a course," O'Connor
said, "but we did figure out that if we showed up the same time every
night people might start to work around us."
"Good thinking," I said. "You have any thoughts on the stalker?"
"Like who he is?"
"Un huh."
"Well, the ex-whatever is usually the one you look at, if there is somebody."
"You have any reason to think there might not be a stalker?" I said.
"Well, you've talked to the lady," O'Connor said. "What's your impression?"
"Good-looking," I said.
"Yeah."
"Seems as if she might be sexually forthcoming," I said.
"You bet," O'Connor said.
"You got any information on that?"
"Nope, just instinct."
"Nice combo," I said. "Good-looking and easy."
"The best," O'Connor said, "if there wasn't the next morning to think about."
"That could be grim," I said. "But what's your point?"
"Just that she seems like she ain't wrapped too snug," O'Connor said. "Nothing about her bothered you?"
"She seemed a little contrived."
"Contrived? I heard you was a tough guy. Tough guys don't say contrived."
"Probably don't say sexually forthcoming either," I said.
"A course they don't," O'Connor said.
"Part of my disguise," I said. "So you haven't seen any sign of a stalker."
"No."
"Telephone records?"
"She hadn't talked to the phone company when we talked with her. They weren't keeping track."
"I suggested she do that," I said.
"We did too."
"Damn. She acted like I was smarter than Vanna White when I suggested it."
"Sure."
"So why would she make it up?" I said.
"You've seen broads like her, probably more than I have. Husband
dumps them, they're alone out in the suburbs, and they want men around.
They want to be looked after. So they call the cops a lot. Maybe Mrs.
Roth just took it a step further and hired a guy to look after her."
"Me," I said, "after you broke her heart."
"Could be."
"On the other hand, you look like her, you probably don't have to hire anyone," I said.
"After they get dumped," O'Connor said, "they're pretty crazy. Ego's fucked. Maybe she don't know she's goodlooking."
"She knows," I said.
O'Connor thought about it for a minute.
"Yeah," he said. "She does."
"And there's at least two ex-whatevers," I said.
"Boyfriend?" O'Connor said.
"Yep. Way she told me," I said, "she left her husband for the boyfriend and the boyfriend dumped her."
"Fucking her was one thing," O'Connor said. "Marrying her was another."
"I guess," I said. "You know the other thing that bothers me, her husband's got the kid."
"She got a kid?"
"Yep."
"And the kid's with the husband."
"Yep."
"Doesn't fit with your usual stalker," O'Connor said.
"Custody of the kid?"
"Yeah."
"No it doesn't. But you never know. He could love his kid and still be crazy."
"I got seven," O'Connor said. "The two may go together."
"You going to stay on this for a while?" I said.
"Yep. We'll keep a car checking her, keep the file open. 'Bout all we can do."
"I'll talk to the ex-husband, and the ex-boyfriend," I said. "I learn anything I'll let you know."
"Thanks," O'Connor said. "You learn who it is you might try dealing
with him one to one. We can help her get a restraining order and we can
warn him he's subject to arrest. And sometimes if it's done right he
can get hurt resisting arrest. But it usually works better if you get
his attention before we're involved."
"I'll keep it in mind," I said.
Chapter 10
I got to Lillian Temple's office in the university English
department at two o'clock exactly, hoping to impress her with my
punctuality. It proved an ineffective approach, because she wasn't
there and the office was locked. I leaned on the wall outside her
office until ten minutes past two when she hurried down the hall
carrying a big blue canvas book bag jammed with stuff. She didn't
apologize for being late. She was, after all, a professor, and I was a
gumshoe. Apology would have been unbecoming. At first glance I figured
that Hawk had called it on her appearance, but when we got seated in
her small office and I looked at her a little more, I wasn't so sure.
She was plain, and she was plain in the Cambridge way, in that her
plainness seemed a deliberate affectation. Had she chosen to treat her
appearance differently, she might have been pretty good-looking. She
was in the thirty-five to forty range, tallish, maybe 5'8", brown hair
worn long, no makeup, loose-fitting clothes straight from the J. Crew
catalog. Large round eyeglasses, quite thick, with undistinguished
frames, a mannish white shirt, chino slacks, white ankle socks, and
sandals. She wore no jewelry. No nail polish. Her most forceful
grooming statement was that she seemed clean.
"May I see some identification, please," she said.
I showed her some. She read it carefully. It was a small office on
an interior wall, and it was lined with paperback editions of English
lit classics: The Mill on the Floss, Great Expectations, case books on
English lit classics. Blue exam booklets were stacked in a somewhat
unstable pile on a small table behind her chair. Above her desk was a
framed diploma from Brandeis University indicating that she had earned
a Ph.D. in English language and literature. She wore no perfume, but I
could smell her shampoo-maybe Herbal Essence, and the faint odor of
bath soap-maybe Irish Spring. I could see the neat part line on the top
of her head as she looked down at my credentials.
She looked up finally, and handed me back my identification.
"I've asked the department ombudsman, Professor Maitland, to sit in on this interview," she said.
Ombudsman. Perfect. I looked serious.
"Gee," I said. "Couldn't we just leave the door ajar?"
She suspected I might be kidding her, I think, and she decided that her best course was to look serious too.
"Is Amir Abdullah an English professor?" I said.
She thought about my question and apparently decided that it was not a trap.
"Yes," she said. "African-American literature."
"But he has offices in the Afro-American Center."
"The African-American Center, yes, he prefers to be there."
"And what do you teach?"
"Feminist studies," she said. "Anybody teaching dead white guys I said. "Shakespeare, Melville, guys like that?"
"Guys," she said, "how apt."
I think she was being ironic.
"Apt is my middle name," I said.
She nodded, still serious.
"Traditional courses are offered," she said.
A tall handsome man with a thick moustache walked into the office.
He had on a brown Harris tweed jacket with a black silk pocket square,
a black turtleneck, polished engineer's boots, and pressed jeans.
"Hi, Lil," he said, "sorry I'm late."
He put out his hand to me.
"You must be the detective," he said. "Bass Maitland."
He had a big round voice.
"Spenser," I said.
We shook hands. Maitland threw one leg over the far corner of
Lillian's desk and folded his arms, ready to listen, alert for any
improprieties. I restrained myself. Whenever I got involved in anything
related to a university, I was reminded of how seriously everyone took
everything, particularly themselves, and I had to keep a firm grip on
my impulse to make fun.
"I'm here at Lillian's request," he said. "My role here is strictly to observe."
"Open-shuttered and passive," I said.
He smiled.
"How do you feel," I said to Lillian Temple, "about the allegation
that Robinson Nevins was responsible for the suicide of Prentice
Lamont?"
"What?"
"Do you think Nevins had an affair with Lamont? Do you think that the end of the affair caused Lamont's suicide?"
"I… my God… how would I… ?"
"Wasn't it discussed in the tenure meeting?"
"Yes… but… I can't talk about the tenure meeting."
"Of course," I said, "but such an allegation would certainly have weighed in your decision. How did you vote?"
"I can't tell you that:" She looked shocked.
"You could tell me how you feel about the allegation."
She looked at Maitland. Nothing there. She looked back at me.
"Well," she said.
I waited.
"I feel… " she said, "that… each person has a right to his or her sexuality."
"Un huh."
"But that with such a right there is a commensurate responsibility to be a caring partner in the relationship."
She stopped, pleased with her statement.
"You think Nevins was a caring partner?"
"Not," she spoke very firmly, "if he left that boy to die."
"And you think he did," I said.
"I suspect that he did."
"Why?"
"I have my reasons."
"What are they?"
She shook her head.
"Oh," I said, "those reasons."
"There's no call for sarcasm," she said.
"The hell there isn't," I said.
"I think that's probably enough, Mr. Spenser," Maitland said.
"It's not enough," I said. "But it's all I can stand."
I stood. Maitland still sat half on the desk, looking bemused and
neutral. Lillian Temple sat straight in her swivel chair, both feet
flat together on the floor, her hands folded in her lap, looking
implacable. I got to my feet.
"I'm sorry I can't help you more," she said. "But I do not take my responsibilities lightly."
"You don't take anything lightly," I said.
As I walked past the African-American Center on my way to the
parking lot, I thought that while I had been fiercely bullshitted in
the English department, no one had tried to kick my head off. Which was
progress.
Chapter 11
Burton Roth lived in, an, eight—room white colonial house with
green shutters on a cul-de-sac off Commonwealth Avenue in Newton. I
went to see him in the late afternoon on a Thursday when he said he'd
be home from work a little early. We sat in front of a small clean
fireplace in a small den off his small dining room and talked about his
former wife.
"She always had that flair," he said. "It made her seem maybe more special than she really was."
"You miss her?" I said.
"Yes. I do. But not as much as I first did. And of course I'm really angry with her."
"Because she left."
"Because she took up with another man, and left me for him, and for crissake she wasn't even smart enough to find a good one."
"What would have constituted a good one?"
"One that loved her back. The minute she was free of me he dumped her."
"You'd have felt better about things if she'd married him?"
"And been happy? Yes. This way she wasted our marriage, for nothing, if you see what I mean."
"I do," I said.
He was a well-set-up man, middle sized with sandy hair and square
hands that looked as if he might have worked for a living. On the
mantel over the fireplace was a picture of a young girl. It had the
strong coloration of one of those annual school pictures that kids
take, but the frame expensive.
"Your daughter?" I said.
"Yes. Jennifer. She's eleven."
"How's she handling all this," I said.
"She doesn't understand, but she's got a good temperament. She sees
her mother usually every week. Divorce is hardly a stigma in her
circles, half her friends have divorced parents."
"She's all right?"
"Yes," Roth said, "I think so."
"Where is she now?" I said.
"She has soccer practice until six," Roth said. "I have to pick her up then."
"You dating anyone?" I said.
"I don't mean to be discourteous, but you said you were investigating something about my ex-wife and a stalker."
"Stalking is usually about control or revenge or both. I'm trying to get a sense of whether you are controlling or vengeful."
"My God, you think I might be stalking her?"
"It's a place to start," I said.
Roth was quiet for a time. Then he nodded.
"Yes, of course, who would be the logical suspect?" he said.
"Did you say you were dating?"
"I'm seeing someone," Roth said. "She's fun. We sleep together. I doubt that we'll walk into the sunset."
"Do you think your ex-wife would invent a stalker?"
"Well," he said, "she's pretty crazy these days. So much so that I'm
careful about letting Jennifer spend time there. KC and I had a pretty
good fight about it, and I can't simply keep her away from her mother.
But I always stay home when she's there so she can call me if she needs
to."
"So you think she might?" I said.
"No, I don't really. I think she might go out with her boyfriend,
now former boyfriend, and leave Jennifer alone. Or I think she might
bring her with her when she and the boyfriend went someplace that was
inappropriate for an eleven-year-old girl. She might be crazy that way,
sort of like in junior high school where there was a girl who was boy
crazy. But for all her drama and affect, she is a pretty shrewd woman
in many ways, and I think she loves her daughter, and I don't think
she'd invent a stalker, even to blame me."
"Why would she want to blame you?"
"Because she feels guilty about leaving me, and she feels like a
fool for being in love with a guy who dumps her, and she can't stand
either feeling, so she needs to make it my fault somehow."
"You seeing a shrink?" I said.
"Oh, yeah:" Roth said. "This is much too hard to do alone."
"You know the boyfriend?"
"We've never met."
"Know his name?"
"Just his first name, Louis."
"How do you feel about him?"
"I'd like to kill him."
"Of course you would," I said.
"But I won't."
"No," I said.
"You sound like you understand that."
"Yes," I said.
He looked at his watch.
"I've got to pick up my daughter," he said. "I don't want to discuss
this in front of her. Would you like to schedule another time to talk?"
"Not for the moment," I said. "If I need to, I'll call you."
"I am happy to help with this. I don't want Jennifer's mother to be stalked."
"Do you still love her?" I said.
"Yes," he said. "But less than I used to and in time I won't."
"Good," I said.
Chapter 12
I'd put it off as long as possible. Now I had to talk to Prentice
Lamont's parents. It was always the worst thing I did, talking to the
parents of a dead person. It almost didn't matter how old the deceased
had been, it was the parents that were the hardest. I'd had to do it a
couple years ago for the parents of a girl alleged to have been raped
and killed by a black man. The mother had called me a nigger lover and
ordered me to leave. It often was the mother that was most frenzied. In
the case of the Lamonts, it was worse because they were divorced, and
I'd have to do it twice.
I started with the mother.
"Yes," she said, "Prentice was gay."
"Do you know if Robinson Nevins was his lover?" I said.
"Well," Mrs. Lamont said. "You get right to it, you?"
"There aren't any easy questions here ma'am and they don't get easier if I sneak up on them."
"No," she said. "They don't."
She was a smallish dark-haired lively looking, but sort of worn at
the corners, as if life had been wobbly. We sat in the yellow kitchen
of her apartment on the first floor of a three-decker off Highland Ave
in Somerville.
"So what do you know?" I said. "About Prentice and Robinson Nevins."
She shrugged. The initial horror of her son's death had faded with
the six months that had passed. The sadness was deeper and probably
permanent. But she was able to talk calmly.
"I think Prentice knew we weren't too comfortable about him being gay. He didn't talk much about it in front of us."
"`Us' being you and his father?"
"Yes."
"You're divorced."
"Yes. Five years ago."
And she still talked about us. Things didn't go away from Mrs. Lamont.
"Did he know Robinson Nevins?"
"I don't know."
"Would he have dated a black man?"
"I shouldn't think so, but I wouldn't have thought he'd be gay either."
"Do you think he killed himself?" I said.
"Everyone says he did."
"Do you believe them?"
I pushed too hard. Her eyes began to fill.
"How can I believe he killed himself?" she said. "And how can I believe someone killed him? Prentice…"
"Awful stuff, isn't it," I said.
She nodded. She couldn't speak. The tears were running down her face now.
"I'll find out, Mrs. Lamont, it's all I can offer you. I'll find out and then you'll know."
Still she couldn't speak. Again she nodded her head.
"Would you like me to leave?" I said.
She nodded.
"Are you going to be all right?"
She nodded.
There were more questions. But you had to be a tougher guy than I
was to ask them now. As far as I knew, there wasn't anyone tougher than
I was, so I patted her shoulder uselessly and got up from her kitchen
table and left.
Chapter 13
The old man was a different story.
I met him and his more recent wife for a drink at an athletic club
in the financial district. Lamont and his wife were both in workout
gear. She carried two small racquets. He was bald, medium sized,
muscular, and deeply tanned. She was blonde, medium sized, muscular,
and deeply tanned. She was also about the age that his son must have
been when he did his Brody. Her name was Laura. We sat by a window
looking down at the indoor tennis courts where several games of mixed
doubles were progressing badly.
"Whew," Lamont said after we'd shaken hands. "She's starting to push me."
"Oh, not very hard," Laura said.
"Racquetball?" I said.
"Yeah. You play?"
"No," I said.
"Ought to, it's a great workout."
"Sure," I said. "Do you know Robinson Nevins?" Lamont's eyes narrowed.
"That's the jigaboo was supposed to be involved with my ex-wife's kid."
"Not your kid?"
Lamont shook his head.
"He made his choice," Lamont said.
Laura put her hand on top of his on the table.
"You mean he was gay," I said.
"No need to clean it up with a cute word," Lamont said. "He was a homosexual."
"And his choice was you or homosexuality?"
"I'm an old-fashioned guy," Lamont said. "In my book it's a shameful
and corrupt thing for men to have sex with each other. Makes my damned
skin crawl."
"I can see that," I said. "So you wouldn't know if he did in fact have a sexual relationship with Robinson Nevins."
"No."
"You ever meet Nevins?"
"No."
"How long have you been divorced from Prentice's mother?" I said.
"Six years:"
"When's the last time you saw Prentice."
"When I left the house."
"More than six years?"
"Yes, closer to seven. The divorce took about ten months. Obviously, I wasn't living there while it processed."
"So you hadn't seen your son for what, six, six and a half years before he died?"
"For me," Lamont said, "he died a long time ago."
"Was he an issue in the divorce?"
"Well, if she'd brought him up right, maybe he'd be alive now."
"Maybe," I said. "You have any thoughts on his suicide, any reason
to doubt it, any reason to think it might not have been Nevins who
triggered it?"
"As I say, Mr. Spenser, for me Prentice died a long time ago."
"I wonder if he'd have lasted longer if he had a father."
"Mr. Spenser!" Laura said.
"That's a cheap shot, pal. You got kids?"
"Not exactly," I said.
"Then you don't know shit."
"Probably don't," I said.
I looked at Laura. "I hope he's a better father to you, ma'am," I said.
I didn't want to scramble his teeth. I wasn't even mad. I was sad.
It was all sad. Families breaking up, people dying, mothers grieving.
For what?
I stood and walked away.
For fucking what?
Chapter 14
Belson and two other detectives had talked to thirty-five people
about Prentice Lamont, and twenty-nine of them had been a routine waste
of time. Professors Abdullah and Temple had alleged that Lamont had
been having a love affair with Robinson Nevins. Though not to me. I
wondered why they were so reluctant to speak to me.
Academics, being academics, attached great importance to
abstraction, and there may have been reasons that had to do with
listening long to the music of the spheres, reasons a mind as deeply
pedestrian as mine would not be able to understand. I had already
talked with his parents. Not very informative and not very pleasant
either. Next on the list were Robert Walters and William Ainsworth, who
were listed as close friends. They has been associated with Lamont in
his pamphleteering career.
The pamphlet was published out of Lamont's apartment and despite his
demise it was still appearing. His successors had agreed to meet me
there. When I arrived the door was open.
One of the two men said, "Are you Spenser?"
I said, "Yes."
He said, "Come in. We're Walt and Willie. I'm Walt."
I shook hands.
"You can sit on the bed, if you want," Walt said.
"I'd just as soon stand," I said. "That way I can stroll around while we talk, and look for clues."
It was a bed sitting room with a kitchenette and bath. The floor was
covered with linoleum. The walls were plasterboard painted white. There
were travel posters Scotch taped on the wall; the tape had pulled
loose, and the posters curled off the wall like wilting leaves. The bed
was covered with a pale blue chenille spread. There was a pine kitchen
table in the middle of the room with a kitchen chair in front and a big
important-looking computer on it. There was a color monitor on top of
the hard drive and a laser printer under the table along with a tangle
of lash-up. A recent issue of the publication was piled on the table
beside the computer screen. Several open cans of diet Coke were
scattered around the room. None of them looked recent.
"This the latest newsletter?" I said.
"Yes."
"Mind if I look at it?"
"No," Walt said, "go ahead."
He was a tall trim man with a smallish head. He looked like he
exercised. He had even features and short brown hair brushed back and a
clipped moustache. Willie was much smaller, and wiggly. His blond hair
was worn longish and moussed back over his ears. There was a sort of
heightened intensity to his appearance, and I realized he was wearing
makeup. I picked up one of the newsletters.
"OUTrageous?" I said.
"I made up the name," Willie said. He sounded like Lauren Bacall.
"Nice," I said.
The newsletter was one of those things that, pre-computer, would
have been mimeographed. It was a compendium of gay humor including a
number of lesbian jokes, poetry, gay community news, badly executed
cartoons, all of which were sexual, many of which I didn't get. There
was a section on the back page headed "OUT OUT" in which famous
homosexuals through history were listed and where, as I read through
it, it appeared that covert gay people were revealed.
"You out people," I said.
"You better believe it," Walt said.
"Do that when Prentice was alive?"
"Absolutely," Walt said. "Prentice started it, we're continuing the
newsletter just the way he left it, kind of a memorial to him."
"Are there back issues?"
"Sure," Walt said. "All the way to the beginning."
"Which was?"
"Three, three and half now, years ago. When we all started grad school."
"You been in grad school three and a half years?"
"Un huh," Willie said.
"Lots of people go six, eight, nine years," Walt said. "No hurry."
"Could I see the back files?"
"Certainly," Walt said. "They're in the cellar. You can get them before you go."
"Good," I said.
I was walking around the room. I stopped at the window and looked at it, tapping my thigh with the rolled-up newsletter.
"He went out here," I said.
"Yes," Walt said.
"You see any clues?" Willie said.
"Not yet," I said.
I opened the window. It was swollen and old and warped and a
struggle. I forced it open finally, and looked down. Ten stories. I put
my hands on the windowsill and leaned out. The window was big enough.
It would have been no particular problem to climb out and let myself
go. And I was probably bigger than Prentice had been. I turned away
from the window and looked back at Walt and Willie.
"Prentice a big guy?"
"No," Walt said.
Willie sort of snickered, or giggled, or both.
"Not very butch?" I said.
"Princess?" Willie said and laughed outright, or giggled outright, or both. "That's what we called him."
"Not very butch," Walt said.
"Do you think he jumped?" I said.
Walt said, "No."
Willie shook his head. His hair was so blond I assumed he colored it.
"Then you think he was, ah, defenestrated?" Walt said,
"Yes."
Willie nodded. The nod shook loose some hair above his right ear and he tucked it back in place with a practiced pat.
"You have any idea who?"
Walt said, "No."
Willie shook his head. His hand went automatically to his head to see that the hair hadn't shaken down again.
"Or why?"
"No."
Shake. Pat the hair in place.
"Was he having an affair with Robinson Nevins?"
"Oh, gawd no," Willie said. "That square little prig. Don't be silly."
I looked at Walt.
"No."
"So you know Professor Nevins."
"He's a damned Tom," Willie said.
"Easy for you to say."
"Yeah, well maybe I'm not black but I know about oppression."
"Most of us have," I said.
"Oh, really? Well, who has oppressed you, Mister Straight White Male?"
"Guy shot me last year," I said.
"That's kind of oppressive," Walt said.
"Well, Robinson Nevins is a traitor to his people," Willie said.
"Who are?"
"Every person of color," Willie said.
"Heavy burden." I said. "He out?"
"Out?" Walt and Willie said it at the same time.
"Nevins isn't gay," Walt said. "He hasn't got the soul to be gay."
"He's the straightest priss I ever saw," Willie said. "He hire you?"
"Not exactly," I said.
"Then who are you working for?"
"Friend of his father's," I said. "Why are you so sure that Prentice didn't kill himself?"
"He had no reason to," Walt said. "I saw him the morning before it
happened. He wasn't depressed. He'd, ah, he'd met somebody the night
before and was excited about it."
"A lover?"
"Potentially."
"You know who?"
"No."
"Where?"
"No."
"He out any people who might have resented it?"
"Lot of people who are outed resent it, but it has to be done."
"For the greater good," I said.
"Absolutely," Willie said.
"Anyone that might have been really mad?"
"Not to throw Prentice out a window," Walt said.
"Any to-be-outed that might have wanted to forestall him?"
"Oh, come on," Walt said. "This isn't some cops and robbers movie."
"How'd he find the names of people to out?"
"You go to the gay bars, you hear talk at parties, you talk to your
friends, see some big contributors to gay-type charities, you sort of
nose around, see what you can find out."
"Investigative reporting," I said.
"Exactly."
"You have a file?"
"A file?"
"Of people you suspect that you may out if you can compile enough gossip?"
Willie's eyes went to the desk and flicked away. I'm not sure he was even aware that they'd moved.
"That's not fair," Walt said. "It's more than gossip."
"You have a file?"
"No."
I went to the desk and opened the center drawer.
"Hey," Walt said. "You got no right to be looking in there."
I paid no attention. And neither Walt nor Willie pressed the issue.
I found nothing in the center drawer. The side drawer was locked.
"Open it," I said.
"I have no key," Walt said.
I nodded and went to the window. I leaned on it hard and after a struggle got it closed.
I said to Willie, "Prentice about your size?"
"Un huh."
"Open the window," I said.
"You just closed it."
"Humor me," I said. "Open it."
Willie shrugged expressively and went to the window and pushed. It
didn't move. He strained until his small face was red. The window
didn't move. Walt watched frowning.
"Let me try," he said.
He was bigger and looked like he worked out some. He couldn't budge it either.
"So what's that prove," Willie said. "That you're macho man?"
Walt shook his head.
"Prentice couldn't have opened that window," Walt said.
"So if he jumped he either got someone to open it for him," I said, "or he waited around until it was open."
"My gawd," Willie said, "he really didn't jump."
"Probably not," I said. "You got a key to that drawer?"
"Sure," Walt said.
Chapter 15
The drawer contained a long list of names of people being considered
for outing. I took it with me and back issues of OUTrageous. It wasn't
like Belson to have missed the window. It was probably open when he
arrived and he never tried it. I took the stuff back to my office and
put it on my desk in a neat pile and looked at the pile. Maybe tomorrow.
I pulled the phone over and called Hall, Peary.
"Louis Vincent, please."
I got switched to his secretary who told me that Mr. Vincent was in
a meeting and could he call me back. I said no and hung up. I looked at
the pile of material on my desk. I got up and made coffee and drank
some. I looked at the pile. I finished my coffee and got up and walked
downtown to State Street to see if Louis Vincent was out of his meeting.
He was. But he was on the phone to Tokyo and really couldn't see
anybody today without an appointment. His secretary was maybe
twenty-three, the kind of athletic-looking young woman who walks to
work in her running shoes and sweat socks, carrying her heels in a
Coach bag. I tried out one of my specialty smiles-paternal, yet
seductive, which is usually very effective with athletic young women.
She smiled back. Though she might have been responding to the paternal,
and ignoring the seductive. Takes all kinds.
"I can wait," I said.
"Certainly," she said, "though I really can't encourage you."
"That's okay."
I took out one of my business cards, and wrote on the back of it, KC Roth. I handed it to the secretary.
"If you'll just give him this, perhaps he'll be able to squeeze me in."
"Worth a try, sir," she said and took my card.
As she went into Vincent's office I noticed that she must have done
a lot of work on the StairMaster. I noticed also that she didn't look
at the card. In shape and discreet was a good combination. She was in
there maybe two minutes and when she came out she smiled at me.
"He'll see you in just a moment," she said.
"It's the business card," I said. "It pays to get a quality print job."
She smiled again.
"I'm sure it does," she said.
The office door opened and a man stood in the doorway in full
upwardly mobile regalia. He was a tall man who looked like he'd be good
at racquet sports. He wore a blue striped shirt with a white collar and
a pink bow tie, wide pink suspenders, and the trousers of a dark blue
pinstripe suit. His blond hair was longish and combed straight back
like Pat Riley's, and his skin had the ruddy look of health and maybe
Retin-A.
"Spenser? Come on in."
I went in. He must have been churning a lot of accounts. It was a
corner office, filled with pictures of family and horses and famous
clients, trophies from tennis tournaments, and ribbons from horse
shows. His children looked like the kids you see in cereal commercials.
His wife looked like a model. The jacket of his blue suit hung on a
coat hanger on a coatrack behind the door. There was a pink silk pocket
square showing. He gestured me to a seat in front of his desk. The
diamonds in his heavy gold cuff links glinted in the understated light
from his green shaded desk lamp. He glanced at his watch. A Rolex, how
surprising.
"Now how can I help you?" he said.
"Tell me about KC Roth," I said.
"Why do you think I know anything about a person named KC Roth?"
"She told me you were until recently her boyfriend."
He raised his eyebrows and leaned back a little in his chair, and
clasped his hands behind his head. Beyond him the view stretched into
Boston Harbor and out to the harbor islands. To his left a big color
computer screen flickered with the facts of someone's life savings.
"Did she?" he said.
I nodded ingenuously. He leaned back some more.
"By God, you're a big fella, aren't you," he said.
"I try to be modest about it," I said.
"You play some sports?"
"Used to be a fighter," I said. "I'm not sure it was play."
"Ah, the sweet science," he said.
"Sweet science is what happened to my nose," I said. "Were you KC Roth's boyfriend?"
"What is this in regard to?"
"A criminal case."
"Something happen to her?"
"Nothing permanent," I said.
"Well, I… I wouldn't want anything to happen to her."
"She's fine," I said. "You were her boyfriend?"
He shrugged and grinned. His teeth gleamed. "Well, I can count on your discretion?" he said.
"In my business," I said, "you're discreet or you're not in business."
It wasn't really true. I'd blab his name in a minute if I needed to,
but there was no point in telling him that. And the answer I gave him
sounded like the kind of answer he'd want to believe.
"Yeah, same in my business. You know? You're fucking with people's money, babe, and their hair stands up real stiff."
"So you and KC Roth?"
He grinned, hands still clasped behind his head. He put his feet up on the corner of the desk.
"She could fuck the balls off a brass monkey," he said.
"Good to know."
"Don't misunderstand," he said. "I'm married and plan to stay that way, but, ah, you've seen KC?"
"Un huh."
"So you can see how easy it would be to wander off the reservation one time."
My guess was that he'd been wandering off the reservation since his voice changed.
"Easy," I said.
"Well, I did and I'm not proud of it, but it was a ride."
He winked at me. We knew the score, he and I. Couple of studs. More notches on the weapon than John Wesley Hardin.
"Why'd it end?" I said.
"For crissake she left her husband. She wanted me to marry her."
"Don't you hate when that happens." I said.
"You better believe it. I got three kids, big job, my wife's no
slouch in the sack either, mind you. KC wanted us to go to Key West and
live on the beach."
He laughed. I laughed. Women are so silly. Fortunately there are a lot of them.
"What a ditz," he said. "I told her this isn't about love, KC, this is about fucking. You know what she said? You wanna know?"
"What'd she say?"
"She says, `What's the difference?' You believe that? What's the difference."
He chuckled. I chuckled too. Man of the world.
"She didn't threaten you when you dumped her?" I said.
"With what?"
"Tell your wife?"
"No. She wouldn't. She's not like that. She's a really sappy broad,
but she's not mean. Besides I think she likes the drama. She's all
drama. She likes the drama of a clandestine affair, and she likes the
drama of a sorrowful breakup, and being heartbroken and all that."
Vincent was a little smarter than he seemed. Or I was as dumb as he
was. I too thought that life for KC was a series of dramatic renditions.
"Somebody is stalking her," I said.
"And you're coming to me?"
"Ex-husbands, ex-boyfriends, that's where you usually go," I said.
"Hey pal, I dumped her, you know. I'm not some heartbroken loser
sneaking around in the dark. There's plenty more where she came from.
Try her husband."
"You replace her yet?" I said.
He grinned at me.
"Like Kleenex," he said. "Use once and discard. There's plenty more."
"Your wife?" I said. He shrugged.
"She's fine. House in Weston. Kids in private school. Drives a Range
Rover. Plays golf. Sex is still good. I'm home at least three nights a
week."
"What could be better?" I said.
He nodded enthusiastically. Irony was not his strength.
"It's a pretty good gig," he said. "I gotta admit it. There much money in your line of work?"
"No," I said. "But you meet interesting people."
He stood and put out his hand.
"Nice talking to you."
"You have no thoughts on who might be stalking KC?" I said.
"Knowing KC," he said, "she probably made him up. Have fun."
I nodded. "Fun's what it's all about," I said.
"And the winner dies broke," he said.
Chapter 16
Susan and I were walking back to Linnaean Street from the Charles
Hotel where we had lunched with her friends Chuck and Janet Olson at
Henrietta's Table.
"Your friends are nice," I said.
"Yes, they are."
"As nice as my friends?" I said.
"Like Hawk, say? Or Vinnie Morris?"
"Well, yes."
"Please!" Susan said.
We were on Garden Street walking past the Harvard Police Station. I
decided to move the conversation forward, and told her about my
encounter with Louis Vincent at Hall, Peary.
"Kleenex?" Susan said. "Women are like Kleenex?"
"Un huh. Use and discard. There's plenty more."
I watched her ears closely to see if any steam escaped. she was controlled,
"The man is an absolute fucking pig," she said.
"There's that," I said.
"I want him to be the stalker."
"Because he's a pig?"
"Yes."
"Does he fit the profile?"
Susan glared at me for a moment, before she said, "No."
"He appears to be one of the masters of the universe," I said.
"Good-looking, well married, good job, lots of dough, endless poon tang
on the side. Stalkers are usually losers."
"I know."
"It's usually about control," I said. "Isn't it?"
"Yes."
"I'd guess this guy is in control."
"Not of his libido," Susan said.
"No, maybe not," I said. "On the other hand KC wasn't bopping him under duress."
Susan gave a long sigh.
"No," Susan said, "she wasn't."
"And she didn't dump him, did she?"
Susan thought about that.
"In one sense," she said, "maybe not. She left her husband to marry
him. He said, `I won't marry you.' But who said, `Therefore it's over'?"
I raised both eyebrows. I could raise one eyebrow, like Brian
Donlevy, but I didn't very often, because most people didn't know who
Brian Donlevy was, or what I was doing with my face.
"I don't know," I said. "I'll ask."
Susan looked pleased.
"Maybe he could still be the stalker."
"We can always hope," I said.
We reached Linnaean Street and turned right toward Susan's place.
"How about that thing you're doing for Hawk."
"Well, it is, I believe, turning into a hair ball."
"Oh?"
"I don't think the Lamont kid killed himself."
"Why not?"
I told her how his friends said he was happy and how they were
scornful of the possibility that he was having an affair with Robinson
Nevins and how the window was hard to open and how Lamont was said to
be approximately the size of a dandelion, but not as strong.
"Suicides often appear happy prior to the suicide," Susan said. "They've decided to do it."
"Thus solving all their problems."
"And getting even with whomever they are getting even."
"Which is usually why people do it?"
"Yes," Susan said. "The pathology is often similar, oddly enough, to
the pathology which causes stalking-see what you've made me do is a
kind of back door control. It forces emotion from the object of your
ambivalence."
"I don't think he could have opened the window," I said.
"Maybe it was conveniently open when the time came. Maybe its openness was the presenting moment, so to speak."
"I checked," I said. "It was thirty-six degrees, raining hard, with a strong wind on the day he went out."
Susan smiled at me.
"So much for psychoanalytic hypothesis," she said.
"It's very helpful," I said. "Especially when you asked about who
actually ended KC's affair. But it isn't intended to replace the truth,
is it?"
"No. It's intended to get at it."
We went into Susan's office. Her office and waiting room and what
she called her library (it looked remarkably like a spare room with a
bath to me) were on the first floor. Her quarters, and Pearl's, were on
the second. When Susan opened the door to her living room, Pearl
bounded about giving and receiving wet kisses, torn with her passion to
greet us both at the same time. But, being a dog, she quickly got over
her bifurcating ambivalence and went back and sat on the sofa with her
tongue out and looked at us happily.
Susan got me a beer from her refrigerator and poured herself a
bracing glass of Evian, and we sat down together at her kitchen
counter. Pearl sat on the floor beside us in case we moved into eating.
"So where to now," Susan said.
"One thing is I'll ask KC to go through the breakup, see if he might
have experienced it as her leaving him. Second, I figure that Louis has
fooled around before."
"I think you can bank on it," Susan said.
"So I'm going to see if I can find a few former girlfriends and see
if there's been any stalking. If he's a wacko, KC can't be the only one
he's been a wacko with."
Susan nodded and sipped some Evian. I drank some beer.
"How about the other case?"
"I've got a stack of back issues of the magazine that Lamont published: OUTregeous."
"As in OUT of the closet?"
"Yes. I'll read through that and see if there's a suspect. I'll look
at the plans for future issues, which I also have, and see if there's
any suspects there."
"And if there aren't?"
"Then I'll try to establish whether there was or was not a
relationship between Nevins and Lamont, and if there was why people
didn't know and if there wasn't why people said there was."
"And if that doesn't work?"
"I'll ask you," I said.
"For some psychoanalytic theory?"
"Can't hurt," I said.
"What I think we should do is go take a shower and brush our teeth
and lie on my bed and see what kind of theory we can develop."
"I'm pretty sure I know what will develop," I said.
"Should we shower together?" Susan said.
"If we do, things may develop too soon."
"Good point," Susan said. "I'll go first."
"And Pearl?" I said.
"In the living room with the TV on Fox-loud. She loves to watch Catherine Crier."
"Anyone would," I said.
And Susan disappeared into her bedroom.
Chapter 17
KC Roth poured some white wine into her glass.
"I was about to have lunch, I could make us both something," she said.
"Thank you, no," I said. "Just a couple questions."
"Did you see him?"
"Vincent?"
She smiled as if I had prayed aloud.
"I saw him," I said. "Handsome devil."
"Oh isn't he," she said. "What did he say?"
"He said he didn't stalk you."
"What else."
She was sitting on the pink sofa in the bay window of her beige living room. I was back in the uncomfortable gray chair.
"Nothing of consequence," I said. "Could you run back over the breakup."
Her eyes filled. She sipped some more white wine.
"I don't think I can," she said.
"Well, let me help you focus. Who said that you would no longer sleep together."
"What difference does it make?" she said. "It's over."
There were tears now on her cheeks. She wiped them with the back of her left hand.
"It might make a difference," I said. "I know it's painful, but think back. Who decided that you'd stop making love."
She drank wine again and looked down at her lap and answered me so softly that I couldn't hear her.
"Excuse me?" I said.
"I did," she said. "I told him that if he wouldn't leave his wife then I wouldn't fuck him until he did."
"Negotiating ploy?" I said.
She looked up and her eyes though teary were harder than one would have thought.
"I was desperate," she said.
"But you meant it."
"Well, he had to lose something too," she said. "He couldn't have
everything. I have to leave my beautiful house and my beautiful
daughter…" Now she was not just teary, now she was crying.
"I have to live in this… this cell block. He can't keep on fucking me. He has to give up something."
"Fair's fair," I said.
Struggling with her crying she said, "Could you . . could you come and sit beside me?"
"Sure."
I went and sat on the couch beside her and she leaned over and put
her face against my chest and sobbed. I put an arm around her shoulder
and patted. Uncle Spenser, tough but oh so gentle. After a while she
stopped crying, but she stayed with her face pressed against my chest,
and turned a little so she had snuggled in against me.
"So in fact you broke it off," I said. "Not him."
"All he had to do was leave his wife."
"Which he wouldn't."
"He can't. She's too dependent."
"But he'd have been willing to have you as his girlfriend."
"Yes."
"Being the only one cheating in fact didn't bother him."
She shrugged.
"No," she said. "Sometimes I say things because they sound right."
"Most people do," I said.
She seemed to wriggle a little tighter against me, though I didn't see her move.
"You're very understanding," she said.
"Yep."
"And you always seem so clear."
"Clear," I said.
"Have you ever cheated on Susan?"
"Once. Long time ago."
"Really?"
"Yep."
"She ever cheat on you?"
"That would be for her to answer," I said.
"If she did would you care?"
"Yes."
"Did she care the time you did?"
"Yes."
"How'd she find out?"
"I told her."
"Would she have known if you hadn't told her?"
"Maybe not."
"Why did you tell her?"
"Seemed a good idea at the time," I said.
"If you did again would she care?"
"Yes."
"Would you tell her?"
"I'll decide after I do it again."
"Do you think you'll do it again?" she said.
I couldn't figure out how she had moved so much closer to me, since she had started out leaning on me.
"Day at a time," I said.
My voice sounded a little hoarse. She turned her head slightly on my
chest so she could look up at me. One hand kneaded my left bicep.
"You're awfully strong, aren't you?"
I cleared my throat.
"It's because my heart is pure," I said.
I was still hoarse. I cleared my throat again. Her face was so close to mine that her lips brushed my face when she spoke.
"Really?"
"Sort of pure," I said.
She raised her head a couple of millimeters and kissed me hard on
the mouth. It seemed ungallant to struggle. She pulled her head back.
"When you kiss me put your tongue in my mouth." she said.
Her voice had thickened and grown richer, so that it had acquired
the quality of butterscotch sauce. She kissed me again and opened her
mouth. I kept my tongue to myself. She pressed harder. I thought that
somewhere there must be laughter, as I clung to my chastity. Finally
she pulled her head back and looked at me.
"Don't you want to fuck me?" she said.
"Very respectfully, no."
"My God, why not. I know you're aroused."
"You're very desirable," I said. "And I get aroused at green lights."
"Then, what?"
"I'm not at liberty, so to speak."
"My God, you're Victorian. A Victorian prude."
I disagreed, but arguing about my prudishness didn't seem productive. I shrugged.
"It's because of Susan?"
"Sure," I said.
She had sat up and was no longer leaning against me. This was
progress, it would help my arteries relax. KC poured some more white
wine and drank a swallow.
"What's so great about Susan?"
"The way she wears her hat," I said. "The way she sips her tea."
"Seriously, what's so special about her? I mean I've known her
longer than you have, since we were in college. She's so vain, for
God's sake."
"I'm not so sure it's vanity," I said.
Better to be talking about Susan than about what to do with my tongue.
"Well, what the hell is it, then. Hair, makeup, clothes, exercise, diet, always has to look perfect."
"Well," I said, "maybe she thinks of her appearance as a work of art in progress, sort of like painting or sculpture."
"And she's so pretentious, for God's sake. She's always like lecturing."
"And maybe not everyone gets it," I said.
"Gets what?"
"Susan's pretty good at irony."
"What's that mean?"
"She understands herself well enough to make fun of herself," I said.
"You'll defend her no matter what I say, won't you?"
"Yep."
KC got up and walked to the other side of the room and stared out the window at the blacktop parking lot behind her building.
"Do you think Louis is the stalker?"
"Could be."
"But why would he?"
"Maybe he feels like he's lost control of you."
"But we love each other."
"Not enough for him to leave his wife," I said. "Not enough for you to sleep with him if he doesn't."
"Of course I won't. Why would I give him what he wants when he won't give me what I want."
"I can't think of a reason," I said.
"Well, I don't believe it. I don't believe a thing you've said about him."
"Just a hypothesis."
"Why isn't my ex a hypothesis?"
"Doesn't seem the type," I said.
"How the hell would you know what type he is?"
"I talked with him."
"And you think that's enough?"
"No, but it's all I've got. I'm not a court of law here. I am allowed to go on my reactions, my guesses, my sense of people."
"And you sense that Louis would stalk me and Burt would not?"
"Yes," I said.
"Well, I don't have to listen to you. And I won't."
"Reading cops still checking on you," I said.
"Like you care."
I stood. "Time to go," I said.
"Past time."
I walked toward the door. She turned slowly to watch me, her hands on her hips, her face flushed.
"I would have shown you things that tight-assed Susie Hirsch doesn't even know."
I smiled at her. "But would you have respected me in the morning?" I said.
"Prude."
"Prudery is its own reward," I said, and left with my head up. I did
not run. I walked out the door and toward my car in a perfectly
dignified manner.
Chapter 18
When I came into my office in the morning there was a message on my
answering machine from Prentice Lamont's mother. It had come in late
yesterday while I was in KC Roth's condo preserving my virtue.
"Mr. Spenser, Patsy Lamont. I need to see you, please."
I had some coffee to drink and some donuts to eat and the
tiresome-looking pile of homosexuals-to-be-outed list still to read.
Reading it while eating donuts and drinking coffee would make it go
better.
I called Patsy Lamont.
"Spenser," I said. "When would you like to see me?"
She sounded like I'd awakened her, but she rallied.
"Could you come by around noon?" she said. "I have my support group in the morning."
"Anything I can do on the phone?" I said.
"No, I, I need to talk with you."
"Be there at noon," I said and hung up.
I took a bite of donut, a sip of coffee, and picked up the Out list.
There were some surprises on it, though none of them seemed like a
clue, and by 11:30, with the coffee a dim memory, and the donuts a
faint aftertaste, I put the list down and headed for my car. All I
could think of was to talk with each of the people on the list. This,
coupled with trying to find out who else Louis Vincent had been
hustling, meant a great deal of boring legwork that made me think about
becoming a poet.
I parked illegally near Mrs. Lamont's three decker and rang her
doorbell at noon. Prudish but punctual. We sat at her thick wooden
kitchen table with the high sun shining in through the upper panes of
the window over her sink. There was a big white envelope on the table
in front of her. It had been mailed and opened.
"Would you like some coffee?" she said. "I have instant."
"No thank you."
"Tea?"
"No ma'am."
"I'm going to have some tea."
"By all means," I said.
I sat at the table with my hands folded on it, like an attentive
grammar school student, and looked around. It was a kitchen out of my
early childhood: painted yellow, with luan mahogany plywood wainscoting
all around, yellow, gray, and maroon stone patterned linoleum on the
floor, white porcelain sink, an off-white gas stove with storage
drawers along one side. The kitchen table top was covered with the same
linoleum that covered the floor. The hot water kettle whistled that it
was ready, and Mrs. Larnont poured hot water into a bright flowered
teacup. She plopped in a tea bag and brought the teacup in a matching
saucer to the table. She took a spoon from a drawer in the table and
prodded the tea bag gently until the tea got to be the right shade of
amber. Then she took the tea bag out and put it in the saucer. She
picked up the teacup with both hands and held it under her nose for a
moment as if she were inhaling the vapors. Then she sipped and put the
cup back down.
"I barely know you," she said.
"That's true," I said.
"And yet here you are," she said.
"Here I am."
"My husband took care of all the financial things," she said.
I nodded.
"When he left I didn't even know how to write a check."
I nodded again. You find something that works, you go with it.
"I don't know any lawyers or people like that."
I nodded. She had some tea. I waited.
"So when this stuff came in the mail, I didn't know who to ask."
"This stuff?" I said and patted the big envelope.
"Yes. Now that he's… gone, his mail comes to me."
I knew who he was. I knew that parents tended to think of their
children as he, or she, or they, as if there were no one else that
could be so designated. And I knew that when something bad happened to
a child the tendency exacerbated.
"Would you like me to look at it?" I said.
"Yes, please."
She handed me the envelope. It was a financial statement from Hall,
Peary. Home of that great romantic, Louis Vincent. Boston isn't all
that big, sooner or later cases tended to overlap. The statement showed
that Prentice Lamont and Patsy Lamont JTWROS had $256,248.29 in a
management account consisting mostly of common stocks and options. I
copied down the name and phone number of his financial consultant which
was listed at the top. It wasn't Louis Vincent. It was someone named
Maxwell Morgan.
"What is it?" she said.
"It's a financial statement from a stockbroker."
"What does it say?"
"It says that your son and you had two hundred fifty-six thousand
and change invested in stocks and bonds, which the stockbroker managed
for him."
"You mean Prentice's money?"
"Yes. Now yours I assume."
"Mine?"
"Yes, see this, JTWROS? Joint tenants with right of survivorship. It
means that now that your son has passed away the money is yours."
"Mine?"
"Yes."
"Where would Prentice get two hundred thousand dollars?"
"I was hoping you'd know," I said. "His father?"
She snorted, in a gentle ladylike way.
"You've talked to his father."
"Yes. I withdraw the question."
I picked up the envelope. It was addressed to both Prentice and Patsy at Patsy's address.
"Envelopes like this come here before?"
"Yes. Every month. I just gave them to him."
"He wasn't living here."
"No. He lived in that apartment where they had the newspaper."
But he had the statements sent here.
"What should I do?" Mrs. Lamont said.
"With the money?"
"Yes."
"Do you need it?"
"Need it?"
"It's yours," I said.
"Are you sure?"
"Yes."
"How do I get it?"
"Somewhere in Prentice's effects there's probably a checkbook."
"He showed me one once."
"What'd he say?"
"I don't recall exactly, just something about see this checkbook."
"If you had it you could simply write a check on account when you needed to."
"Maybe in his room," she said. "It's not the room he grew up in. We
lived in Hingham until the divorce. It's just the room he used when he
came to see me. A child always needs to have a home to come to."
"Yes," I said.
"I haven't been in his room since the funeral."
"Would you like me to look?"
She was silent, looking into her teacup, then she nodded.
"Yes," she said very softly.
It was a small room behind the kitchen. Single bed with a maple
frame and flame shapes carved on the tops of the bedposts. A braided
rag rug, mostly blue and red, that was a little raveled at one edge. A
patchwork quilt, again mostly blue and red, covering the bed, some
jeans and sport shirts and a pair of dark brown penny loafers in the
closet. A maple bureau with an assortment of school pictures on top of
it. Prentice Lamont when he was in first grade, looking stiff and a
little scared in a neat plaid shirt, and in most of the grades between.
His high school graduation picture dominated the collection, a
round-faced kid with dark hair and pink cheeks, wearing a mortarboard.
His bachelor's degree was framed on the wall, but no college graduation
picture. In the top drawer of the bureau was a checkbook and a box of
spare checks and deposit slips and mailing envelopes. Apparently
Prentice did his financial planning in Somerville.
There was nothing else of interest in the room. It wasn't a room
that spoke of him, of his sexuality, his fears, why he was dead, or who
killed him. It was an anonymous child's room, maintained by a mother,
for an adult to come and sleep in once in a while. I brought the
checkbook and the spare checks out to his mother.
Chapter 19
Hawk and I were sparring in the boxing room at the Harbor Health
Club. There was no ring, just an open space to the left of the body bag
and speed bag and the skitter bag that was so hard to nail that even
Hawk missed it now and then. We had on the big fat pillow gloves that
even if you got nailed wouldn't hurt much, and we were floating like a
couple of butterflies and pretending to sting like a couple of bees.
"So, Lamont is outing people," Hawk said.
I put a left jab out and Hawk picked it off with his right glove.
"Un huh."
I turned my head, and rolled back from a right cross and felt the big soft glove just brush past my cheekbone.
"And he got two hundred fifty thousand in his money management account at Hall, Peary."
I tried a flurry of body punches which Hawk took mostly on his elbows, and then closed up on me and clinched.
"Un huh."
We broke and moved in an easy circle around the ring looking for daylight.
"I not a thinker like you," Hawk said, "being the pro-duct of a racist ed-u-cational system."
"This is certainly true," I said and threw a lightning fast left
hook which Hawk seemed to catch quite easily on his hunched right
shoulder. He countered with a whistling right uppercut which I managed
to avoid.
"But if I a thinker," Hawk said. "I be thinking that OUT plus money could equal blackmail."
"That's amazing," I said as I circled him clockwise, bouncing on my
toes to demonstrate that I wasn't getting tired. "And you're not even a
licensed investigator."
Hawk shuffled in suddenly and threw a short flurry of punches which
I bobbed and weaved and rolled and ducked and mostly avoided. I
countered with an overhead right which Hawk pulled back from. Hawk
stepped back and leaned against the wall of the gym.
"You think we go fifteen and not get a winner?" Hawk said.
"Fifteen for real," I said, "maybe we'd be trying harder."
"Have to."
We walked out of the boxing room and down to Henry Cimoli's office.
"How long'd you go," Henry said.
He was in his trainer's costume, a very white tee shirt and white
satin sweatpants. His small upper body looked like it might pop the
weave in the tee shirt.
"Half hour," I said.
"You need mouth to mouth?"
"Not from you," Hawk said and put his hands out for Henry to unlace
the gloves. When we were both glove free, Henry nodded at the small
refrigerator next to his desk.
"Trick I learned when I was fighting," he said. "Keep some good sports drinks handy so as to replenish the electrolytes."
I opened the refrigerator and took out two bottles of New Amsterdam Black and Tan.
"You can use my office, you want," Henry said. "I got to go suck around the customers."
"You too teeny to run a health club," Hawk said. "The same people
come here year after year, since the place stopped being a dump. Nobody
lose weight. Nobody put on muscle. Everybody look just like they did
when they signed up to get in shape."
"One difference," Henry said. "They are a little poorer, and I am a lot richer."
Hawk grinned at him.
"Maybe you ain't too teeny after all."
Henry jumped up and kicked the palms of his outstretched hands with
his toes, and landed easily and laughed and went out to the gym floor.
"Agile too," Hawk said.
"Easy to be agile if you're the size of a salt shaker."
"Almost beat Willie Pep once," Hawk said.
"I know."
Hawk sat in Henry's chair and took a pull at the beer. He swiveled
the chair so he could look out Henry's picture window at the harbor.
"You getting anywhere on Susan's friend's stalker."
"I got a guy I like for it."
"Time for me to go reason with him?" Hawk said.
"No. I'm not sure he's the one."
Hawk shrugged. He put his feet up on the windowsill and crossed his ankles and took another drink of beer.
"Thing I like about Henry," Hawk said. "He keep the sports drinks cold."
"That's a good thing."
We were quiet for a moment. One of the big harbor cruise boats eased
past, all glass and sleek lines, on a luncheon cruise to nowhere. It
loomed close to the window. We could see the people, mostly couples,
seated at tables in the main cabin.
"You think Robinson connected to the Lamont kid?" Hawk said.
"I don't know yet. I hope not. That thing shows every sign of being a mess."
"See any connection with Abdullah?"
"Nothing you don't know," I said.
The cruise ship had moved out of sight. For a moment the only
activity out the window was the wake of the cruise boat and the gulls
that swooped ever hopeful behind it. I finished my beer and Hawk
reached over without taking his feet down and got two more out of the
refrigerator.
"What's going on with Abdullah?" I said.
Hawk didn't move. He continued to look out the window at the harbor. He raised the bottle and took another drink of beer.
"You're completely pragmatic," I said. "You don't care what people
call you. You don't care if people are annoying. You don't care about
color. You don't get mad, you don't get sentimental. You don't hold a
grudge. You don't get scared, or confused, or boisterous, or jealous.
You don't hate anyone. You don't love anyone. You don't mind violence.
You don't enjoy violence."
"Kind of like Susan," Hawk said.
"Okay," I said. "You don't love many. My point stands. You taking a
run at Amir Abdullah because he called you a Tom is bullshit. You don't
care about insults any more than you care about fruit flies."
Hawk drank the rest of the beer in his bottle and put the bottle on
the desk. He dropped his feet off the windowsill, swiveled around, and
got another two bottles out of the refrigerator. He put one on the desk
in front of me, opened the other, and leaned back in Henry's chair
facing me. His face had no expression. His black eyes were bottomless.
I waited. I was barely into my second beer.
"I got you into this," Hawk said.
I nodded. One of the water taxis from Logan Airport plodded past.
Few couples in this one. Mostly men, a scattering of women. Both
genders dressed for business, carrying briefcases, paying no attention
to each other, too busy to flirt, or too tired, or it might mess their
hair.
"I was about fifteen," Hawk said, "making a living as a mugger. Used
to go to the Joe Louis gym to use the bathroom. Joe Louis didn't have
anything to do with it, of course, but half the black boxing clubs in
the country were using his name. Got so I'd hang around in there, watch
the fighters. Sometimes when there wasn't much going on they'd let me
hit the bag. I figured if I was going to make a living beating people
up, I might as well practice. I got good at it. Make the body bag jump,
make the speed bag dance. Had trouble in those days with that little
jeeter bag, but even some of the fighters had trouble with that."
"I still have troubles with that," I said.
Hawk smiled.
"Naw, you don't," he said. "Neither one of us do. So one day Bobby
Nevins comes in, sees me working on the bag, asks me have I got a
manager? I say no. He says, `You ever fight in the ring?' I say no. So
he says, `You want to try it?' And since I been making a living beating
people up I figure why not? So I say sure, and he puts me in with some
tall skinny Puerto Rican guy probably don't weigh more than a hundred
fifty pounds. And I'm thinking how smart Bobby is to start me off easy,
so I lace 'em on and get in the ring and of course the guy cleans my
clock."
"Knowing how helps," I said.
"It do. But Bobby sees something he likes and he takes me on, and
when he finds out I'm not living anywhere special he takes me in, and I
learn to fight and maybe along the way to use a fork when I'm eating.
Stuff like that. Robinson was a little kid then, maybe twelve, and his
mother kept him away from the fighters, so I see him, but I don't know
him much. So one day Bobby say to me, `I think you need to get a little
schooling.' And I say why, I gonna reason with people in the ring? And
Bobby say, `You should take an English class and a math class.' And
pretty soon I'm in night school at the community college. And my
English professor is a brother name of Dennis Crawford. Young guy maybe
four, five years older than me. He talk like Walter Cronkite, and he
wear horn-rimmed glasses and tweed jackets and English brogues and all
around, he about the smartest brother I ever saw. I never saw a black
man with an education. Bobby's wife was a schoolteacher, but she didn't
spend no time with the fighters so I didn't really know her either, and
besides she was a woman. So we reading Othello and we reading Invisible
Man and we discussing them and Professor Crawford, he smarter than the
white boys and even the white girls in the class. Never saw nothing
like it."
Hawk tilted the beer bottle back and drank some more and held it up
to the light and looked to see how much was left. I stayed quiet. Then
he took another swallow and put the bottle down.
"'Course I never say nothing in class. Those days I only know six
words if you count mother fucker as two. But I listened. One day after
class Professor Crawford asks me to come to his office."
Hawk had turned so he was staring out at the now empty harbor where the ocean moved in its directionless way.
"When I get there he say he notice me in class and don't think I'm
your usual night school student and he ask what I do. And I tell him
I'm a fighter and he says well tell me a little about that, so I do."
I was as still as I was able to be and still breathe. The air in the
room seemed to have gotten suddenly very dense. I wanted to drink some
beer but I didn't want to move. Hawk swung slowly around and let his
feet rest on the floor.
"And while I'm telling him, he hit on me," Hawk said with no discernible change in his voice.
"Shit," I said.
"I got up and left. Never went back to his class again. Never told nobody about it."
"Professor Crawford get caught up in the black power movement?"
"Yeah."
"He change his name?"
"Yeah."
"Amir Abdullah?"
"Yeah."
Chapter 20
Susan and I had been having brunch every Sunday at her home. She'd
set the dining room table with flowers in a vase and I'd cook
something, and when it was ready, we'd sit in her dining room and eat.
Pearl normally joined us. Today I had done huevos rancheros with mild
green chilies. We were talking about Hawk.
"Was it because the professor was gay?" Susan said.
"I don't think so," I said.
"Would he have reacted the same way if it had been a female professor that hit on him?"
"No. Femaleness didn't matter the way maleness mattered."
"It was because he was treating Hawk as a means not an end," Susan said.
"Avoiding the obvious wise remark about end…" I said.
"Thank you," Susan said.
"… I think so."
"The most august and accomplished black man Hawk had ever met and he-what would the street term be-dissed him?"
"Something like that," I said.
"And years later he turns up. Do you think he remembered Hawk?"
"I don't know. Hawk's probably not the only kid he ever hit on. Still most people meet Hawk remember him."
"Didn't he go out of his way to be insulting?" Susan said.
"Maybe. I think by nature he's an annoying sonovabitch."
"Predators often resent rejection," Susan said.
I shrugged. Pearl was resting her head on my thigh. I cut off a
small bite of the linguiqa I had substituted for chorizo, and gave it
to her.
"You're just confirming her in her bad habits," Susan said.
"Yes," I said, "I am:"
Susan stirred some Equal into her coffee. Pearl heard the spoon
click in the cup and left me for a more promising prospect. Susan gave
her a small forkful of black beans.
"Talk about bad habits," I said.
"At least I'm teaching her to use flatware," Susan said.
"Important for a dog," I said.
Susan smiled. She put her spoon down and put her chin on her folded hands and looked at me.
"It's very odd," she said. "It's like suddenly discovering Beowulf's childhood."
"I met him about the same time this happened," I said.
"When you were both fighting at the Arena:"
"Yes."
"You think he's all right?"
"Hawk?"
"Yes."
"Few people are more all right than Hawk," I said.
"He's very contained."
"Very."
"And he pays a high price for it," Susan said.
"You think?"
"The distance between containment and isolation is not so great," Susan said.
"He's got a lot of women," I said.
"But not one," Susan said.
"I guess that's right," I said.
"You ought to know."
"You think I'm too contained?" I said.
"You have me," Susan said.
"A claim no one else can currently make," I said.
"It makes your containment more flexible," Susan said.
"More fun too," I said.
"You're just saying that because I balled your ears off an hour ago."
"Not just that," I said.
Susan ate some of her food.
"This is very good," she said.
"You deserve it," I said.
"Because I'm deeply insightful?"
"Sure," I said. "And you also balled my ears off about an hour ago."
Chapter 21
I had a couple of ways to go in chasing down Louis Vincent. I could
talk to the cops in Hingham where he lived. Or I could talk to people
at Hall, Peary where he worked. Hall, Peary was closer, so I called
over there and talked with Phyllis Wasserman, the human resources
director. She told me that of the five complaints of sexual harassment
they'd had in the past year, one involved stalking and remained
unsolved. Two others, she said, were much closer to angry disagreement
than they were to sexual harassment, and the last two had been resolved
by firing the harasser. I asked who was involved in the stalking, and
she said she was not at liberty. I asked if she would give my name to
the victim and ask her to call me. She said she would.
While I was waiting hopefully, I called the Hingham police. It took
a little while but I got to the chief, whose name was Roach. They'd had
two stalking complaints in the last year. In one case the stalker had
been in violation of a court order, and they had been able to arrest
him and urge him to change his ways.
"You give me the name?" I said.
"Not without a good reason," Roach said.
"Well, was the stalker a Hingham resident?"
"No."
"Was he a stockbroker?"
"Hell no."
"Okay," I said. "What about the other one?"
"Never caught the guy."
"But the stalking stopped?"
"Yep. My guess is he found someone else."
"That's my guess too," I said. "Can you give me the name of the victim?"
"Nope."
"Can you give her my name and number, and remind her that I'm trying
to help some other woman who's going through what she went through?"
"I can do that," Roach said.
"Thanks."
I hung up and sat. The phone was quiet. I swiveled my chair so I
could look out my window at the corner of Berkeley and Boylston. I
opened the window so I could listen to the traffic. People were already
in summer clothes although we were only about half done with May. There
was a Ford Explorer waiting for the light on Boylston Street. The
sunroof was open and there was heavy metal music thundering up. As I
watched, someone stuck a sign out of the sunroof that said Brendan
Cooney for King. The light changed. The Explorer moved on, its
exuberant sign still deployed. The young are very different than we
are, I said to myself. Yes, I responded, they have more time. What if
you could be young again and were able to undo the things that were
done that made you into the person you would later become. But then who
would you be. Would Hawk have been Hawk if he hadn't met Professor
Crawford/ Abdullah? Maybe this wasn't a useful avenue of inquiry. Maybe
I should run over a list of the women I'd slept with and see if I could
remember how each of them looked with their clothes off.
I was up to Brenda Loring, who had looked excellent with her clothes off, when the phone rang.
"This is Meredith Teitler," a woman said. "Phyllis Wasserman gave me your number."
"I'm a detective," I said. "I represent a woman who is currently being stalked."
"I understand," Meredith said. "What do you wish to know?"
"You worked at Hall, Peary?"
"Still do," she said.
"You were a stalking victim."
"Yes."
"Is it still a problem?"
"I am no longer being stalked," she said.
"Did you ever identify the stalker?"
"No."
"Did you ever date anyone at Hall, Peary?" I said.
"Yes."
"Who?"
"He wouldn't have been the stalker."
"How can you be sure?"
"Well, he just wouldn't. He was, is, very nice."
"Can you give me his name?"
"No, really, I'm happy to help. But I don't wish to make trouble for a man who's guilty of nothing."
"Did you ever date Louis Vincent?" I said.
There was silence.
After a moment I said, "May I take that as a yes?"
"Why did you ask about Louis?"
"He's suspected in a stalking on the North Shore," I said.
Again silence. This time I waited her out.
"Yes," she said finally, "I dated Louis Vincent."
"And what caused you to stop dating?" I said.
"I… I went back to my husband," she said. "I had dated Louis while my husband and I were separated."
"How'd he feel about you reuniting with your husband?"
"He was very much for it," she said. "That's why I can't…"
"Did he have any thought that you might continue to see each other after you reunited?"
"I… well, he did say at one point it would be fun if we could
still meet once a week or so and… ah… be in bed together."
"And you said no."
"I said I didn't see how that would work if I were married again. He said he understood."
"Thank you," I said.
"Will this have to come out?" she said. "I mean my husband and
I… well, it's working now. I'd hate to drag thing back up."
"I don't see why it has to be a public thing," I said.
"I don't really believe it was Lou," she said.
"You never know," I said.
Profound.
I hung up and went back to looking out the window, and thinking
about nudity. It was late afternoon and I was up to how Susan looked
with her clothes off, when the phone rang. It was a guy named Al.
"I'm calling for a woman in Hingham," he said. "You know who I mean?"
"Yes," I said.
"She doesn't want to talk about the stalking thing. But if she can
help stop it for some other woman she wants to help. She asked me to
call."
"You her husband?"
"Something like that," Al said. "I can answer most of your questions."
"One, really," I said. "She ever date a guy named Louis Vincent?"
"I'll ask her," Al said.
The line was silent for a minute or so, then Al came back on the line.
"Yes," he said.
"Anything she can tell me about him?"
"No."
"Already been discussed?" I said.
"Yes."
"Thank her for me," I said.
"You think this guy Vincent is the stalker?"
"Yes, I do," I said.
"You know where to find him?"
"Yes, I do."
"Where?"
"I think I won't tell you," I said.
"Well, you see him, tell him," Al said. "There's a guy looking for
him, big guy, had some fights in his life, likes it, tell him when this
guy finds him he's going to yank his fucking head off."
"I'll tell him," I said.
Chapter 22
It was nearly noon. I was at my desk with my feet up reading the
to-be-outed list I had acquired from Prentice Lamont's file drawer. It
was dated at the top two weeks before Lamont died. The list was several
pages long with notations next to various names, which apparently
suggested likelihood: "not sure" or "dead giveaway." Some were more
graphic: "wrinkle room" or "chicken fucker." Near the bottom of the
third page was Robinson Nevins, and the notation "research continues."
So there was a connection between Prentice Lamont and Robinson Nevins.
There were several names I recognized on the list, but nobody seemed
more likely than anybody else to have tossed Prentice out the window.
Even the women on the list couldn't be eliminated. Prentice was small,
and I knew some lesbian women who might throw me out the window.
I put the list aside and picked up the stack of OUTrageous magazines
again and began to read. It was not pleasant. Whatever Prentice Lamont
had been, he had not been a writer. His literary style was school
newspaper gossip prose. It was twenty to two and I was on my third back
issue of OUTrageous, when I came to an interview with
"scholar/activist" Amir Abdullah about the problems he encountered as
an African-American man who was also gay. The article added nothing to
my understanding of the situation, but it did connect Prentice Lamont,
already connected to Robinson Nevins by the Out list, to Amir Abdullah.
It might mean nothing. They were after all also connected to the same
university. It didn't mean Robinson was gay. The Out list had been
still researching the question. And if Robinson were gay it didn't mean
that he had been intimate with Prentice Lamont, and even if he had
been, it didn't mean he had thrown Prentice out the window. Still when
the same names kept turning up, it sometimes meant something. And when
nothing else meant anything, it was a thing to hang on to. The
interview between Prentice and Amir could have been the source of the
story which Amir had passed on to the tenure committee about a
connection between Robinson Nevins and Prentice Lamont. Had Prentice
asked Amir about Nevins in the course of the interview? Had Amir
suggested Nevins to Prentice in the course of the interview? Could Amir
have suggested Nevins for reasons of university politics? Could Amir
have embroidered what he learned from Prentice for reasons of
university politics? I was pretty sure that worse had been done in the
service of university politics. And if any of it were true how did it
connect to one of the few facts I had-which was that Prentice Lamont
was dead, and he'd died with a quarter of a million dollars in the
bank. I thought about the quarter million, which was a relief.
Sexuality was a slippery devil. Greed you could get a handle on. Any
time there's money in a case, what do you do?
"Follow the money," I said aloud, just as if I were the first person to have thought of that approach.
Even when there's sex in the case too?
There's always sex, what are cases about but sex and money.
"Follow the money," I said again.
I pulled my phone over and called Mrs. Lamont.
"Would you call Maxwell T. Morgan at Hall, Peary," I said, "and tell
him that he may discuss your and Prentice's account with me?"
"Why?" she said.
"I'm trying to help you find out how there came to be so much money," I said.
It wasn't exactly untrue.
"If you think I should," she said.
"I do," I said, and gave her the phone number and made sure she had
it right and got up and went out to see Prentice Lamont's financial
advisor at Hall, Peary.
Maxwell Morgan had a smaller office than Louis Vincent, two floors
lower and in the middle of the building with a view of another
building. He didn't seem to mind. He was a big round blond cheerful
healthy-looking guy with pink cheeks.
"Max Morgan," he said. "Come on in."
I sat across his desk from him in a moderately comfortable chair
with arms. He had on the uniform-shirtsleeves and suspenders, his coat
jacket hung neatly on a hanger on the back of his door.
"Care to invest in American Industry?" Morgan said.
"No."
Morgan grinned. "Okay," he said. "You got a thingamajig that says you're a detective?"
I showed him my license.
"So what do you need?"
"You handled Prentice Lamont's investments."
"Yes."
"Lamont is dead."
"Yes, I know, poor devil killed himself, I understand."
"I don't think so," I said.
"You don't?"
"No, but that's not our issue. What can you tell me about the quarter of a million he has invested with you."
"Not much," Morgan said. "Alive or dead Mr. Lamont is entitled to confidentiality."
"Did Mrs. Lamont call you?"
Morgan smiled and nodded.
"Just wanted to be sure it was you," he said.
"I understand," I said. "Lawyers."
"You better believe it, the bastards took over Wall Street about
five years ago." Morgan shook his head sadly. "This business used to be
fun," he said.
"So," I said. "Tell me about all this money that a
twenty-three-year-old graduate student suddenly began investing in a
management account."
He swiveled his chair sideways and brought the file up on his computer.
"Cash," he said. "Always in the amount of nine thousand."
"Cash?"
"Well, bank checks."
"Close enough," I said.
"What bank?"
"Endicott Trust," Morgan said. "You don't think he was a suicide?"
"No," I said. "I think he was murdered."
"Jesus," Morgan said.
"Always the same bank?"
"Yes."
"Always nine thousand dollars?"
"Yes."
"Sounds like he was avoiding the cash reporting laws."
"It does," Morgan said.
"Would he have paid cash for the bank check?"
"Probably. I can call over there for you:"
"I'd appreciate it."
While he called, I looked out the window of his office and into the
window of the office across from his. There was a guy in shirtsleeves
and suspenders on the phone and another guy looking out the window at
me looking out the window at him. Was there a guy in shirtsleeves and
suspenders talking on the phone on the other side of the building while
another guy stared out the window at a guy in shirtsleeves… I
shook my head and turned back to Morgan.
"Thank you, Bricky," he said. "I owe you lunch."
He hung up and turned to me.
"Cash money," Morgan said. "In hundreds, ninety of them. Several times a week. Each time he'd get a bank check made out to him."
"How often did he deposit with you?"
Morgan looked at his screen for a few moments.
"Averaged about twice a month."
"So what did he do with the rest?"
"Wine, women, and song?" Morgan said.
"Probably not women," I said.
Morgan shrugged.
"Cigarettes, whiskey, and wild, wild men?" he said.
"I don't know." I said. "If he was going to spend it, why did he convert it to bank checks?"
"Maybe put it in his checking account."
"Why not just deposit the cash?" I said.
Morgan shrugged.
"Hey, I'm a simple stockbroker," he said. "You're the fucking sleuth."
"Thanks for reminding me," I said. "Sometimes it's hard to tell."
Chapter 23
When I got back from Hall, Peary, KC Roth was waitng in the hall
outside my office door wearing an ethereal-looking white summer dress.
She appeared not to be wearing stockings. Her legs were tanned. She had
on white high heels with no back. Even in the harsh fluorescent light
she looked like a slumming angel.
"We must talk," she said.
I unlocked my door. KC preceded me into the office. As soon as the
door closed behind us, KC turned and pressed herself against me and put
her arms around my neck and kissed me urgently.
"Kiss me back," she murmured.
After a while she moved her mouth away and whispered, "Hold me."
She moved her body against mine in several different directions. I
had never figured out how women did that. On the other hand I'd never
actually hugged a man. Maybe they did it too and I didn't know it.
"I've wanted you since I saw you," KC whispered.
"Don't blame you," I muttered.
"Put your hands on me."
"They are on you."
"They're on my shoulders," KC said.
"It's a start," I said.
She pushed against me more insistently. I would have said more
insistent was not possible, but she managed. She bent her head back and
looked up at me, and her lips brushed mine as she spoke.
"Have you ever made love in this office?" she said.
"No," I said, "I was waiting to get a couch."
"You could take me now, here, on the floor."
"I think we've gone through this," I said.
"Come on, you want to."
"Of course I want to," I said. "But I'm not going to."
"You have to," she said. "You have to."
"You left your husband for a guy and didn't end up with the guy," I
said. "You're being stalked. You're feeling shaky. You need
affirmation, and here I am, the guy who's going to rescue you from the
stalker."
"That's just talk," she said. "You're a man and I'm a woman."
There wasn't much room to maneuver around that, so I left it alone. I didn't have a lot of experience fighting for my virtue.
"You ever fuck Susan here?" she said, her face almost touching mine.
"I'm impressed," I said. "The question is intrusive, annoying,
coarse, and voyeuristic, that's quite a lot to get into a simple
question."
"Well, did you? I'll bet you didn't. I'll bet she wouldn't. She
wouldn't want to do it in a chair," KC's voice got very ftutey,
"because it wouldn't be ladylike. And she wouldn't want to do it on the
floor because she'd be afraid she'd mess her clothes."
"Enough," I said.
I took a somewhat firmer grip on her shoulders and walked her
backward toward one of my client chairs. She thought I was succumbing.
I could feel her shoulders relax. I sat her down in my client chair and
held her there. She raised her face with her eyes closed and her mouth
open.
"You and I are not going to have sex," I said. "I don't like that much better than you do, but it's a fact."
She reached out and began to rub my thigh. I slapped her hand. The
action was involuntary, but effective. She pulled her hand away and
burst into tears. I went around my desk feeling completely idiotic and
sat down, and breathed in and out as quietly as I could. She cried for
a little while and rubbed her hand where I'd slapped it.
"You hit me," she said.
"Not very hard," I said.
"It was too hard," she said.
"Hard is in the eye of the beholder, I guess," I said, and wished I hadn't said it quite that way.
KC rubbed her hand some more, and sniveled a little. It didn't seem
to me like a good time to tell her that Louis Vincent was almost
certainly the guy who was stalking her. Or that she was but one of a
fairly long list of women he stalked. Perhaps there was another way to
approach that problem.
Then she said, "I don't understand you, most men would jump at the chance to fuck me."
"Of course they would."
"Don't you think I'm beautiful?" KC said.
"Absolutely," I said.
"As beautiful as poopie old Susan?"
"No less," I said.
"You're not even married to her."
"I know," I said.
"I need a man to hold me."
"Maybe you just want one and think it's need."
"What's that mean?"
I shrugged.
"Just a thing to say."
"Well, I've been through hell," KC said with a breathy sorrowful catch in her voice.
I nodded.
"And I don't need a lot of holy-than-thou crap from some guy I've hired."
"I think that's holier," I said, "holier than thou."
"And don't patronize me."
Lucky I was a liberated guy and perfectly correct in sexual attitudes or I might have said something under breath about women.
"KC," I said. "I'm trying, with some difficulty, and against most of
my genetic programming, to avoid sex with you in a pleasant fashion.
Maybe it can't be done. Maybe the closest I can get to it is to
patronize you."
She sat and looked at me and thought about that. She was gorgeous. I
knew virtue was its own reward, but sometimes I wondered if the same
might be true of vice.
"So tell me about Susan," she said. "What is it she does to make you like this?"
"It has to do with love, I think."
"But how does she get you to do what she wants?"
"She doesn't," I said. "I want to do what she wants:"
"But she must do something."
"What she does," I said, "is she tries not to want me to do things I don't want to do."
"I'm serious," KC said.
"Me too," I said.
KC stared at me, she crossed her bare legs some more.
Finally she said, "I don't get it."
"No," I said. "You don't."
Chapter 24
I took a rosewood-paneled elevator up to the top floors of the State
Street Building where Hall, Peary flourished. There were five guys in
striped shirts and red suspenders riding up with me. For a guy who kept
all his money in his wallet, I was spending a lot of time with
stockbrokers. When I went into Louis Vincent's big corner office I
closed the door behind me. Louis was contemplating his computer screen,
breathless with adoration.
"Hello there," I said. Spenser, the genial gumshoe. Vincent looked up.
"Oh, hi. Come on in, or, well, you are in, aren't you."
"I bring you greetings," I said, "from KC Roth, and Meredith
Teitler, and a woman in Hingham whose name I do not know, but whose
significant other is a large fierce man named Al who says he will
remove your head if he ever encounters you."
"What the hell are you talking about?" Vincent said.
"Don't dick around with this, Vincent. You've stalked a number of women in the past and you are stalking KC Roth currently."
He got to his feet. "You're crazy," he said.
I walked around the corner of his desk and put a good short left
hook in under his rib cage on the right side. He gasped and staggered
back, and began flailing at me with both hands. He was so inept that
his fists weren't fully closed and if he'd hit me it would have been
more of a slap than anything else. But he didn't hit me. It had been a
long time since somebody who punched like he did had hit me. I hit him
again, same punch, same place, and he gasped again.
Then he hollered, "Betty."
I punched him in the solar plexus with my right hand and he sagged.
He tried to yell Betty again but he had too little breath. Behind me
the door opened.
A woman's voice said, "My God."
"Call cops," Vincent gasped.
I stepped away. He tried to straighten up, still struggling to get
air in, and I clipped him on the jaw with a good professional right
cross and he sat down hard on the floor and stayed there.
"Stop it," Betty screamed, "stop it."
"Done," I said.
Betty turned and ran toward her desk. Vincent was staring at me from the floor. He was about half functional.
"Can you understand me?" I said.
He nodded.
"If anything even slightly annoying, anything at all happens to KC
Roth, ever again, I will come back and knock every tooth out of your
head."
He continued to stare.
"And maybe I'll tell Al where you are." I could see that he heard me.
"You understand that?" I said.
He nodded very slightly. He was very pale, and he kept himself rigid as if any movement would make him disintegrate.
"Feel free to explain to the cops why I punched you," I said and turned and walked out of his office.
Betty had hung up the phone. When she saw me she pointed me out to a
couple of vigorous-looking young guys who were probably good at squash.
"That's him," she said. "Don't let him get away."
I didn't feel like instructing them in the difference between
scuffling and squash, so I smiled at them courteously and opened my
coat so they could see that I was wearing a gun.
"Let him get away," I said. Which they did.
Chapter 25
Pearl and Susan and I were sitting in Susan's large black Explorer
in the parking lot of the Dunkin' Donuts shop on Route 1 in Saugus,
eating donuts. Actually Susan and Pearl were sharing a donut and I was
eating several, with coffee.
"I got a call from KC Roth this morning," Susan said.
She sprinkled a little Equal into her decaffeinated coffee and swirled it with the little red swizzle that came with the coffee.
"Swell," I said.
I liked the donuts they sold with the little handle on them. When
you had finished the donut you still could eat the little handle and
have the illusion that you'd gotten extra.
"She says you've been hitting on her."
I finished my donut and drank some coffee to help it down.
"And how did you respond?" I said.
"I said that it seemed very unlike you."
"And she said?"
"That apparently I didn't know you as well as I thought I did."
"Well," I said, "if I were going to hit on someone besides you, she'd be an early candidate."
"Yes, she is undeniably stunning," Susan said. "But I'm pretty sure that I do know you as well as I think I do."
"Maybe better," I said.
"So I don't want you to deny it," Susan said. "Because I don't
believe you did it. But I'd be curious as to why she is telling me you
did."
"She blandished me and I was unresponsive," I said.
"Blandished?"
"Yes."
"As in blandishments?"
"Yes."
"Are you sure that's a word?"
"It is now," I said.
"Tell me about her blandishments," Susan said.
So I did, graphically.
"I don't wish to hurt your feelings, but KC has always been something of a hot pants."
"Damn," I said, "I thought maybe you had told her what a Roscoe I was in bed."
Susan shook her head and sipped some more decaf.
"Your secret is safe with me," she said.
From the backseat Pearl nudged at my elbow as I was about to bite into a new donut.
"Excuse me," I said and broke off a piece and gave it to her.
"KC and I have been friends a long time," Susan said. "I would have hoped for a little better behavior."
"Maybe she's different with men than she is with other women," I said.
"I'd say that was a given," Susan said.
"I don't know why, and obviously I'm making some rather large
intuitive leaps here, but she seems to be in bad need of male attention
and she seems to need it from men she can be scornful of."
"Including you?" Susan said.
"If I had, ah, come across," I said. "Then she could have been scornful of me because I was unfaithful to you."
"Maybe that was part of your attraction, in addition to being a Roscoe, of course."
"This is your department," I said, "but maybe it's why she cheated on her husband. He seemed hard to scorn."
"Yes, Burt is quite admirable. How about her stockbroker?"
"Easy to scorn."
"I of course understand some of that."
"You understand some of everything," I said.
Susan smiled and held her decaf up so Pearl could lap a little from the cup.
"Yes we do," she said. "How did your talk go with Louis Vincent? Did he admit it?"
"Not exactly."
"Did he seem remorseful?" Susan said.
"I think by the end of the discussion he felt some remorse."
"Does his remorse have any connection with the bruised knuckles on your right hand?"
"It was a talking point," I said.
"Did you have to talk much?"
"Awhile," I said.
"So how come there aren't any other bruises on your knuckles."
"All the other talking was to the body," I said.
"Did you reach an agreement?"
"We agreed that he would stop bothering KC."
"Leaving KC all the free time she needs," Susan said, "to bother you."
"Exactly."
"Maybe I'll talk with her."
"And say what?"
"And say that if she doesn't stop fucking around with my honey bun, she'll be sleeping with the fishes:'
"You shrinks know just the right thing," I said.
"Yes," Susan said. "We do."
Chapter 26
One of the people who had been outed by the OUTrageous, was a
television reporter named Rich Randolph. I sat with him in his cubby
inside the newsroom at Channel Three, next door to the news set.
"I wasn't exactly in the closet," he said. "But I wasn't, you could say, broadcasting it."
"Probably not the road to advancement," I said.
Randolph was slimmer than he looked on camera, with a good haircut, round, gold-rimmed glasses, and a sharp-edged face.
"Hell, glasses put you at a disadvantage."
"And well they should," I said.
He glanced at me for a moment and then smiled.
"Nothing," he said, "is too trivial for local television."
"Did you know Prentice Lamont?" I said.
"He the guy ran the magazine?"
"Yes."
"No, I didn't know him. I saw his name on the masthead. Somebody, I
assume it was he, wrote me an unsigned letter saying that I was
scheduled to be outed in the whatever date issue of OUTrageous, unless
I wished to make other arrangements, and included a phone number. I
called the number and I said what sort of arrangements, and he said,
financial. And I said you mean you'll take money not to out me? And he
said, yes, and I told him to go fuck himself, and hung up. About two
weeks later I was out."
"Sounds like you passed on a good piece of investigative reporting."
"I did," Randolph said. "It was also my life, and I thought maybe I
can just sit tight and it'll blow over. I mean who ever heard of
OUTrageous, anyway? I thought they might be bluffing, and if they
weren't I thought no one read the damned thing."
"Unless they backed it up," I said, "and made sure somebody saw it."
"The station manager got a copy in the mail."
"How'd that work out?"
"He was hurt," he said, "that I hadn't leveled with him. The sonovabitch. Like he's telling me about his sex life."
"But he didn't fire you."
"Hell no. The union would be on them like ugly on a warthog. The PR fallout would swamp him, and he knows it."
"He taking any action?" I said.
Randolph shrugged. "You watch the news on this station?"
"No," I said.
"Well, if you did, you might next see me covering a fashion show."
"Or modeling them," I said.
"Ah, if only," Randolph said.
"Was it Lamont that was doing the blackmail, you think?"
"I don't know. The letter was unsigned, appeared to be written on a
computer. The voice on the phone was anonymous. I have no idea who I
talked to, but how big an operation was it?"
"Maybe bigger than I thought," I said. "Could you tell anything from the voice? It was male."
"Yeah, male. Native English speaker, I'd say."
"How old?"
"Couldn't tell. Wasn't a kid, or an old person. Twenty-sixty, somewhere in there, I guess."
"Race?"
Randolph shook his head.
"Anything to indicate that it wasn't Prentice Lamont?"
"Given that I don't know who Prentice Lamont is, no."
We sat for a moment. Outside his cubicle the newsroom clattered and
hustled. Monitors gleamed. Assignments were being given. Phones were
ringing. Computers were being keyed.
"You talk to any other people who've been featured OUTrageous?" I said.
"No."
I nodded.
"How come you get a cubicle?" I said.
"Senior correspondent," he said.
"Wow," I said.
"Yeah," Randolph said.
We sat for another moment.
"You know what my real name is?" Randolph said. "My real name is
Dick Horvitz. Media consultant said it didn't have sympathetic
overtones."
"Gee," I said, "I choked up the minute you said it."
"You ever wonder why people care about shit like this?" he said.
"Often," I said.
"You have an answer?"
"No."
He leaned back and put his feet up.
"Senior correspondent," he said.
Chapter 27
It was time to find out about Prentice Lamont. So I drove over to
the university and parked my car in a space marked faculty only.
Actually it was past time to find out about Prentice. If I knew any
less I'd be in some sort of informational deficit.
I started with the Dean of Arts and Sciences, whose name was
Reynolds. We sat in his first-floor office with a view of coeds in the
student quadrangle. His desk was neat without being barren, and a
picture of his wife and three daughters was displayed on a side table.
"I can get you Prentice Lamont's transcript," he said, "hold on."
He stood and walked to the door and stuck his head out and spoke to one of the women in the outer office.
Back behind his desk, he smiled.
"Things move quicker," he said, "when it's a request from the dean's office."
Reynolds was a tall trim man with a bald head and hornrimmed
glasses. He wore a dark suit with a red silk tie, and a matching pocket
square.
"The information from the English department tenure committee will
be harder. Requests from the dean don't impress them, and legally, they
have the right to keep their proceedings secret."
"Legally in a court of law?"
Reynolds shrugged.
"I don't know. Legally under university bylaws."
"Even if the proceedings may in themselves have violated university bylaws?"
Reynolds smiled again.
"My guess would be," he said, "especially then."
"Did you know Prentice Lamont?" I said.
"No."
"How about Robinson Nevins?"
"I recognized him if we passed in the corridor, I don't think we've ever talked."
"How about Amir Abdullah."
Reynolds leaned back in his chair and put his hands behind his head.
"Ah," he said, "Mr. Abdullah."
I waited.
"I understand you've already had an altercation with Mr. Abdullah."
"I prefer to say I've already won an altercation with Mr. Abdullah."
"Not everyone can claim that," Reynolds said. "You appear to have the build for it."
"How've you done?" I said.
"Our altercations are somewhat different," Reynolds said. "But I guess we're about even."
"What can you tell me about him?"
"Officially? Professor Abdullah is an esteemed member of our faculty."
"And unofficially?"
"A great pain in the ass," Reynolds said.
"I need to know as much as I can," I said.
"About Abdullah?"
"About everything. You seem to know about Abdullah."
"I know something about Abdullah, and I have some opinions, but they are not for dissemination."
"It is not in the best interest of a guy who does what I do," I
said, "to blab things told him in confidence. And you have my word that
it will be in confidence unless I am legally compelled to repeat it."
"Fair enough," Reynolds said. "Abdullah is a poseur. He is
intellectually dishonest. He exploits his blackness and his gayness for
his own advantage. He cares only about his own advancement. He does not
like to teach, and his publications are polemic rather than
scholarship. He is, I believe, though I've not been able to catch him,
a sexual predator who preys on young men in his classes."
"If you catch him?"
"If I catch him," Reynolds said, "he's gone. Tenure or no tenure."
"And you win," I said.
"And I win."
A tall good-looking black woman with gray highlights in her short hair came in carrying a copy of the transcript.
"Who gets this?" she said.
Reynolds pointed at me and she handed it to me and smiled and walked out. I gave the transcript a fast eyeball.
"Prentice took three courses last semester in African-American studies," I said. "Could they be Abdullah?"
Reynolds put out a hand and I gave him the transcript; he glanced through it.
"All of them," he said, "would be Professor Abdullah."
"What is Prentice's major?"
Reynolds glanced at the transcript.
"He was getting a master's degree in English literature," he said.
"Is it unusual that he'd take all these African courses?"
"Yes."
"What department does Abdullah belong to?" I said.
"English. The African-American Center is not funded by the
university and has no official standing, though we are not opposed to
it, and would be hesitant to oppose it anyway."
"If you do find that he is hitting on young men in his class and you
fire him, will there be a firestorm of protest alleging you are
homophobic and racist?"
"Absolutely," Reynolds said.
"But you'll do it anyway."
"There are no university bylaws that tolerate sexual exploitation of students by faculty, straight or gay, black or white."
"I can prove he hit on a student at the community college some years ago."
"Doesn't help me here," Reynolds said.
"Maybe it will," I said.
Reynolds studied me for a moment. His eyes were both humorous and hard, like a turtle's.
"One entry," he said after a moment, "into the proceedings of the
tenure committee would be to talk with the members. Some are fools, but
one or two are quite human."
"Who would you say is the most human?"
"Tommy Harmon."
"Does he know all the words of `Hail to the Victor'?" I said.
"It's a nickname, I believe his real name is David."
"Doesn't sound like you had to sort through a long list," I said. "To come up with him."
Reynolds smiled.
"I'll call Tommy if you like and tell him you'll be stopping by."
"Do," I said.
Chapter 28
Tommy Harmon had an office with a big bay window that gave him a
sweeping vista of the MBTA station. There was a boom box on top of his
bookcase and he had a CD playing.
"Carol Sloane," I said.
"With Clark Terry," he said. "Very good."
He was a blocky man with a thick neck and a kind of healthy-looking
redness to his face that suggested he spent time out of doors.
"I represent Robinson Nevins," I said.
Harmon nodded.
"He thinks he was jobbed on his tenure promotion."
"I do too," Harmon said.
"And he asked me to look into how that happened."
"And?"
"In the process I came to the conclusion that Prentice Lamont didn't commit suicide," I said.
"You think he was killed?"
"Yes."
"Christ!"
"Which lends a larger urgency to the inquiry," I said.
"I should say so."
"It's my impression that Nevins was denied tenure because of
allegations that his relationship with Lamont resulted in Lamont's
suicide."
"Nobody ever said that, exactly," Harmon said. "And, of course, no
one is required to explain or even admit their vote. What makes you
think he was killed?"
"He couldn't have opened the window he went through," I said.
"Perhaps it was open."
"Perhaps."
"And perhaps I ought to stick to my area of expertise," Harmon said. "Have you shared your theory with the police?"
"Not yet, one of my goals is to refurbish Nevins' reputation, which I thought I might attempt, before I called the cops."
Harmon nodded again.
"What do you need from me?"
"I don't know," I said. "I'd like you to tell me whatever you can
about the deliberations of the tenure committee. Maybe I'll recognize
something I need."
Harmon reached over and turned off his boom box, then he shifted
back in his chair and put one foot up on a partly open drawer in his
desk. He was wearing an open-collared white shirt, khaki pants, and
white sneakers. On his desk next to a couple of books by R. W. B. Lewis
was a book titled Death in the Landscape: The American Pastoral Vision
by David T Harmon.
Harmon took in a long slow breath and let it out slowly.
"University politics is very odd. You get a lot of people gathered
together who, if they couldn't do this, really couldn't do anything.
They are given to think that they are both intelligent and important
because they have Ph.D.s and most people don't. Often, though not
always, the Ph.D. does indicate mastery over a subject. But that's all
it indicates, and, unfortunately, many people with Ph.D.s think it
covers a wider area than it does. They think it empowers their superior
insight into government and foreign policy and race relations and such.
In addition these people are put into an environment where daily, they
judge themselves against a standard set by eighteen- or twenty-year-old
kids who know little if anything about the subject matter in which
their professors are expert."
"Makes it hard not to take yourself very seriously," I said.
"Hard, not impossible," Harmon said. "More of them ought to be able to do it."
"But they can't?"
"But they don't. Exemplar of the species is Lillian Temple. There is
no liberal agenda, however goofy, that will not attract her attention.
There is no hypocrisy, however bald, that she will not endure if she
can convince herself that it is in the service of right thinking."
"How about Bass Maitland?" I said.
"Officially he is as committed to right thinking as Lillian," Harmon said. "In fact he is his agenda."
"He a friend of Lillian Temple?"
"I believe they are more than friends."
"Lovers?"
"I'd say so."
"Are they the source of the Robinson Nevins-Prentice Lamont rumor?"
"Yes."
"Where was Amir Abdullah in this?"
"Amir declines to attend tenure meetings which he views, with some
justice, as a bunch of white straight people who will only vote for
people like themselves."
"A situation his attendance might help to modify," I said.
"Amir is never that lucid," Harmon said.
"Is he friends with Temple or Maitland?"
"Since he is gay and black, Lillian feels obligated to like and
admire him. Bass tries to, but I believe that Amir makes him
uncomfortable."
"How do you feel about Amir?"
"I think he's a jerk," Harmon said.
"Since Robinson Nevins is black and alleged to be gay, why doesn't Lillian Temple feel obligated to like and admire him?"
"Because he is a relatively conservative black. Which completely confuses Lillian."
"Harder to feel the white person's burden," I said, "if he's not asking for help."
"Exactly," Harmon said. "Basically, Robinson is interested in his
students and his scholarship, but if asked he will tell you that he is
opposed to affirmative action. I have heard him argue that a course,
say, in Black Rage, is not an adequate substitute for a course in, say,
Shakespeare, or American transcendentalists."
"Do you share his view?"
"Pretty much. But whether I did or didn't I could still pay
attention to Robinson because he tries to base his views on what he has
seen and experienced, rather than on a set of reactions preordained by
race or social class. Lillian and maybe Bass, and maybe Amir, though I
frankly don't know what makes Amir tick, seem to feel that this is
behavior unbecoming a black man."
"Kind of rattles their stereotypes," I said.
"Yes, I'm afraid it does."
"Would they lie about Robinson to deny him tenure?"
Harmon thought about that. While he thought about it, I looked past
him out through his window at an MBTA train grinding out of the
station, full of people, mostly students, the train running on elevated
tracks for a while to clear the parking lot below it before it dipped
with angular sinuosity and disappeared into its tunnel.
"Bass would lie, I think, about anything at all if it served his
best interest. Lillian probably would not knowingly lie. She would have
to be able to convince herself that it wasn't a lie. Which she could do
quite easily, since her grip on truth and falsehood is pretty shaky
anyway."
"Who actually told the thing about Robinson?"
"Lillian."
"Did she say where she got it?"
"No."
"How many people believed her?"
"That I can't tell you," Harmon said. "I can tell you that on an
eighteen-member committee, Robinson got only three votes for tenure.
Mine was one of them."
"Will your colleagues be angry with you for talking so freely?" I said.
"I imagine."
"I can avoid mentioning your name."
"Feel free to mention it. If I said it, I'm responsible for it."
"Okay," I said. "You ever play halfback at Michigan?"
"Tommy's a pretty standard nickname for kids named Harmon," he said. "I went to Williams College. I was a wrestler."
"Ah," I said. "That explains the neck."
"And you used to box," he said.
"Which explains the nose," I said.
"And the scar tissue," Harmon said. "You going to talk with Lillian again?"
"Have to," I said. "I need to know where she got her information."
"I'd like to know where she gets most of it," Harmon said.
We shook hands and I left.
Chapter 29
Lee Ferrell and I were driking beer at a bar called The Limerick, near Broad Street.
"I figured you'd order a pink lady," I said.
"I'm trying to pass," Farrell said.
"It's not working," I said.
"Maybe if I wore my gun outside my coat," Farrell said.
"Might help," I said. "Long as it's not color-coordinated."
"Department issue drab," Farrell said. "My off-duty gun is chartreuse."
"Zowie."
"Yeah. You invite me out to exercise your homophobia, or was there something you needed?"
"Mostly the homophobia," I said. "But have you ever heard of a publication called OUTrageous?"
"Yes, I have."
"What do you know about it?"
"It is an obscure journal published by some graduate students which outs prominent gay people."
"You're safe then," I said.
"I'm also out."
"Oh yeah. Is the paper legitimate?"
"I haven't been able to prove that it isn't," Farrell said. "But its editor committed suicide a while ago."
"I know. It's the case I'm on."
"Someone thinks it wasn't suicide?"
"Me," I said.
"So tell me."
I told him why I thought it was murder.
"For obvious reasons, I catch most of the gay squeals," Farrell
said. "If you'll pardon the expression. I caught this one. So as soon
as you got something that won't give giggle fits to an assistant DA,
let me know."
The bartender came down the bar and put a fresh bowl of peanuts in front of us. While he was handy, we ordered two more beers.
"You think there was something wrong with OUTrageous?" I said.
"Nothing I can prove," Farrell said.
"But?"
"But there's some blackmail involved."
"There is," I said.
"Got anyone that will testify to it?"
"No."
"We don't either," Farrell said.
"So, what's your take on `outing'?" I said.
"You start treating people as the means to an end, it's a slippery slope."
"That's what I think. You sure you're gay?"
"Gayer than laughter," Farrell said.
"And younger than springtime."
"You could of got all this from Belson, or Quirk," Farrell said. "Probably did. The gay aspects of this case bothering you?"
"It's a pleasure to watch the work of a trained investigator," I said.
"Yeah, cops are us. What's bothering you?"
I told him about the case.
When I finished, he said, "Guy made a move on Hawk?"
"When Hawk was a kid," I said.
"I didn't know Hawk was ever a kid," Farrell said.
"I knew him when he was a kid," I said. "And I find it hard to imagine."
"You and Hawk were kids together?"
"We fought on the same card when we were eighteen. But Hawk isn't what's bothering me."
"You straight guys are simple tools," Farrell said. "Lemme tell you
what's bothering you. You're chasing along after whatever it is that
you can't quite catch, and every gay person you encounter is sleazy,
crooked, secondrate, and generally unpleasant."
"Or so it has seemed," I said.
"And, being a basically decent guy, despite the smart mouth, you
fear that maybe you are prejudiced and it's clouding your judgment."
"Also true, except for the smart mouth part."
"Same thing happens to me with blacks," Farrell said. "I spend two
months on a drug-related homicide and everybody's black, and
everybody's a vicious sleazebag, and I begin to wonder, is it me?"
"Neither one of us gets to deal with the best parts of a culture," I said.
"No. We deal with the worst. You got a case involving murder and
blackmail, most of the people you meet are going to be scumbags."
"Regardless of race, creed, or color," I said. "Or sexual orientation."
"And not because of race, creed, color, or sexual orientation," Farrell said.
"You mean homos aren't any better than the rest of us?" I said.
"Most of us are," Farrell said, "but not all of us."
"How disappointing."
"I know," Farrell said.
There was a big picture window in the front of the bar. The sun was
west of us now and throwing long shadows onto the street outside. Men
in suits carrying briefcases sidled in for a few fast ones before they
got the train to Dover. It wasn't a place where women came much.
"Shall we have another beer?" I said.
Farrell grinned at me.
"We'd be fools not to," he said.
Chapter 30
I spent the rest of the afternoon in my office with a pad of lined
yellow paper drawing little connection diagrams among the principals in
the Prentice Lamont case. None of them seemed very useful, but that
just made the exercise like all the other ones I had been through.
Maybe it was time to get the cops into it. I knew Quirk when he tried
the window Lamont had jumped from would agree with me that the suicide
smelled bad. But with the cops came the press, and Robinson Nevins
would be frequently mentioned in connection with the murder of a gay
man. This was not, I was pretty sure, what he'd wanted when Hawk
brought him to me.
Twice the phone rang, and both times, when I answered there was
nothing but the sound of someone not talking at the other end. I did
business with enough wackos that it could be one of several, but at the
moment my money was on KC Roth. After the second one I dialed *69 and
the phone rang for a while but no one answered, which meant nothing. KC
could have shut off her answering machine. She could be refusing to
answer. She could have called from a phone booth which was now ringing
to the empty sidewalk. Or it could have been someone else doing these
things.
It was after six when I left the office and walked down Berkeley
Street toward my apartment. When I turned right onto Marlborough Street
I saw her hiding behind a tree across from my apartment. When I got to
my apartment entry I turned and looked over at the tree.
"KC," I said. "You're slightly larger than the tree trunk. I can see you."
She came out from behind the tree and walked toward me. She was
dressed in black. She wore a large black hat, and her face, pale in
contrast to her outfit, was tragic.
"I can't stay away from you," she said.
"Work on it," I said.
"I think of you all the time."
"How about the stalker," I said. "He come back?"
"No. I need to talk with you."
"Go ahead."
"Can we go upstairs?"
"No."
"Afraid?"
"Yes."
She looked up at me with her head lowered. She looked like an old Hedy Lamarr publicity still.
"Of me or yourself?" she said.
"You," I said.
"Damn you, can't you understand how desperate I am. I've been abandoned, betrayed, my husband has left me, I'm being stalked."
"I don't think you're being stalked anymore," I said.
"You caught him?"
"Yep."
"And?"
"I reasoned with him."
"Who?"
"Louis Vincent," I said.
"Louis?"
"Sorry."
"Louis-oh my god," she said and fell forward into my arms.
I held onto her and waited while she cried a little. When she
stopped crying I let her go. She stayed where she was, leaning hard
against me.
"Stand straight," I said.
"I can't," she said. "It's too much, too awful."
I gave her a couple of seconds and when she didn't stop leaning in
to me, I stepped suddenly back away from her. She lurched forward and
caught herself, and got her balance.
When she was on her own balance again her face darkened and she looked at me.
"You unutterable bastard," she said, and turned and strode away.
Her hips swung angrily as she headed toward Arlington Street.
Unutterable, I thought. Not bad.
Chapter 31
Hawk and I were drinking draught beer in a joint across from the
Fleet Center. The Fleet Center had replaced the old Garden, and I could
tell that the joint was trying to go along with the upscale clientele,
because there was a bowl of cashews on the bar. I had several. So did
Hawk.
"Usually it's a fight to see who gets the six cashews in a bowl of mixed nuts," I said.
"Kind of ruins the competition," Hawk said. "When they all cashews."
We drank some beer.
"You got that stalker thing worked out?" Hawk said.
"Yes, I identified the stalker and explained to him why he should stop it."
"Firmly," Hawk said.
"Quite."
"Good," Hawk said. "Don't like stalkers."
"Only problem is now getting rid of the stalkee."
Hawk turned his head slowly and looked at me and his eyes were bright with pleasure.
"She taken a liking to you?"
"You might say."
"Hear victims do that sometimes."
"Sometimes," I said.
"You say she good-looking?"
"Un huh."
"And, you ain't available, being as how you in love and all."
"True."
"Maybe you can divert her my way," Hawk said. "She'll thank you for it."
"I'll keep that option in mind."
We emptied the bowl of cashews, and the bartender came over and refilled it and drew us two more beers. Way upscale.
"How we doing with Robinson?"
"We?"
"Yeah, you and me. We finding out anything?"
"We figure Prentice was killed," I said.
"'Cause of how he couldn't have opened the window," Hawk said.
I nodded.
"And we're pretty sure he was blackmailing people," I said.
"How about at the university?"
"I know that the rumor of his relationship to Prentice was introduced by Lillian Temple and a guy named Bass Maitland."
"Lillian from Cambridge," Hawk said.
"Clearly. And Bass is her boyfriend."
"Lillian got a boyfriend?"
"Maybe when she lets her hair down and takes off her glasses," I said.
"They don't do that in Cambridge," Hawk said.
I shrugged. "We know that both Lillian and Bass are friends with Amir Abdullah," I said.
"Which tell you something about them," Hawk said.
There were still cashews left. I took a couple.
"And we know that Amir had met Prentice because Prentice wrote about him in his little magazine."
"So there a connection from Prentice through Amir to Lillian Cambridge and her boyfriend."
"Bass Maitland. Yeah there is."
We both drank some beer. The bar was nearly empty in the middle of
the afternoon. The television above the bar was dark. There was no
music playing on the jukebox. The light from the street filtered
quietly in through the front windows.
"You know what I thinking?" Hawk said.
"Maybe," I said.
"I thinking that if the kid Prentice banking a quarter of million
out of the blackmail gig then it too good a gig to end when he die."
"And you're thinking it might be a good idea to keep an eye on the ones doing the magazine now."
"Yowzah."
"That would be Walt and Willie."
"You know them?"
"Yes."
"They business partners or are they a couple?"
"Couple, I think."
"So one's in it they probably both in it."
"Maybe," I said.
"They know you too?"
"Yeah."
"So we'll go by tomorrow," Hawk said, "and you point them out to me and I'll watch them for a while."
"Christ," I said, "almost sounds like a plan."
"Do," Hawk said, "don't it."
Chapter 32
Pearl the wonder dog was staying with me while Susan was at a
two-day conference in Atlanta. We were lying in my bed watching the
Braves game on cable when the phone rang.
A woman's voice said, "Is Susan there?"
"No," I said, "she's not. Can I take a message?"
"Does she make a lot of noise when you fuck her?" the voice said.
"Mostly she yells `bravo,"' I said.
"I'll bet she lays there like an old laundry bag," the voice said.
"KC," I said. "Stop being a pain in the ass."
"There's a letter for you," she said, "in your mailbox downstairs."
Then she hung up. I thought about not looking, but that would be
childish, so I got up, put on my pants, stuck a gun in my back pocket,
and went down to look in my mailbox. The letter was there. Hand
delivered obviously, no stamp, and no address, only my name. I took it
and went back upstairs. Pearl was still on the bed though she had
raised her head and was looking annoyed. I got back into bed beside her
and opened the letter. It was handwritten in blue ink by someone who
had been taught that a person was judged on her penmanship.
I think about you and Susan all the time. Is it still romantic or
does she just undress and lay on the bed? Do you take off her clothes
for her, slowly, one garment at a time until she's naked? Are you naked
when you do it? Or do you undress after she's undressed? Does she
respond? Is she lively? Does she know a lot of tricks? Is she kinky? Or
is she just the kind of prude who closes her eyes and lets you do what
you want to her? She is so smart and sarcastic I have often wondered if
she could ever be genuine enough to enjoy sex the way I do. The way we
would, you and I. I would give you everything. Does Susan? I would ask
nothing in return. Does Susan? You could still be with Susan. And have
me on the side. And when you were with me, you might learn things that
Susan can't teach you.
The letter made me uncomfortable. A little girl talking dirty
without using bad words. It always interested me that people had a lot
more trouble writing a dirty word than they did saying it. It was also
very uncomfortable to be the object of salacious fantasy. The idea that
a good-looking woman would think such things about me was attractive.
The reality was embarrassing. It also made me think about why KC had
trouble with men. She thought that it was about sex, when what it was
about was love. It made me sorry for her. I could try to explain but
she wouldn't understand it, and, worse, if she did understand it she
wouldn't believe it.
"KC is doomed," I said to Pearl.
Pearl opened her eyes and looked at me without raising her head. I
didn't follow up the remark so she lost interest and closed her eyes
again. On television Andres Galarraga hit a hanging curveball into the
general area of Buckhead scoring Chipper Jones ahead of him, and the
ball game was over. I clicked off the television and lay quietly beside
Pearl thinking about KC. I wondered if in fact I would learn something
by sleeping with her.
"You never know," I said to Pearl.
Pearl had discerned already that I was not looking for an answer so
she moved her ear slightly to let me know she was listening, but she
didn't open her eyes. I was hungry. I got up and went to the kitchen
and made one and a half ham sandwiches on light rye with dark mustard.
I brought it back into the bedroom with a bottle of Sam Adams White
Ale, got back into bed, gave Pearl her half, and ate my sandwich, and
drank my beer from the bottle.
"We're going to have to do something about KC," I said.
Pearl was engaged with her half sandwich.
"If only I knew what."
Pearl had mustard on her muzzle, she wiped it on the spread as I spoke. I drank some beer and had another bite of sandwich.
"This may be," I said to Pearl, "a job for Susan:"
Pearl stood up, turned around three times, and settled back down
with a large sigh. Clearly it was enough chitchat for the night.
Chapter 33
It was time to pay some more attention to Lillian Temple. I called
the Brandeis alumni office and got her current address from them.
Alumni offices know your address when even the IRS can't find you. I
called the university English department to make sure she wasn't
teaching any night classes. Which she wasn't. The secretary sounded a
bit offended that I would think she might be.
At about six o'clock in the evening I got in my car and drove over
to Cambridge. Susan wasn't due back until the next morning, so I took
Pearl with me. We parked outside Lillian's apartment building on
Kirkland Street and waited. I didn't know what I was waiting for, but I
often didn't. I was trying to figure out a way to get information from
a hostile witness.
Pearl and I watched the sights and sounds of Cambridge pass by the
car. Pearl reacted only to other dogs, and then with hostility,
otherwise she rested her head placidly on the backseat and stared.
"Cambridge was placed here," I said, "across the river from Boston to provide comic relief."
A woman came by with an ugly black dog wearing a bandanna. Pearl barked at her. Or maybe it was her owner.
Across the street Lillian Temple came out of the door to her
building and walked across the street behind the car. It was a cool
night. I cracked the windows.
"I gotta go," I said to Pearl, "you gotta stay. I'll be back."
I locked the car doors and followed Lillian down Kirkland Street
toward Mass Ave. It was still light, but she seemed a single-minded
person, like many in Cambridge, who didn't pay much attention to what
was happening around her. She took no notice of me tagging along
behind. At Mass Ave she turned left and walked toward Harvard Square.
There were some guys in native garb playing Peruvian pipes outside the
Harvard Coop. Three or four people asked me for money. One offered to
sell me a newspaper called Spare Change, "the newspaper by and for the
homeless." There was a guy beating rhythm on the bottom of a series of
different-sized inverted buckets. There were many kids with
ring-pierced body parts and pastel hair hanging around the subway
kiosk. Harvard students, and future Harvard students, parents, faculty,
and staff all moved about the square among the street people ignoring
the traffic and the traffic laws. There was a diverse variety of cops
around the square. MBTA cops hanging at the subway entrance, Cambridge
cops lingering near the corner of JFK and Brattle, a motorcycle cop
with gleaming boots parked near Cardullo's, Harvard cops standing
outside the Holyoke Center near the perpetual chess games.
Lillian turned right at Nini's corner and went down Brattle Street
to The Casablanca bar and restaurant. When I got inside she was at the
bar. It was about 7:20 on Thursday night and the bar was half empty. Or
half full depending on how much you'd been drinking. I slid onto a bar
stool beside her. She paid no attention to me. But she was aware of at
least a male shape beside her because she looked at her watch sort of
obviously to let me know she was waiting for someone and was not
available. She ordered a glass of white wine, making it a longer
process than it might have been by asking what kinds they had and how
much it cost. She settled on a modest California chardonnay. I ordered
a draught beer. I looked around on the bar, no cashews. They didn't
seem to care about becoming upscale. Maybe they already were upscale.
Lillian sipped her wine and looked ostentatiously at her watch again,
lest one of the unaccompanied males, made reckless by animal lust,
proposition her. She made no eye contact with anyone. Everything in her
being vibrated with I'm-waiting-for-someone.
"Excuse me," I said. "Do you come here often?"
She fixed me with a withering stare, which changed slowly into recognition, which changed slowly into anxiety.
"Oh," she said, "it's you."
"Yes it is," I said.
"I'm waiting for someone," she said, and drank some of her wine.
"Really?"
"Yes. Bass, Bass Maitland:"
She said the name as if it would make me slide off the stool and scuttle for the door. I held fast. She drank some more wine.
"While you're waiting," I said, "may I buy you a glass of wine?"
"I… I'd… I would rather you didn't," she said.
"Okay," I said.
I sat and looked at her. She looked at me and looked at her watch
and glanced around the bar casually, the way a rat does when it's
cornered. I drank a little beer. She finished her wine. I was quiet,
still looking at her with a friendly look. Spenser-large but pleasant.
She looked at her empty wineglass. She glanced at me and smiled a half
smile. And glanced quickly down the bar toward the door to remind me
that Bass was imminent. I remained calm.
"Offer still stands," I said.
"Oh, well, very well. It's kind of you."
I gestured to the bartender.
"Martin," I said, "a glass of white wine, for the lady."
"You've been here before," she said.
"I've been everywhere before," I said in perfect imitation of Humphrey Bogart.
She didn't seem to recognize it.
"Really?" she said.
Martin brought the wine and looked at my beer. I shook my head.
"Sure, the other guy is Gary," I said. "Impressive, isn't it."
She smiled politely. Badinage didn't seem her strongest suit. She
drank nearly half of her new glass of wine. Maybe that was her
strongest suit. I didn't say anything. She looked around the bar again.
I had a swallow of beer. She drank most of the rest of her wine. I
nodded at Martin. She checked the doorway, looked at her watch,
finished her wine, and Martin brought her another one.
"Oh, I really couldn't," she said.
"Okay," I said.
She looked at the fresh glass of wine. A trickle of moisture ran down the side of the cold glass.
"I don't mean to be ungracious," she said.
"No offense," I said.
She looked at the wine. I swallowed a little more beer. She picked up the wine and drank some.
"No point in being stubborn," she said and smiled at me thinly.
She was wearing black sandals and a loose ankle-length black dress
with pink and yellow flowers printed on it. Her hair was pulled back
tight to her head and culminated in a long braid. Her skin was pale,
and she had on no makeup except some pink lipstick.
"How are you doing in your, ah, investigation," she said.
"Depends on how you define progress," I said. "I'm no closer to
finding out whether Robinson Nevins got jobbed in his tenure bid, but I
have found out that Prentice Lamont was a blackmailer, and that he was
murdered."
"Murdered?"
"Un huh."
"How do you know that?"
"I detected it."
"And what's this about blackmail?" Lillian said.
She was nearly finished with her third glass of wine and when Gary went by she gestured him for a refill.
"He was blackmailing homosexuals who would rather not be outed," I said.
She finished her previous glass and handed it to Gary as he set the new glass down.
"My God," she said.
"Exactly," I said.
She looked at me uneasily for a moment.
"Did you come here to talk to me?" she said.
"I followed you here," I said.
"Followed?"
"Yep. I need to know who told you that Lamont's suicide was connected to Robinson Nevins."
"I have already told you that is confidential information."
"Not anymore," I said. "I haven't gone to the cops yet, because I'm
trying to save everybody a lot of grief. But if I can't solve this
myself, I will take it to the cops, and you can tell the homicide guys,
who, by the way, are nowhere near as charming as I am."
"Homicide?"
"You are going to have to tell, Professor Temple. You can tell me, now, or you can tell the cops soon."
She looked at the door again, and around the bar, and at her watch,
and drank some wine and turned to me and said, "Difficult choices."
"Not really," I said. "One's easy, one's hard, same outcome."
She stared at me for a moment, looked away, looked down at her wine,
looked back at me, but couldn't hold the took. Staring at the wineglass
she said, "Will he have to know I told?"
"Probably not," I said. "I can't guarantee it, but I won't tell if I don't have to."
She nodded, still staring into the wineglass.
"Amir," she said.
"Amir Abdullah?"
"Yes."
"He told you Prentice Lamont and Robinson Nevins were having an affair?"
"Yes. And that Robinson broke it off cruelly and Prentice killed himself."
"He say how he knew this?"
"No."
"And you took it and reported it whole, as he told it."
"I had no-have no-reason to doubt him. Amir is a very principled man."
I had some reservations about exactly how principled Amir Abaullah
was, but I let them slide, because Bass Maitland had arrived. He was
strolling in from the front door. By the way Lillian was looking at him
he might have been walking on water.
"Bass," she said.
"Hi, Lil," he said in his big round satisfied voice.
He was wearing a seersucker jacket, well-faded blue jeans, a black
polo shirt with the collar turned up, and deck shoes, no socks.
Lillian said, "You remember Mr… the detective we talked to."
"Spenser," I said.
"Oh, absolutely. How are you?"
He gave me the kind of big firm handshake that a big firm man would
give. He was so pleased with himself that it was infectious. I almost
liked him.
"Is this a coincidence," he said with a big smile, "or are you staking us out?"
"Holding your place for you," I said, and stood up.
"Appreciate it."
He took my seat and smiled again, like an affable crocodile. He was
probably a very principled man, too. So were they all, all principled
men. And women. There were few things more annoying than a visibly
principled person. Or more troublesome. Most of the ones I'd met could
have used a little uncertainty to dilute their principled-ness. But it
didn't seem a fruitful topic to discuss with Bass and Lillian, so I
said good-bye and went off to get my dog.
Chapter 34
The call came from KC Roth just after I had settled in to watch the Sox and the Angels from the West Coast.
"Come quickly," she said. "Please. I need you."
She sounded teary.
"What's your problem?"
"Louis."
"What about Louis?"
"He came back."
"Really?"
"Oh, please, come quickly. Please."
"Why?"
"He, he… please come."
"What did he do?"
"He… violated me."
"Do you mean he raped you?"
She was silent.
"Did he rape you?" I said.
"Yes."
"Have you called the police?"
Oh, God no, I can't talk about this with the police. I, please, I have to see you, you're the only one."
"When did this happen," I said.
"Just now. He just left."
"He's gone."
"Yes. He beat me and he violated me."
"Have you been to the doctor?"
"No. I told you. I can't…"
"Don't take a shower," I said. "Don't bathe or wash yourself. Stay
still. I'll be there in half an hour. Will you be all right until then?"
"Yes."
"Okay. When I get there I'm going to take you to the doctor."
"No."
"Unless you agree to that I won't come."
"I… I can't…" She was crying.
"You'll have to promise. Otherwise I'll hang up and call the Reading cops and it'll be you and them."
"No… oh why are you so awful?"
"Promise?"
She was silent, sobbing.
I waited.
"Oh yes, goddamn you," she said and hung up.
I got dressed and drove up to Reading. She was hugging herself
looking out the door waiting for me. Until I saw her I thought she
might be making it up. Now I was pretty sure she wasn't. Someone had
slapped her around pretty good. Her upper lip was swollen and one eye
was puffed. It would be shut by morning. She had on a white tee shirt
and gray sweatpants and moccasins. Her hair was a mess.
"Oh God," she said, and backed away as I came in.
"Come on," I said. "Hospital."
"You're really going to make me?"
"You bet," I said.
I took her arm. She flinched away for a moment. But I kept hold and she relaxed enough to go with me.
The on-call gyno who showed up at the emergency room was a young
woman with red hair and a good backside who whisked into the examining
room, took one look at KC, and whisked me out with one brisk
all-inclusive gesture. I sat in the waiting area and looked at people
with bruises and cuts and breathing problems and stomach pains as they
came and went. I read several ancient copies of People magazine, which
left me feeling like I'd eaten too much fudge.
After about an hour, the gyno came out and said, "Mr. Spenser?"
"Me," I said.
"Come in please."
I went in. KC was in a johnny and those silly slippers that they
give you. Her hair had been combed and her face washed and she seemed a
little foggy. A large black woman in a nurse suit hovered around and
looked at me disapprovingly.
"I'm Dr. Tripp," the red-haired woman said. "Mrs. Roth says I may speak freely with you. What is your relationship to her?"
"Employee," I said.
"In what capacity?"
"I'm a detective. She hired me to prevent this from happening to her."
"She may wish to rethink that," Dr. Tripp said.
"She may," I said. "Was she raped?"
"She was."
"No doubt of it?"
"None. There's vaginal bruising. There's semen. The police have been notified."
KC stared at her.
"No," she said thickly. "I don' wan' that."
"Mrs. Roth, I'm required to," she said. "Neither you nor I have a choice."
"Tranquilizer?" I said.
"Valium. You're not with the police."
"No. I'm a private detective:"
"Really," she said. "Do you know who did this?"
"I think so," I said.
"No. He din't," KC said. "I will swear he din't."
Dr. Tripp stared at her.
"You'll protect the man who did this?"
"I don' know who did," KC said.
Dr. Tripp looked at me. I shrugged.
"I would like to keep her overnight," Dr. Tripp said.
"I think that's a good idea," I said. "Maybe you can put the cops off until tomorrow."
"One reason I want her to stay," Dr. Tripp said.
"Will you stay wi' me?" she said to me. "I won' stay 'less you stay wi' me."
"It's permitted," Dr. Tripp said.
"Oh good," I said.
Spending the night sitting in a chair by KC Roth's bedside was about
as appealing as a Howard Stern film festival. I took in a lot of air
through my nose and let it out the same way. Dr. Tripp and the black
nurse and KC all stared at me with various degrees of male-oriented
hostility.
"Sure," I said. "Be glad to."
Chapter 35
In the morning, under the stern gaze if Dr. Tripp, the Reading cops
were solicitous, and KC was uninformative, and I was tired. KC insisted
that she didn't know her assailant. The cops clearly did not believe
her but couldn't figure out why she'd protect him, and neither could I.
They had a young female assistant from the Middlesex DA's office who
seemed bright and sympathetic and was pretty clever in some of her
questions but not bright enough, or apparently sympathetic enough. KC
refused to change her story and finally resorted to crying, which
worked. The crying may have been sincere. She had been beaten and
raped, but I also knew that she could cry at will, and life had made me
cynical.
After the cops left and the bright young sympathetic DA went with
them, Dr. Tripp told KC that a social worker would stop by to talk with
her in a while. And that Dr. Tripp felt that KC should stay another
night. KC nodded. Her crying had dwindled to sniffling. She patted her
unswollen eye with a Kleenex and blew her nose and sat up a little
higher in the bed.
"Keep that eye cold," Dr. Tripp said as she went out.
We were alone. I handed KC one of the compresses from the tray on her bedside table. She held it against her nearly closed eye.
"No one here but you and me," I said. "I won't tell, you have my word on it, but I have to be sure. You said it was Vincent."
She started to cry again. Not boo boo, more sniff sniff, but still crying. She seemed to be hiding behind the cold compress.
"Dip that in the ice water," I said. "It was, wasn't it?"
She cried some more.
"Damn it, KC, yes or no? You don't have to speak. Just nod. You said it was Vincent."
Nod.
"Thank you," I said.
We were quiet. She sniffled a little more and stopped.
"Will you kill him for me?" she said.
"No," I said. "But I'll make sure he leaves you alone."
"You promise?"
"I promise."
"I think he's a little crazy," she said. "You know how it's crazy time when a romance breaks up."
"Um hmm."
"I can count on you, can't I?"
"Yes."
"I feel as if I've known you all my life."
"You haven't," I said, "and you're a little crazy yourself, right now. But you'll be better."
"Of course I'm crazy," she said. "What I've gone through. I have a right to be crazy."
"Of course you do," I said. "But only for a while."
The social worker stuck her head around the partly open door.
"Can I come in?" she said.
"Tell her yes," KC said to me.
"Come in," I said.
The social worker was a thin-faced black-haired woman wearing round glasses with green rims.
"I'm Amy Coulter," she said, "from Social Services. Dr. Tripp asked me to come and see you."
"Sit down," I said. "I'm leaving anyway."
"Where are you going?" KC said.
"Home," I said. "Sleep."
"You'll come back?"
"Like esophageal reflux," I said.
I always tried to make my similes appropriate to the ambiance.
Surprisingly neither Amy Coulter nor KC remarked on it. Too bad Dr.
Tripp wasn't there. She'd appreciate my kind of quality medical humor.
Chapter 36
I stopped for coffee and a couple of donuts, and then went straight
to Susan's house and let myself into her living space. I submitted to
five minutes or so of lapping and jumping about from Pearl before I got
her quieted down enough so I could take off my clothes and lie on the
bed in my shorts. Always game for a nap, Pearl jumped up on the bed,
turned around several times, and got ready to lie down beside me. I was
asleep before she did.
When I woke up Pearl was gone. I looked at my watch. It was 6:20 in
the evening. I got up and walked around the house. I noticed that
Susan's purse was on the front hall table, and Pearl's leash was gone.
I went back into the bedroom and took a long shower and shaved in the
shower and put on clean clothes from the wardrobe stash I kept at
Susan's place, and was pouring two ounces of Dewar's over a lot of ice
in a tall glass when Pearl and Susan came back from their walk. Pearl
bounded about the way she does when she knows supper is imminent, and
Susan, more restrained, came over and gave me a kiss on the mouth.
"Good to see you up and about," Susan said. "When I came up from the office and found you I thought you might be dead."
I poured club soda over the ice in my tall glass, getting it as
close to the top as I could, without it being so full I couldn't pick
it up without spilling.
"Did you have a plan for how to deal with that?" I said.
"If you were still dead when I came back from walking the baby," Susan said, "I was going to call someone."
I got a bag of Kibbles 'N Bits dog food out of the cupboard and put
a cup and a half's worth into Pearl's bowl. I knew it was Pearl's bowl
because it said Pearl in violet script on the outside.
Susan said, "She likes it with cheese, remember."
I got some shredded cheese out of the refrigerator and sprinkled
some over the food and put it down on the floor. Pearl did like it with
cheese. She also liked it without cheese, or with sawdust. Susan went
into her bedroom, and I sat at the counter and sipped my scotch and
soda. Susan came out in a while barefooted, in a dark blue tank top and
white shorts, with her hair combed, and wearing fresh lip gloss.
"Got any snacks?" I said. "I appear to have slept through lunch."
Susan got an elegant wine goblet sort of the color of sea mist from
another cabinet and poured some Merlot into it, and took a small sip.
"I have some rice cakes," Susan said. "And some broccoli sprouts,
and…" She got up and opened her refrigerator door and gazed
in…"half a bagel."
"Gee, a cornucopia," I said.
Susan had great glassware and wonderful china and beautiful silverware and no food.
"And some shredded cheese, but that's for the baby…" She
closed the refrigerator and opened the cupboard. "… and some
bite-sized shredded wheat."
She turned and looked at me optimistically, as if I might like shredded wheat and broccoli sprouts with my scotch and soda.
"That's okay," I said. "We can order out."
"Chinese?" Susan said.
"Yes, a bunch of everything, and tell them to hurry. In a little while it will be a medical emergency."
Susan called and ordered a bunch of everything including some
broccoli, sauce on the side, and steamed rice. Then she came back and
sat across the counter from me and took a sip of her wine.
"What I don't get," I said, "is this creep beats her up and rapes her and she won't tell the cops."
"But she admitted it to you."
"Yes."
"Well, that aside, consider it from her perspective," Susan said.
She was leaning her elbows on the counter holding her sea mist wine
goblet in both hands, looking at me over the top of it. I had a fresh
drink.
"Okay," I said, "she leaves her husband for the man of her dreams and the man of her dreams turns out to be an abusive rapist."
"Bad mistake," Susan said. "But to report him to the police is to certify that mistake."
"So?"
"So maybe it means her husband wins and she loses," Susan said.
"And she'd rather shield her rapist than lose to her husband?"
"It's not just that she loses, it's that he has the triumphant
gratification of seeing her be humiliated for her own folly. It might
be worse for her than rape."
"So why does she tell me?"
"Because she has to tell someone. Because she needs you to protect
her. Because she somehow has learned already that you won't judge her.
Because you may have replaced, what's his name?"
"Louis Vincent."
"You may have replaced Louis Vincent as the man of her new dreams."
"Well," I said. "You would certainly know what that's like."
Susan paid no attention. When she was thinking she was filled completely by the subject of her thoughts.
"And," Susan said and smiled slightly, "because you knew anyway. And
she'd cozy up to you by making you the only one she'd tell."
The doorbell rang. Pearl went ballistic as she always does when the
doorbell rings. I went downstairs and paid for the Chinese food and
brought it back up. The smell of fresh delivered Chinese food almost
defines anticipation. Pearl barked once at me when I came into the
living room before she realized I wasn't a bell-ringing intruder, then
got a whiff of the food and became very focused. I put it on the
counter prepared to eat it from the cartons, but of course Susan had
set the counter and put out place mats and silverware and a pair of
ivory chopsticks for herself. She liked to eat with chopsticks. I did
not. Susan served.
"If she won't tell the cops, of course, this becomes my problem."
"Oh really," Susan said.
"What do you mean `oh really'?"
"Given what we know about her, and the letter you showed me," Susan said, "isn't that exactly what she would want?"
I thought about it.
"Yes," I said. "But she couldn't have contrived the rape."
"No, I'm sure she didn't. But she has exploited it, consciously or not, to serve what she thinks is her best interest"
"Which is me."
"Yes."
"Because I'm so debonair?"
"Because KC is a cliche. For whatever reasons, she needs a knight to
gallop in and save her, and if it's a debonair one, so much the better."
"My strength is as the strength of ten…"
"I know," Susan said. "What did you promise her."
"What makes you think I promised her anything?"
"Because I have been with you for a very long time, Sir Percival. What did you promise her."
"That I'd make sure he left her alone."
"Perfect," Susan said. "What are you going to do?"
"I spoke with him once," I said.
"And it didn't take," Susan said. "How vigorous are you prepared to be?"
"I gave my word," I said.
"Perhaps Hawk," Susan said.
"No. Hawk didn't give his word. I gave mine. I can't ask him to do something because I don't want to do it:"
"No," Susan said, "I know you can't."
We were silent. Pearl put both front paws on the edge of the counter
and gazed at the food. I gave her an egg roll and she dropped down and
dashed to the couch to eat it.
"Vincent must be in the grip of his own pathologies," Susan said. "You are able to frighten most people off."
"I know."
"You won't kill him," Susan said.
It wasn't a question.
"No."
"Perhaps you and Hawk could broach the subject to him together."
I nodded.
"Many white men are more afraid of black men than they are of other
whites," I said. "If he's one of them we could exploit his racism."
"My thought exactly," Susan said.
"Can you do anything to help KC?"
"You mean professionally?"
"Whatever. She sure as hell needs something."
"I can't be her shrink," Susan said. "I've known her too long, and I am not, ah, above the fray."
"You're not?"
"You may recall a few phrases from the lovely little mash note she
stuck in your mailbox. Such as: `when you were with me, you might learn
things that Susan can't teach you."'
"That means nothing to me," I said.
"It means something to me," Susan said.
"Are we feeling a little unprofessional jealousy?" I said.
"We are feeling a little unprofessional desire to kick her fat little ass," Susan said.
I was drinking scotch and soda and eating chicken with cashews and the girl of my dreams was jealous. I smiled happily.
Chapter 37
Hawk came into my office at about 3:30 carrying a brown paper bag.
With him was a barrel-bodied black man with short, slightly bowed legs
and long arms. The black man had gray hair and the kind of amused eyes
that Robert Benchley used to have. Hawk put the bag on my desk and
pulled one of my office chairs around, and the gray-haired black man
sat in it.
"Spenser," Hawk said. "Bobby Nevins."
I stood and came around and shook hands with Nevins. Hawk went to
the Mister Coffee machine on top of my file cabinet and began to make
some coffee. I looked in the paper bag. There was a large square
loaf-shaped something wrapped in aluminum foil.
"Corn bread," Bobby Nevins said. "Hawk always like corn bread."
Bobby Nevins was a legend. He'd trained fighters for more than fifty
years. All of his fighters could fight. All of them were in shape. None
left the ring broke. None were strolling queer street. In a business
riddled with charlatans his word was good. Hawk had the coffee brewing
and came back and sat down in the other client chair.
"Bobby in town to see about how we doing with his kid," Hawk said.
I nodded, thinking about the corn bread.
"And I got some things you don't know 'bout yet."
"Would everybody like me to open the corn bread up while the coffee's brewing?" I said.
"Sure," Hawk said. "Okay with you, Bobby?"
"'Course," Nevins said.
His voice came from deep in his chest and seemed to resonate in his
barrel body before it emerged. I unwrapped the corn bread and set it on
the unfolded foil in the middle of my desk. It smelled good. From my
desk drawer I got a large switchblade knife, which I had once taken
away from an aggressive but clumsy drug dealer, and now used as a
letter opener. With it I cut three squares of corn bread. Hawk brought
over the coffee. I took some corn bread. And chewed it carefully and
swallowed it and drank some coffee.
"My compliments to the chef," I said.
"Always liked to cook a little," Nevins said. "Now I gotten older
got more time. Hawk says this thing about my boy is turning into a hair
ball."
"Hawk's right," I said. "Thing is I still don't know quite why he
was jobbed on the tenure thing. It seems like the only thing I can't
find out. Meanwhile I've got a murder and some blackmailing-which, as
far as I know, has nothing to do with your kid."
"Anybody paying you for this?"
"Corn bread will do," I said.
"Ain't right, you not getting paid."
"I owe Hawk a favor."
Hawk snorted.
"A favor?"
"A favor or two," I said.
Nevins nodded. He ate some more corn bread and drank some more
coffee. Hawk got up and took Nevins' cup and refilled it, pouring in a
little milk from the mini-refrigerator, stirring in two spoonfuls of
sugar. He brought the cup back and set it in front of Nevins on the
corner of my desk. Nevins picked it up and took a sip and held the cup.
"Thank you, Hawk," he said.
Hawk nodded. Nevins looked at me.
"You think Robinson is queer?"
"Don't know," I said.
"I don't either. Hard thing for a boy to tell his father, I imagine."
I nodded.
"He's forty years old," Nevins said, "ain't never been married."
"Hawk and I have never been married either," I said.
"How you know about me?" Hawk said.
"Who would marry you?"
"Okay," Hawk said. "You got a point."
Nevins paid no attention.
"Thing is it don't matter much," he said. "Still my son."
"Yes," I said.
"I was forty-two when he was born," Nevins said. "Coulda been his
grandfather. His mother was only twenty-three, schoolteacher, fresh out
of college. I coulda been her daddy."
Hawk and I were silent, drinking coffee, listening to Nevins. There was no age in Nevins' voice, no weakness in him.
"She left when she was thirty."
"Another man?" I said.
"Another one and another one," Nevins said. "Probably still going on."
There was no resentment in Nevins' voice either, not remorse, nor anger, nor self-pity, only the sound of retrospection.
"Always sent her money for Robinson, and, I say this for her, she
never kept me from seeing him on the weekend. But I know she didn't
like boxing, and I pretty sure she didn't like me, and I don't believe
she kept quiet 'bout it to Robinson. So be hard for Robinson to feel
real close to me. He was a real smart little kid. He loved to read. He
was kind of scared of the fighters. I used to take him to the museum
and the public library and places, never read much myself, but I knew
that was where his life was going to go. Too bad I didn't know more
about things like that. We could never talk much. Spent a lot of money
getting him through Harvard College and all those other schools he went
to so he could be a professor, and I think he knows that. Probably
could tell his mother he was queer, but I don't think he could tell me."
"You want us to find that out?" Hawk said.
Nevins thought about this for a while, sipping his coffee slowly, looking past the cup at the long corridor of time past.
"No," he said. "Don't matter."
We were quiet.
"Tell me 'bout the murder and blackmail."
"I'll tell you what I know," I said, "and what I'm guessing."
Which I did.
Nevins didn't say a word as I talked. His gaze was steady and
somehow both benign and stern. When I was through I looked at Hawk.
"You got something?" I said.
"Un huh."
"Were you planning to share it?"
"Un huh."
I cut another small piece of corn bread. I had learned from Susan
that cutting off one small piece at a time was better for you even if
you ate the whole thing one small piece at a time. Hawk got himself
some more coffee. He looked at Nevins.
"Bobby?" he said.
Nevins shook his head. Hawk looked at me. I shook my head. Hawk came back and sat down.
"Been watching Walt and Willie," Hawk said.
He looked at Nevins.
"They the people inherited OUTrageous I told you about."
Nevins nodded. He was nearly motionless as he sat. Time made no difference to him.
"Might be they knew about the blackmail. Might be they carrying it on. So I'm watching them, see what develops."
"Sneak up on them in the dark better, too," I said.
"Like you could in a snowstorm," Hawk said. "Which one is the little blond queen?"
"Willie."
"He stepping out on Walt," Hawk said.
"Walt know this?"
"Don't know. Don't seem mad when he around Willie. Want to know who he stepping out with?"
"Yes I do."
"Your friend and mine, Amir Abdullah."
"Oh ho," I said.
"Oh ho?"
"Yes. That's what you say if you're a top-level sleuth and a clue falls out of a tree and hits you on the head."
Hawk looked at Nevins.
"Honkies are strange people, Bobby."
"What's the clue?" Nevins said.
"The connection between the OUTrageous folks and the tenure folks.
Amir's the one who told the tenure committee that Robinson had an
affair with Prentice Lamont. OUTrageous had a list of possible people
to out with your son's name on it and the phrase `research continues."'
"So what does that mean?"
"Research continues?"
"No, what is the, ah, significance, of all that?"
"Hell, Mr. Nevins, I don't know. It's just more than we knew before.
And maybe Abdullah got it from Willie, or maybe Willie got it from
Abdullah-which would be my guess."
"Don't help my son get tenure."
"Not yet."
"Strange system," Nevins said. "Keep you for life or they fire you."
"I know."
"Robinson wants to be a professor at the university," Nevins said.
"We going to get that for him, Bobby," Hawk said.
I would have been happier if he hedged it a little, but Hawk wasn't much for hedging.
"I hope so," Nevins said.
Me too.
Chapter 38
I was taking a walk. Sometimes when I had to think I liked to walk
along the river. Today was especially good for that because it was
raining pleasantly. It was warm and there was no wind, just the steady
moderate rain coming straight down and dimpling the dark surface of the
river. I had on jeans and running shoes and a windbreaker and my old
Boston Braves baseball hat. Impervious.
Before I got Robinson Nevins tenure at the university, I had the
issue of Louis Vincent and KC Roth to resolve. I didn't have it in me
to walk up and kill him. I'd killed people. And maybe I would again,
but I'd always thought it was because I had to. Hawk would do it. He
was more practical than I was. He didn't wait until he had to. He'd do
it if it seemed a good solution to the problem-which it did. But I
couldn't ask Hawk to do things I was too squeamish to do. What I needed
to do was figure out what I was not too squeamish to do.
I crossed the little footbridge over Storrow Drive and onto the
Esplanade and turned west and strolled upriver. The narrow strip of
parkland ran along the Boston side of the Charles River all the way out
to Watertown and beyond. In good weather it was crowded with people
walking and jogging and walking dogs and bicycling and Rollerblading
and sunbathing. Today, except for a few people who owned intrepid dogs,
the space was pretty much mine. Not everyone understood about a walk in
the rain. Pearl, for instance, despite her great hunting lineage, would
not walk in the rain. Even for a cookie.
Squeamish was actually the wrong word for my hesitation. I would
have, in fact, loved to throw Louis Vincent off a bridge. But it seemed
somehow the wrong thing to do, and while I tried not to get hung up on
abstractions more than I had to, I couldn't seem to get around this
one. I could tell the cops he was the man, but as long as KC wouldn't
testify, what could we do that was legal? Hitting him hadn't worked. I
could hit him more, and harder. Which would be heartwarming, but if he
was as obsessive as he seemed, it might merely wind him tighter. I
needed KC to testify.
The racing crews in their eight-man shells were on the river, men's
teams and women's teams, which meant, I supposed, that some of the
shells were eight-woman shells, or that all of the shells were
eight-person shells. The crew coaches, in motorboats, hovered near them
like sheepdogs. During rest periods the rowers slumped over their oars
as if they were dead, letting the rain beat down on them without regard.
I thought about Susan's analysis. KC's refusal to identify Louis
Vincent seemed to be as much about her ex-husband as it was about Louis
Vincent.
At the B.U. Bridge I turned back, my collar up, my Braves hat pulled
down over my eyes, liking the feel of the rain as it came down in a
straight easy fall, watching the idea coalesce. By the time I got back
to my place the idea was nearly complete, or as complete as it could be.
I stripped off my wet clothes and tossed them in the washer, took a
hot shower, toweled off, and put on fresh clothes. Then I went to the
kitchen. It was 5:20 in the evening. Time enough for the first drink of
the day, maybe past time. I filled a pint glass with ice, put in two
ounces of scotch, and filled it with soda. I took the first sip. The
first sip wasn't the best thing in the world, but it was in the top
five. And trying to recapture the first sip is a reminder that maybe
you really can't go home again. I picked up the glass and inspected my
food supply. It was embarrassingly similar to Susan's. But there was a
head of garlic and a can of black beans and some linguine and some
biscuits left over from breakfast.
I put the biscuits in a low oven to warm. The coalescing idea
unified and I knew what I was going to do. I drank a toast to my brain.
Then I tucked a dish towel into my belt to make a little apron, the way
my father used to, got out a knife and separated the garlic head into
cloves and peeled the cloves. I cooked the garlic on low heat with some
olive oil in a fry pan for a while, and while it was cooking I heated a
large pot of water. When the water boiled I added a dash of olive oil
and a little salt and put the linguine in. When the garlic cloves were
soft I added some sherry, and as it began to cook down I opened the can
of black beans and drained off the liquid and dumped them in with the
sherry and olive oil and garlic and put a lid on the fry pan. I toasted
my coalesced idea again and the glass was empty and I mixed another. It
was still good, but it wasn't the first one. The first one wouldn't be
available until tomorrow.
I sprinkled a little cilantro in among the black beans, garlic,
olive oil, and sherry. When everything was cooked I tossed the black
beans with the linguine and got out the biscuits and sat at my kitchen
counter by myself and ate the pasta and sipped the scotch and soda and
wondered if my plan would work. There was a lot I couldn't control, but
it was a better plan than any of the others, except maybe just shooting
Louis Vincent. But since I didn't think I should do that, and wouldn't
ask Hawk to do it, and had promised KC that Louis Vincent would bother
her no more, and since I had had two scotch and sodas, it seemed a very
fine plan indeed, with every chance of succeeding. Of course, a lot
depended on Burton Roth. But he'd seemed a solid guy when I'd met him,
and I had hopes. On the other hand, if I didn't have hopes what the
hell was I doing in this business. I could always make a fine living
creating great suppers out of nothing.
Chapter 39
Early spring had drifted into late spring and it was still raining
the next morning. On my way to work, with my collar up and my hat
pulled down, looking dashingly noir, I stopped into a store on Newbury
Street called Bjoux, where I had been conspiring with the owner, a tall
good-looking woman named Barbara Jordan, about a surprise birthday gift
for Susan. Then I went to the office, and took time to clean up a few
old business things still unresolved. I answered some mail, looked at
my bank statements, and called a guy named Bill Poduska to ask him if
he was going to charge me for helicopter services on a missing-child
case I'd done last winter. I was hoping he might say it was pro bono,
because the client hadn't paid me, even though I'd gotten the kid back.
Bill apparently knew that, because he said there was no charge. I said
thank you. Then I made some coffee, looked out at the rain for a while.
It was an especially good rain because there was thunder and lightning
with it and that always gave the weather a kind of charged tension that
I enjoyed.
After watching the lightning and counting the seconds until I heard
the thunder and figuring out by doing that how far away the storm was,
and wondering if that actually was accurate, and then wondering why I
in fact cared, I decided I had stalled on my plan long enough and
called Burton Roth with somewhat less confidence than I had felt after
two drinks the night before. We talked for half an hour and I had been
right after all. He understood the problem and was prepared to help me
solve it. Never a doubt in my mind. I told Roth I'd get back to him,
and hung up just before Hawk came in with raindrops still beaded on his
lavender silk trench coat.
"Got a plan?" Hawk said.
"Got a million," I said. "Or are you talking about a workable plan?"
Hawk unbuttoned his coat and went and stood looking out my office
window at the rain falling on the corner of Berkeley and Boylston.
"Bobby worried about his kid," Hawk said.
"Even after he met me?" I said.
"Bobby don't know about you."
"I'm not so sure about me sometimes either."
"I gave him my word," Hawk said.
"Yeah. Thanks."
"So what you got in mind?"
"Well, I was thinking about pitching it in and becoming a
caterer-you know? Leftovers R Us. Come in, take whatever there is in
the house, fix up a tasty meal?"
Hawk continued to stare at the rain through my window. I went over
and stood beside him and looked down. Puddles had formed and the
raindrops hitting the puddles made tiny eruptions. The lightning
skidded along the arch of the sky and shortly afterward the thunder
cracked. It was dandy.
"I'd target the WASP market," I said.
Hawk nodded. The rain slithered in thick rivulets down the outside
of my window. It diffused the lightning flash prismatically for a
transitory moment.
"Be about a hundred million white guys in this country," Hawk said as the electricity crackled in the sky, "I end up with you."
"Talk about luck," I said.
"Talk about," Hawk said. "What we gonna do about Bobby's kid?"
"Do what we always do," I said. "Keep dragging on the end we got hold of, see what we pull out of the hole."
"What end we got hold of?"
"Willie and Amir."
"So we follow them and see what's at the other end."
"Exactly," I said.
"That your plan?"
"You bet," I said.
"And you do this for a living?"
"So far," I said.
"We gonna share?" Hawk said.
"Yes, you take Amir, I'll take Willie."
"Okay I give Amir a swat, I get the chance?"
"Long as he doesn't spot you tailing him," I said.
Hawk turned from the window.
"How you doing with that other gig, the stalker?"
"I'm working on it," I said.
"You doing as good with that as you are with this?" Hawk said.
"No."
Hawk nodded and smiled.
"Leftovers R Us," he said. "Might catch on."
On the street below, people were shielding themselves from the rain
by various means, including but not limited to umbrellas. A woman went
by holding her purse over her head, another used a briefcase. Several
Boston Globes and at least one Boston Herald were also deployed.
"I figure I can buy a couple cases of cream of mushroom soup," I said. "And I'm in business."
"The basis of WASP cuisine," Hawk said. "While I walking around behind Amir Abdullah, you got any idea what I'm looking for?"
"We'll know it when we see it," I said. "We need to know two
things-who threw Prentice Lamont out the window, and why Amir was
trying to sink Robinson Nevins' tenure."
"'Cause Amir a creep?" Hawk said.
"Good enough for you and me, maybe not good enough for the university tenure committee."
"They overrule the English department," Hawk said.
"They can, Susan told me, and so can the dean," I said. "Though Susan says neither one likes to."
"So Robinson got a couple more shots."
"If we can come up with something," I said.
"We up against it I can always hold Amir upside down," Hawk said, "and shake him until something falls out."
"That's plan B," I said. "First we find out what we can by watching.
Otherwise while you're shaking him other people might scoot out of
sight."
"What other people?"
"That's what we're watching to find out."
"Why you think there's other people?"
"Leads somewhere," I said. "Assume there aren't any other people, and we don't know what to do next."
"You caterers do be some deep philosophical motherfuckers," Hawk said.
"We do," I said.
Chapter 40
Before we could unleash ourselves on Amir and Willie, we had Louis
Vincent to attend to. It was a tricky one to time. I had shared my plan
with Sgt. O'Connor of the Reading cops. He was keeping an eye on KC and
reported that she was home. Burt Roth had given me his beeper number
and said he'd be standing by. So it was all in place, at least for the
moment, and if Louis Vincent came out to lunch this noontime we might
be in business. If he didn't we'd have to innovate.
He did. I was standing in a doorway on the opposite corner of State
and Congress so I could see him whichever door he came out. State
Street was one way, so Hawk was idling his Jaguar, on the corner of
State and Broad, two blocks down. Vincent walked out onto Congress
Street wearing a Burberry trench coat and a tweed hat and turned the
corner and headed down State Street toward the waterfront. I let him
see me and as soon as he did he ran. It was a panic run. Hawk turned up
onto State Street and was idling at the curb when I caught Vincent.
Vincent tried to kick me and I turned my left hip and deflected the
kick and nailed him on the chin with a right hook. He sagged, I caught
him. Hawk was out of his car and had the back door open. I shoved
Vincent in, and went in after him. Hawk was back in and behind the
wheel by the time I got straightened up, and we were off to Reading. A
couple of pedestrians stared after us.
Vincent took a while to get over the right hook, so he was quiet as
we went down past North Station and through the old West End. As Hawk
went up onto the expressway at Leverett Circle, Vincent said, "What are
you doing?"
"Shut up."
"You can't… "
I slapped him across the face. It was more startling than painful. He put his hands up in case I was going to do it again.
"Shut up."
Vincent was a quick study, one slap was enough. He didn't say
another word as we went up Route 93. Hawk dialed Burt Roth's beeper,
punched in his car phone number, and hung up. As we were passing
Medford Square the car phone rang, Hawk spoke into it a moment, and
hung up. Vincent looked worried but didn't say anything.
"He'll be there," Hawk said to me without turning his head.
Vincent looked more worried when we turned off at the Reading exit
and even more worried when we headed north on Route 28 toward KC's
place. A Reading police car was parked out front. Roth was in the
parking lot in a green Subaru station wagon. When we pulled in, I got
out and waved at the Reading cruiser. Sgt. O'Connor gave me a thumbs-up
sign out the window as he pulled away. Hawk had gotten out and was
standing by Vincent's door. I went around and opened it and jerked my
head at Vincent.
"Where we going?" Vincent said.
Hawk reached in, got hold of his hair, and dragged him out headfirst.
"Hate a rapist," Hawk said.
Burt Roth got out of his car and walked toward us. And stopped in
front of us and looked at Vincent. Roth's face had no expression.
"You know each other?" I said.
"Know of," Roth said. "We've never met."
"Who are you?" Vincent said.
"Burt Roth."
"Jesus."
"Let's go inside." I said.
"I don't want to go in," Vincent said.
I took his arm and moved him firmly toward the door. As I did so he had half an eye on Hawk.
"Nobody here cares anything at all about what you want, Louis."
I rang the doorbell and KC answered. Even here, in the face of what
must have been a genuinely shocking event, her reaction had a
theatricality about it. She stared and then opened her mouth and then
staggered back several steps into her living room. Burt Roth went first.
"It's okay, KC," he said. "Everything is okay."
Her eyes were wide and she made small noises which were not quite
crying. It was as if she couldn't get enough air into her lungs to
actually cry. I moved Vincent in ahead of me and Hawk followed us and
closed the front door and folded his arms and leaned on it. Talk about
theatrical.
KC said, "Burt," in a strangled kind of voice. She didn't look at Vincent.
Roth spoke softly and fast.
"This is kind of like an intervention, KC. People who care about you gathered together to help you get past a hard thing."
"You care about me?"
"Of course. No false messages. Our life together is over, I believe.
We each have another life to live. But I've known you most of my adult
life. We share a child. Of course I care about you."
She was trying so hard to pretend that Vincent wasn't there that it made all her motions stiff as she avoided seeing him.
"I don't even know that man," she said looking at Hawk. Hawk smiled
at her. When he chose to he could look as warm and supportive as a
cinnamon muffin.
"He's with me," I said. "We brought Vincent."
When I said his name it was as if I had jabbed her with an electrode. She winced visibly and looked very hard at her ex-husband.
"What are you going to do?" she said.
"This man raped you, KC," Burt Roth said quietly. "You are too important to let someone misuse you that way."
"You know… ?"
"I know he did, KC."
"I never… " Vincent started.
Hawk put his hand on Vincent's shoulder and said, "Shhh."
Vincent seemed to freeze when Hawk spoke to him.
"You made a mistake with him, maybe," Burt Roth said. "Everybody
makes mistakes. You probably made one with me, too. But they are
honorable mistakes. Mistakes made for love. The best kind of mistake to
make."
KC was staring at him as if she'd never seen him or anything quite
like him. I wasn't sure how much of what he was saying he believed, but
he was saying it well.
"And I'm determined," Roth went on, "that you will not have to suffer as you've suffered for making honest mistakes."
"God," KC said, "I have suffered."
"And if we don't put this creep where he belongs." He nodded at Vincent and paused.
I admired how clever he was at avoiding specifics.
"If we don't," Roth said, "will he rape you again? Who else will he rape?"
He paused again, and looked steadily at KC.
"Maybe one day he'll rape Jennifer," Roth said softly.
KC made kind of a moan, and stepped back again and sat down on the
edge of her couch as if her legs had given way. Again I believed her
sincerity, without missing the contrived quality of it. Maybe she was
simply an endless series of contrivances and when they had all been
peeled away she could cease to exist.
I said, "Did Louis Vincent rape you, KC?"
She stared at Roth for a time as if I hadn't spoken, then, for the first time, she looked at Vincent.
"Yes," she said.
Behind her eyes genuine hatred crackled, for a moment, like heat lightning.
"Yes he did," she said.
Vincent started to speak, looked at Hawk, and didn't. His gaze
shifted rapidly around the room, as if he could find a place to run. He
couldn't. I walked over to the end table beside the couch and picked up
her phone and called Sgt. O'Connor. Roth sat down on the sofa beside
KC. She put her hand out and he took it. Hawk looked at Roth and nodded
his head once in approval. For Hawk that was the Croix de Guerre.
O'Connor came on the line.
"Spenser," I said. "We have your rapist if you'd like to come up and get him."
I hung up the phone and turned. Vincent was staring at me. Suddenly
his eyeballs rolled back in their sockets and he fell backward. Hawk
stepped aside and let him fall against the wall and slide to the floor.
He lay on his back with his eyelids open over his white eyeballs and
his mouth ajar. We all looked at him.
"Rapist appears a little vaporish," Hawk said.
Faintly I could hear the police sirens coming our way.
Chapter 41
I met Robert Walters of Walt and Willie in the late afternoon at a gay bar in the South End near the Ballet.
"Well, the world's straightest straight boy," Walt said when I came in.
He was drinking red wine. And I could tell that he'd been doing it for a while.
"Good to be the best at something." I said.
The bartender had bright blond hair and an earring. The bar had Brooklyn Lager on draught. I ordered one.
"So what you want to talk about, Mister World's Straightest?"
I saw no reason to vamp on the subject.
"I'd like to talk about the blackmail doodle you guys were running with OUTrageous."
"Huh?"
"I'd like to talk about the blackmail doodle you guys were running with OUTrageous."
"Doodle?"
"You guys were discovering closeted gay people and threatening to
out them if they didn't give you money. I'd like us to talk about that."
Walt finished the rest of his wine and motioned to the bartender.
"I'm going to switch to martinis, Tom."
"Belvedere," the bartender said, "up with olives."
"You got it," Walt said.
I waited. Walt watched as the bartender mixed his martini and
brought it to him. The bartender put out the little napkin, set the
martini on it, and went away. Walt picked up the martini carefully and
took a sip, and said "ahh." Then he looked at me, and as I watched him,
his eyes began slowly to fill up with tears.
"Whose idea was it?" I said.
Tears were running down Walt's face.
"Willie and I have been together for seven years," he said. His voice was shaky.
"Long time," I said.
Susan and I had been together for more than twenty, with little time
out in the middle. So I didn't actually think seven was a long time,
but it seemed the right thing to say at the moment.
"I never cheated on him," Walt said.
He drank most of his martini and then stared wetly into the glass, twisting it slowly by the stem as he talked.
"And here he is stepping out with Amir Abdullah," I said.
Walt looked at me as if I'd just leaped a tall building at a single bound.
"I'm a detective," I said. "I know stuff."
Walt finished his martini and gestured for another.
"That son of a bitch," he said. "He used to be Prentice's boyfriend, you know that?"
Walt was monitoring the construction of his second martini, and when
it arrived he sampled it immediately. He wasn't paying much attention
to me.
"So what about the blackmail?"
"Willie and I didn't know anything about it. We were serious about OUTrageous."
He studied his martini again for a time. His face was wet with tears.
"Then when Prentice died, Amir came to Willie and me. He explained
what Prentice had been doing. He said that it had a wonderful justice
to it, that queers without the courage to come out of the closet could
at least be made to contribute to those of us who were loud and proud
about it."
"Good to take the high road," I said.
"He said Willie and I ought to continue it," Walt said. "Said that it was a proud tradition."
"He want a cut?" I said.
"No. He said he didn't need the money."
Walt ate the single big olive from his martini, in several small bites.
"Willie loved it," Walt said. "He's always been more rebellious than me. Always ready to give the finger to the straight world."
"What's this got to do with the straight world?" I said.
"During Gay Pride he'd march in outrageous drag," Walt said. "Once
he went as a priest with the collar and everything, only wearing a
skirt, holding hands with two altar boys."
"That ought to shock them in Roslindale," I said.
"I was always kind of embarrassed by it," Walt went on.
He was having more trouble now, talking, because periodically he'd
have to stop and get control of his crying enough to continue.
"Willie used to tell me I was just playing into the straight guilt
trap, that I was ashamed of my sexuality. I guess I'm pretty
conservative. Willie was always much more out there than old stick in
the mud Walt. It's probably why it happened."
He was nearly to the bottom of his second martini. His speech was
slurring. I didn't know how much wine he'd drunk before I arrived.
Considerable was a fair guess. Right now it was working for me. He was
drunk and garrulous and had someone to talk to about his pain. But I
didn't know how long I had before he would get too drunk to talk. I
wanted to push him; but I had the feeling that if I pushed I'd remind
him that he was admitting to a felony and, drunk or not, he might shut
up.
"Why what happened?" I said carefully.
"Why Willie started fucking Amir," Walt said and started to cry full out.
The bartender looked at me. I shrugged. The bartender went to the
other end of the bar and began to reorganize some clean glasses.
"Who would blame him?" Walt said, snuffling and gulping. "Got this
uptight homophobic gay lover. Who wouldn't want somebody more
interesting, for crissake. Who wouldn't want somebody with more…
" He stopped and tried to get his breathing under control. "With
more… I don't know what, just more."
"I don't know a lot about this," I said, "but I do know that in a
situation like this if you can blame yourself it gives you hope. He's
out of your control, but if it's your fault, maybe you can fix it."
"I can change," Walt said.
He had some trouble with the ch sound.
"Sure," I said. "You think Amir had anything to do with Prentice going out the window?"
"Amir?"
"Amir Abdullah," I said.
"You mean do I think he killed him?"
He had a lot of trouble moving his mouth from I to think.
"You could put it that way," I said.
"I… I… I don't… " As he stumbled over his
answer, Walt got one of those crafty looks that drunks get when they
have this great insight, which in the morning will embarrass them.
"I bet he did," Walt said. "I bet he did an' I bet Willie help' him."
"Why?"
"'Cause he a sonfabish," Walt said. "They both sonfabish."
He pushed the nearly empty martini glass away from him and folded
his arms on the bar and put his head down on them and mumbled
"sonfabish" a couple of times and was quiet.
"Any evidence other than him being a son of a bitch?" I said.
I waited. Walt didn't move. The bartender ambled down the bar. Walt started to snore.
"Walt a friend of yours?" the bartender said.
"No," I said.
"Okay. He's a regular. Bar's almost empty. Let him sleep it off a little. When he wakes up I'll send him home in a cab."
"Good," I said.
"He's got a forty-three-dollar tab here," the bartender said. "Including your beer."
I put a hundred-dollar bill on the bar.
"My treat," I said. "Take his cab fare out of that too."
"Thanks."
"No problem," I said.
As I was leaving I contemplated the, albeit illusory, sense of power
one achieved by slapping a C note on a bar. Maybe I should start
carrying several. More important, maybe I should start earning several.
At the moment I was doing two pro bonos, one for Susan, one for Hawk. I
wondered if it was too late to cut myself in on OUTrageous. Maybe I
could earn a bonus by telling everyone everything about everybody.
It was raining again, but I was dressed for it, and the walk back up
to my office wasn't very far, and I liked to walk in the rain. So I
strolled the block down Tremont and turned up East Berkeley with my
hands in my pockets and my collar up, while the rain came down gently.
I thought about what I knew. I knew a lot, but nothing that solved my
problem with Robinson Nevins. It was clearly time to talk with Amir
Abdullah again. He almost certainly was a son of a bitch, but he didn't
look like someone who could have forced open that jammed window and
thrown anyone through it. On the other hand, he might know someone who
could.
Chapter 42
Hawk and I were parked on Commonwealth Avenue outside the former
Hotel Vendome, now a condominium complex. We had decided to conduct our
discussions with Abdullah in a different venue, the first discussion
having been a little brisk.
"Lives on the fourth floor front," Hawk said.
"Learned anything else about him?" I said.
"Stops by the packie on Boylston, couple times a week, and buys two,
three bottles of wine," Hawk said. "Usually before Willie comes
calling."
"Anybody else come calling?"
"Almost every day," Hawk said. "Young men. Any race. Look like students. Most of them are one time only."
"You think he's tutoring them in the formulaic verse of the North African Berbers?"
"Be my guess," Hawk said, "that they exchanging BJ's."
"Yeah," I said, "that's another possibility."
"He went away last weekend."
"Where?"
"Took a cab to Logan to one of those private airways service areas, walked out onto the runway, got in a Learjet and…"
Hawk made a zoom-away gesture with his hand.
"Came home Monday morning, went to class."
"Private jet?"
"Yep."
"You have any idea where?"
"Nobody I asked knew," Hawk said. "Plane was a Hawker-Sibley, left
at two thirty-five last Friday from in front of the Baxter Airways
building. Some numbers printed on the tail."
Hawk handed me a slip of paper.
"Somebody has to know," I said. "They have to file a flight plan."
"You know who to ask?" Hawk said.
"Not right off the top of my head."
"My problem exactly," Hawk said. "I bet Amir will know."
"Of course," I said. "Let's ask him."
"He's teaching a late seminar," Hawk said. "Doesn't get home until about seven."
"Good," I said. "Give us time to break into his apartment."
"You think he might not let us in if we knocked nice and said howdy doo Mr. Abdullah?" Hawk said.
"I hate your Uncle Remus impression," I said.
"Everybody do," Hawk said happily.
We left the car in a no parking zone and walked across to the
Vendome. Hawk said hello to the good-looking black woman at the
security desk and pointed at the elevator. She smiled and nodded us
toward it.
"Isn't she supposed to call ahead and announce us," I said.
"Un huh," Hawk said.
"Been busy," I said.
"Never no strangers," Hawk said, "only friends you haven't met."
"That's so true," I said, and pushed the call button for the elevator.
"You know," Hawk said as we were waiting for the elevator, "I
suppose Amir got the right to go off on a weekend without us coming in
asking him where and why."
"Absolutely," I said.
"But we going to ask him anyway."
"Absolutely," I said.
"'Cause we don't have anything else to ask," Hawk said.
"Exactly," I said and got into the elevator.
Hawk got in with me and pushed the button for the second floor.
"You ever think of getting into a line of work where you knew what you was doing?" Hawk said.
"Why should I be the one," I said.
"No reason," Hawk said. "Just a thought."
The elevator stopped. We got out. Hawk pointed left and we walked
down the corridor to the end door. I knocked, just to be sure. No one
answered. I bent over to study the lock.
"You want to kick it in?" Hawk said.
"Looks like a pretty good dead bolt," I said. "We'll raise a fair ruckus kicking it in."
"Might as well use a key then," Hawk said.
I looked up at him. He looked like he might spit out a canary feather.
"The Nubian goddess at the desk?" I said.
"Un huh."
"You sure you been keeping an eye on Amir all this time?" I said.
"She got a little closed-circuit TV can watch the lobby from her
bedroom," Hawk said. "While he in his apartment teaching young men
about them formulaic Berbers, I doing a little lesson plan with Simone."
Hawk unlocked Amir's door. We went in. The dark room was close,
heavy with the smell of men's cologne mingling with something that
might have been incense. I flipped the light switch beside the door.
The room was done in tones of brown and vermilion. There was a six-foot
African ceremonial mask on the far wall facing us between the
seven-foot windows. A squat fertility goddess from Africa's bronze age
stood solidly on the coffee table in front of the beige sectional sofa,
and a large painting of Shaka Zulu on the wall opposite the sofa. The
rugs were thick. The windows along the front were heavily draped. To
our left off the living room was a dining area, with a glass-topped
table ornamented with two thick candlesticks in tall ebony holders that
had been carved to resemble vines. A kitchen L'd off the dining area.
The bedroom and bath were to our right. The bed was canopied. On the
night table was a small brass contraption for burning incense. On the
bureau was a framed photograph of a stern thin-faced black woman with
her hair pulled tightly back and her dress buttoned up to the neck.
"Amir got some style," Hawk said.
"Incense is a nice touch," I said.
I sat on the couch. Hawk went over and turned the lights back off.
"Don't want Amir to spot it from the street," Hawk said. "Want him to walk right in and close the door behind him."
He came over, walking carefully while his eyes grew accustomed to
the dark, and sat beside me. He put his feet up on the coffee table.
"What's happening with the woman got raped?" he said.
"She's staying with her mother in Providence."
"She getting any help?"
"Susan referred her to a rape crisis counselor, down there," I said.
"She going?" Hawk said.
"I don't know. Her ex-husband said he'd pay for it."
"He likely to end up with her back in his lap," Hawk said.
"I don't think so. I think he's pretty clear about her."
Hawk was quiet for a time.
"'Course there's always your lap," he said.
"Not if I keep moving," I said.
"We got a plan what we do when Amir shows up?"
"We'll ask him a bunch of questions," I said.
"And when he lies to us?"
"We ask him some other questions."
"When do I get to hang him out the window by his ankles?" Hawk said.
"We can always hang him out the window," I said. "Trouble is then
he'll say anything he thinks we want to hear, and we may learn as much
stuff that's not true as we will stuff that is."
"You just too soft-hearted," Hawk said.
"Softer than you," I said.
"Probably both happy 'bout that," Hawk said.
"This visit we try it the easy way." I said.
"Might stir the pot a little," Hawk said. "Might make him do something that we can catch him at."
"Might," I said.
There was the sound of a key in the door. We were both on our feet.
Silently on the thick carpet I stepped into the kitchen, Hawk went into
the bedroom. The bolt turned. The door opened. The lights went on. The
door shut. I could hear him put the chain bolt on. I stepped out of the
kitchen and stood in front of Amir. There was an Asian boy; Japanese
was my guess, maybe eighteen years old, with Amir. The moment he saw me
Amir spun toward the door. Hawk had stepped out of the bedroom between
Amir and the door. Amir turned again and tried for the phone beside the
sectional sofa. I stepped between him and it. Amir stopped and looked
toward the bedroom. Not a chance. Same with the kitchen. He had nowhere
to go. He stood frozen between us. Behind him Hawk took the bolt off,
and opened the door slightly.
"You go home," he said to the Asian kid.
The kid looked at Amir. Amir had no reaction. He was stiff with panic.
"Now," Hawk said.
The kid turned and Hawk opened the door enough and the kid went out. Hawk closed the door and put the chain back on.
"Sit down," I said to Amir. "We need to talk."
"Don't hurt me," he said.
Amir's voice was shrill and thin-sounding, as if it was being squeezed out through a small opening.
"No need for hurting," I said. "Just sit down and talk with us."
"The boy saw you here, he'll tell the police," Amir said.
Hawk stepped up behind Amir, put his hands on Amir's shoulders, and steered him to the couch and sat him down.
"Stay," he said.
Amir stayed. Hawk sat on the couch beside him. I sat on a hassock
across from them, and rested my elbows on my knees and clasped my hands.
"Now, here's what we know about you. We know it was you who informed
the English department tenure committee that Robinson Nevins was sort
of responsible for the death of graduate student Prentice Lamont."
"I…"
Hawk said, "Be quiet, Amir."
"We know that you yourself were having a sexual relationship with Prentice Lamont before his death."
Amir opened his mouth, looked at Hawk, closed his mouth.
"We know that Prentice was blackmailing gay people who didn't want to be outed, and we know that you knew about that."
Amir sat with his mouth clamped shut, trying to look intrepid, determined to make a virtue of necessity.
"What else do we know?" I said to Hawk.
"We know you a chicken fucker, Amir," Hawk said.
Amir tried to look haughty. He was, after all, a professor.
"I don't even know what that means," he said.
"Sure you do," Hawk said. "Means you'd fuck a young snake if it was male and you could get it to hold still."
Hawk's expression was, as always, somewhere between pleasant and
noncommittal. Amir's expression failed at haughty. It was more a kind
of compacting silence, as if he was becoming less, dwindling as he
listened, freezing in upon himself.
"We know you advised the current staff of OUTrageous, namely Walt
and Willie, that they should continue the blackmail," I said. "We know
you declined to be a financial part of it because you said you didn't
need the money. We know you are currently having an affair with Willie,
which is causing Walt to refer to you as a son of a bitch."
"And," Hawk said, "we know you went away this weekend in a private plane."
"And here's what we don't know," I said. "We don't know if you made
up the story about Nevins, or if it's true. We don't know why you told
the committee about it in either case. We don't know why you condoned
the blackmail. We don't know why you didn't then take any money from
it. We don't know why you claim not to need money. We don't know where
you went this weekend. We don't know if you are responsible for
Prentice Lamont being dead."
The silence in the thick sweet stench of the living room was palpable.
Hawk said very softly, "We'd like to know."
"I didn't do a thing to Prentice," Amir said.
"Know who did?"
"Prentice killed himself."
"No," I said. "He didn't. Do you know who did?"
"Prentice killed himself," Amir said again.
"Who'd you go to see this weekend?"
"I didn't go anywhere," Amir said.
"You took a private jet out of Baxter Airways at two thirty-five last Friday."
"I didn't."
"We can run that down," I said. "You think people who are gay and don't want the world to know should be announced?"
"There's nothing shameful about being gay."
"I agree. But my question stands."
"Every gay person who announces himself proudly to the world is another step toward full recognition of our sexual validity."
We were beginning to discuss abstractions, and Amir was on firmer ground. His voice was less squeaky.
"Unless they pay off," I said.
"I think of it as a fine for noncompliance," Amir said.
"But you wouldn't take any of the money."
"I do very nicely thank you on my salary and my lecture tours and my writing."
"You have an affair with Prentice Lamont?"
"Prentice and I were lovers. There's nothing wrong with that."
"While he was in love with Robinson Nevins or before?"
Amir hesitated. He could sense a pitfall in the question.
"While," he said.
Wrong answer.
"So he was willing to cheat on Nevins but when Nevins left him he was so heartbroken that he killed himself?"
"You don't understand the gay life," Amir said.
"Why do you think Prentice killed himself?"
"Everyone thinks so," Amir said.
"And why did you tell the tenure committee?"
"I felt honor bound to do so."
"Honor bound," Hawk said.
Amir looked at Hawk sort of sideways trying to seem as if he weren't looking at him.
"I know you from before," he said.
"Sure, we come to your office, couple weeks back," Hawk said. "Boogied with some of your supporters."
"No, I mean a long time ago. I know you from a long time ago."
Hawk didn't say anything. His face showed nothing. But something
must have stirred in his eyes, because Amir flinched backward as if
he'd been jabbed.
I let the silence stretch for a while, but nothing came out of it. Amir was rigidly not looking at Hawk.
"Amir," I said. "I don't believe a goddamned thing you've said."
Amir stared straight ahead. I nodded at Hawk. We stood and went to
the door. I took off the chain bolt. We opened it and went out. Before
he closed it Hawk looked for a time at Amir. Then he closed the door
softly.
Chapter 43
I was with Robinson Nevins at the university in the faculty
cafeteria, drinking coffee. I was currently experimenting with half
decaf and half real coffee. Not bad.
"I met your father the other day," I said.
"Most people are impressed when they meet him," Nevins said.
"He's impressive," I said.
"Hawk's affection for him is sort of touching," Nevins said. "Since,
as you must know better than I, Hawk shows very little of anything, let
alone affection."
"You like him?" I said.
"He's my father," Nevins said. "I guess I love him. I'm not very comfortable with him."
"Because?"
"Because he is from a different world. Machismo is the essence of his existence, and I am remote from that."
"Is he disappointed in you?" I said.
Nevins looked startled.
"Why I… no… I don't think he is."
"I don't think he is either," I said.
"You talked about me?"
"Yes. He asked me if I thought you were queer."
"And?"
"And I said I didn't know. And he said he didn't know either, but
that it didn't matter much one way or another. You were still his son."
"I knew he wondered," Nevins said. "Forty years old and unmarried."
"I guess the time has come, I need to know," I said.
"If I'm queer?"
"Yeah."
"No," Nevins said. "I'm not."
"Might have saved you some grief if everyone knew that."
"Might have," Nevins said. "But I have always thought that it is
entirely corrupt to judge people based on what they do with their
genitals in private with a consenting adult."
"I think that's right," I said. "Here's an even worse question. Can you prove it?"
Nevins stopped with his cup half raised to his lips and stared at me
a minute, then he put the cup down, and folded his hands and rested his
chin on them and looked at me some more.
"Just how do we go about that?" he said. "Go down to the Pussy Cat Cinema, perhaps, see if I erect?"
"Maybe the testimony of satisfied females?" I said.
He nodded slowly, an odd half smile on his face.
"I don't like this much better than you do, but everybody's telling me nothing, and I need some kind of fact to wedge in with."
"What is really, what, ironic, I guess, is that at least one member
of the tenure committee knows perfectly well that I'm heterosexual."
"Care to share the name?"
He didn't say anything.
"Look." I said. "It would have to be a female. How many are there on the tenure committee?"
"Four."
"For crissake," I said. "I'm a detective. You think given four names I can't find out which one it was?"
"If I tell you, can you keep it to yourself?"
"I can keep it from anyone who doesn't need to know it," I said.
He still looked at me above his folded hands. The odd half smile faded. Finally he spoke with no expression at all.
"Lillian Temple," he said.
"If that's true," I said, "Lillian Temple knowingly lied about you
in the tenure meeting. She was the one who introduced the business
about Prentice Lamont."
Nevins nodded slowly, without taking his chin off his folded hands.
"Was this before she was Bass Maitland's main squeeze?" I said.
"While," Nevins said.
"Ah," I said. "And you are too gentlemanly to kiss and tell."
"That relationship is important to her. I don't want to destroy it."
"You're getting lynched here," I said, "and won't say anything in your own defense because it would be dishonorable."
Nevins shrugged.
"Honor requires difficulty," Nevins said.
"Jesus Christ," I said. "Your old man isn't the only one for whom machismo is the essence of existence."
Nevins widened his eyes at me as he sat there, and cocked his head slightly without lifting it.
"You think I'm motivated by considerations of machismo?"
"I hope so," I said. "I hope you're not crazy."
An old fat black woman in white sneakers shuffled to our table,
cleared the table debris, including the coffee cups we hadn't finished,
into the cart she was pushing, and shuffled on. Neither of us said
anything. I wasn't even sure she had seen us.
"Have you had other girlfriends," I said.
I wasn't even investigating anymore. I was simply interested.
"Yes, and I've been reticent about them because they have been white."
"Un huh."
"And… I don't know how to say this without sounding like a priggish jerk."
"It's okay," I said. "You're a professor."
He smiled sort of automatically.
"Well, I am badly overeducated. I can only relate well to women who are also badly overeducated."
"And most of those women are white."
"Yes."
We were quiet while the old fat black woman came back and wiped off our table with a damp cloth and moved on.
"I'd have thought interracial dating would not have caused problems in your circles."
"I don't know if it would have. I wasn't brought up to believe that
it wouldn't. My mother was very careful about staying on our side of
the line. I find it difficult to overcome my upbringing."
"I've heard that could be hard," I said. "So you kept your dating a private matter."
"Yes."
"And because you were single and forty it was assumed you were gay?"
"Single, forty, educated, bookish, unathletic—do you know I've never played a basketball game in my life?"
"A clear betrayal of your heritage," I said.
"You know, the funny thing, I have no interest in sex with other
men, but I am, in many ways, more at home in the gay community than the
straight. I found the gay world readily accepting of a black man and a
white woman. No one expected me to be Michael Jordan."
"No one expects anyone to be Michael Jordan," I said.
"You know what I mean."
"Yes, I do. You have a large number of gay friends?"
"Yes. I'm more comfortable in the gay world than I am in the black world."
I wasn't sure that worlds divided themselves so neatly as Robinson suggested, but that wasn't my issue. I nodded encouragingly.
"America expects black men to be macho," he said.
Again, I wasn't sure either of us was in a position to know what
America expected, and, again, it wasn't my issue. So I nodded some more.
"Of course," and he smiled suddenly, "I am also refighting the
family fight, you know, the refined mother and the father who trained
fighters?"
That sounded a little closer to it and I liked him better for knowing it.
"Yes," I said. "Being a straight man in a gay circumstance would be a nice way to do that, wouldn't it."
His eyes widened and he looked at me.
"Well," he said, "you're not…" He made a little oh-I-don't-know hand wave.
I finished it for him.
"… as stupid as I look," I said. "In fact I am. But I have a smart girlfriend."
"I'm impressed," Robinson said.
I went for the complete show-off.
"For a black man," I said, "dating white women might be another way of dramatizing his ambivalence."
"Your girlfriend must have had some therapy," Robinson said.
"She's a shrink," I said.
"Oh," Robinson said, "well, that's not fair."
"Of course not," I said. "I don't like to ask this, but may I speak to your current girlfriend?"
"Yes. Her name is Pamela Franklin. I'll give you her address."
He took a ballpoint pen and a small notebook from his inside pocket
and wrote for a moment and tore the page out and handed it to me.
"Thank you. Do you know Arnir Abdullah?"
"Yes."
"Comment?"
"Amir is a fraud. He's an intellectually dishonest, manipulative, exploitive charlatan."
"Know anything bad about him?" I said.
Robinson started to protest, caught himself, looked at me a moment, and smiled without much humor.
"You're joking."
"Yes."
"Perhaps you shouldn't joke so much," he said.
"Almost certainly," I said. "Tell me more about Amir?"
"He has created himself in the image of a black revolutionary,
without any vestige of a philosophical ground. I am not by nature a
revolutionary or an activist, but I can respect people who genuinely
are. Amir is not. He is a contrivance. He gets what he wants by
accusing anyone who opposes him of being a racist or a homophobe."
"Or a Tom," I said.
"Yes."
"Are you and he politically opposed?"
"I am not political," Robinson said. "But I disagree with almost anything Amir espouses."
"Have you been critical of him?"
"Yes."
"Would your denial of tenure benefit him?"
Robinson looked thoughtfully at the old fat black woman shuffling among the now nearly empty tables.
"Someone once remarked," he said, "I don't recall who, that the
reason academic conflicts are so vicious is that the stakes are so
small. There is no genuine benefit to Amir if I am denied tenure. But
it would please him."
"And it would reduce by one the number of people who could confront him without the risk of being called a racist."
"Given the number of black faculty members, that would be a significant reduction," Robinson said.
"How about Lillian?"
"What about her?"
"She and Amir are the two members of the tenure committee who told
the cops they had direct knowledge of your relationship with Prentice
Lamont."
"Lillian?"
I nodded.
"I haven't done anything to Lillian."
"And since we agree that the allegation is untrue, why would she make it?"
"I don't know," he said, "but I could hypothesize."
"Do," I said.
Robinson took in a long breath and let it out slowly.
"Most straight black men know someone like Lillian," he said. "She
has very little connection to what people outside of English
departments sometimes refer to as the real world. She doesn't do things
because they would be fun, or they would be profitable, or they would
be wise. She does things because they conform to some inner ideal she
has structured out of her reading."
"I've met Lillian," I said.
"Okay," Robinson said, and smiled, "a pop quiz: why would you guess she is in this long-term relationship with Bass Maitland?"
"Because he reminds her of Lionel Trilling," I said.
"Or Walter Pater," Robinson said. "You've got the idea. Now, for extra credit, why was she sleeping with me?"
"White woman's burden," I said.
"Yes." Robinson's face was suddenly animated. "And why did she stop?"
"You weren't black enough."
"Wow," Robinson said. "You're good."
"I've met several Lillians," I said. "If she transferred her
passions to Amir she could be supporting the aspirations of her black
brothers and sisters and still stay faithful to Bass."
"Yes, and I'm sure that's what happened because that was what she
thought she was doing. But she'll be unfaithful to Bass again."
"Because what she really liked was the sex?" I said.
"As long as she could disguise it under a mound of highmindedness."
"My guess is that Bass is not Lionel Trilling."
"No," Robinson said. "He's just your standard academic opportunist blessed with a good voice and nice carriage."
"We might have saved a.lot of time and aggravation," I said, "if you'd told me all this at the beginning."
"Or if you'd asked," Robinson said.
I nodded. "Both had the same reasons, I guess. Can you prove you had a relationship with her?"
"Obviously I can't prove I, ah, penetrated her. I've got some pictures of us together."
"I'd like the best one of you both," I said. "You meet anyplace where there'd be a witness?"
"Witness?"
"Did you check into a motel, have drinks together in Club Cafe? Spend the night at a friend's house on the Cape?"
"We spent several nights together at a little place in Rockport that is hospitable to black people."
"What's the name?"
"Sea Mist Inn," Robinson said.
"When's the last time?"
"We went up there last Labor Day weekend. Last time we went out."
"Thank you."
"I don't want to cause her trouble," Robinson said.
"Me either."
We were quiet then. The old fat black woman had shuffled out and we were alone in the empty dining room.
"You know," Robinson said after a while. "My father named me after Jackie Robinson."
"No one better," I said.
"I know. I guess I've always felt I never lived up to it."
"Nobody's Jackie Robinson," I said. "You're doing pretty well."
"I wish you were right," he said.
"I'm always right," I said. "I have a smart girlfriend."
Chapter 44
I was asleep when my car blew up. The sound of it woke me, and I got
to the window in time to see some of the fragments land on Marlborough
Street. Aside from the post-explosion fire, there was no activity on
the street. I looked at my watch, 3:35 in the morning. I couldn't think
of anything to do about my car. I didn't see a felon fleeing the scene.
But I was too wide awake to go back to bed, so I stood and watched. In
about ten minutes a police cruiser pulled up Marlborough and halted
near the now declining embers where once my car had been. I got dressed
and went down, and announced myself as the owner. While I was talking
with the cops, the fire department arrived and then a couple of arson
investigators, and my night was shot.
When I got to my office about ten in the morning, less rested than I
was used to, there was a message on my machine to call Captain Healy at
State Police Headquarters.
"Plane you were asking about," Healy said when I got him. "Private
plane owned by an outfit called Last Stand Systems, Inc. Flew from
Logan to Bangor, Maine."
"Do you know anything about Last Stand Systems?"
"No."
"Got an address for Last Stand Systems, Inc.?" I said.
"Beecham, Maine."
"That's it?"
"That's it," Healy said. "You ever heard of Beecham?"
"No."
"Me either."
"It's a wonder you got promoted to captain," I said.
"No wonder at all," Healy said and hung up.
I got out my atlas and looked up Beecham. It was on the coast,
southeast of Bangor. I called the office of the Maine Secretary of
State in Augusta and, after a while, learned that Last Stand Systems,
Inc. was a not-for-profit corporation. After another while, I got the
names of the principal officers, and the members of the board.
According to their incorporation papers Last Stand Systems was
committed to social and political preservation. After I hung up I
looked at the list of names. None of them meant anything to me. The CEO
was somebody named Milo Quant.
I called information and asked for Last Stand Systems, Inc. and got
it. I called them and asked for literature. They asked my name and
address. I told them I was Henry Cimoli and gave them the address of
the Harbor Health Club.
Then I called Henry and told him to look for the literature and asked him to have Hawk stop by. Which Hawk did in about an hour.
There was always something lustrous about Hawk. His shaved head
gleamed. He moved as if he were spring loaded. And there was about him
a kind of genial absence of affect that made him seem almost
otherworldly.
"I think we might have buzzed somebody's button," I said. "My car blew up last night."
"Trying for you?" Hawk said.
"I don't think so. It went off at three thirty-five in the morning,
a guy who could have rigged that device wouldn't have gotten the timer
so far off."
"Want to kill you he ties it to the starter anyway," Hawk said.
"Yes. But there's no way to know what I'm being warned about, yet."
"So they going to have to follow up," Hawk said.
"Un huh. Call me, write me, come and visit me."
"They'll come calling," Hawk said. "Show you they can reach you whenever they want."
"Yes," I said, "and see how I take the warning."
"You talk to anyone since we sat with Amir?"
"No."
"So maybe talking with Amir was the buzzer."
"Maybe. Or maybe busting Louis Vincent was the buzzer, and they just got around to following up."
"Nope," Hawk said, "this a warning. Too late to warn us off Vincent."
"Yeah," I said. "You're right."
"Who that plane belong to?" Hawk said.
"Last Stand Systems, Inc.," I said. "Out of Beecham, Maine."
"Beecham, Maine?"
"I never heard of it either," I said.
The door to my office was open so that Hawk and I could keep an eye
on Lila in the design office across the hall. Six men in close
formation came through the open door like a drill team. Two moved to
the left of the door, two to the right, and two marched straight up to
my desk.
"Maybe these guys know," Hawk said.
"You guys know where Beecham, Maine, is?" I said.
They looked like Secret Service men or IBM executives. They were all
in dark suits and white shirts. They all wore ties. They all had short
hair. They all were of northern European descent. When everyone was in
place the suit closest to the door pushed it shut.
One of the two men in front of my desk said, "Spenser?" He was
wearing horn-rimmed glasses, which made him look smart, probably why he
was the designated speaker.
"Yes," I said. "Is it on the coast?"
"Is what on the coast?"
"Beecham."
Horn Rims shook his head in dismissive annoyance.
"You've been put on notice," he said. "As of this morning at three thirty-five."
I looked at Hawk.
"Did you take those library books back like I told you?" I said.
Hawk was leaning against my file cabinet as if he might fall asleep. He smiled softly.
"Can't be librarians," Hawk said. "Librarians would know where Beecham is."
Horn Rims didn't change expression.
"You are to stay entirely away from Amir Abdullah. Repeat, entirely.
If you fail to comply you will be incinerated as was your car."
"How come," I said.
"You've been informed," Horn Rims said. "Your Negro friend as well."
"You guys associated with Last Stand Systems?" I said.
One of the guys in the back opened my door, and four of them marched
out. Horn Rims and his partner marched out after them. At the door,
Horn Rims' partner turned and aimed a semiautomatic pistol with a
silencer. He squeezed off three rounds; each shot broke one of the
three coffee cups that were lined up on the file cabinet about a foot
from Hawk. Hawk never moved. The gun disappeared. The door closed. We
were left with the silence and the smell of the gunfire.
Hawk looked at the remains of the coffee cups.
"Guy can shoot," Hawk said.
"Yes, my Negro friend, but is he a nice person?" I said.
Chapter 45
The pictures of Lillian and Robinson arrived in my office by FedEx.
I took them with me when I drove up to the Sea Mist Inn and talked with
the homey-looking woman at the desk. She remembered them clearly
enough, a black man and a white woman. They had registered as Mr. &
Mrs. Robinson Nevins on the Friday before last Labor Day, and, yes,
that was Mrs. Nevins in the picture.
I drove back to Boston and over to the university and took the
information and the pictures with me. I fell in beside Lillian Temple
as she came down the steps of the library carrying her briefcase. She
appeared to recognize me, but she didn't appear to take any pleasure in
it.
"Hi," I said.
"I'd prefer that you did not bother me while I'm at work," she said.
"Don't blame you," I said. "You know anything about the Sea Mist Inn?"
"Excuse me?"
"Sea Mist Inn, place up in Rockport where you and Robinson Nevins spent last Labor Day weekend."
She stopped dead in the middle of the quadrangle.
"Labor Day?"
I took the photographs from my inside pocket.
"I showed these pictures of you and Robinson," I said. "And the woman on the desk recognized you."
She stared at the photographs.
"This came on you kind of sudden," I said. "Should we sit on this bench, while you think about it?"
Without comment, she plopped down on a bench beside some evergreen
bushes near the entrance to the administration building. She was
staring at the pictures I still held for her.
"Those pictures don't prove anything," she said finally.
I put them back into my inside pocket.
"No, but they're suggestive, coupled with what the Sea Mist lady told us, and what Robinson Nevins said."
Again she was silent, staring at the place where the pictures had been. She let out a long breath.
"Well," she said, "you seem to have invaded my whole life."
"Just doing my job, ma'am."
Lillian looked at me somberly. "Not a job one can admire," she said.
If Lillian had a sense of humor, I had no idea how to access it.
"So," I said. "Since we can assume you know Robinson Nevins was heterosexual, a question presents itself."
Lillian continued to look at me with blank sobriety, which might
have been her attempt to look stern. Lillian's mind didn't seem to move
very quickly, even for a professor. While the question had come upon
her rather suddenly, it was a pretty obvious question. I waited.
Finally she said without affect, "What question?"
"Why you reported to the tenure committee a story about Robinson Nevins that you had considerable reason to doubt."
"He could have been bisexual."
"Yes he could have. Did you think he was?"
"I didn't know he wasn't."
"Did you ask him?"
"Of course not." She was, maybe genuinely, outraged. "One's sexuality is neither my business nor yours."
I looked at her for a while, aware of my breath going in and out.
"It's breathtaking," I said. "You have ruined a man's career by
repeating a slanderous allegation you know to be false, and you still
find a way to mouth moralistic platitudes when you're caught."
"I'm sorry you think the right to privacy is a moralistic platitude."
"I am also not sure if you know that you keep diverting the topic or
not. I don't think you're smart enough, but now and then I'm fooled."
She stood, holding her briefcase with both arms, as if I'd tried to cop a feel.
"I do not have to sit here and allow you to berate me," she said.
"No you don't," I said. "And neither will the Dean of Liberal Arts, when I discuss it with him."
She sat back down again, hugging her briefcase a little closer.
"You'd go to the dean?"
"Yep. Probably go to Bass Maitland, too. And probably the student newspaper."
She was horrified. The look of haughty incomprehension had been replaced by wide-eyed staring fear.
"I want a lawyer," she said.
"Sure," I said. "Go get one. I'm not a cop. You're not under arrest.
But I now know that Robinson Nevins got jobbed in his tenure hearing,
and I know by whom, and I can prove it, and I will. What I don't know
yet is why, but I'm not sure why matters."
The class break had ended and the next period had begun. The
quadrangle was relatively empty. Some students sat on the library steps
smoking, and listening to headphones, and talking and thinking about
sex. In the small plot of dirt where the evergreens grew by the steps
of the administration building, some tough-looking city birds,
starlings mostly, and a few sparrows, pecked industriously for whatever
birds peck after. In front of the university, MBTA trains stopped and
let people out and took people on before they tunneled back underground.
Finally in a voice that sounded almost girlish Lillian said, "You wouldn't understand."
"Probably not," I said.
She took her left hand off her briefcase and began to play with the hair at the back of her neck.
"A university faculty is special. It is a place, maybe the only place, where the ideal of a civil society still flourishes."
"I can see that," I said.
If she heard me she didn't show it.
"Robinson is a decent man, but he… he has no place on a
university faculty. He is not… how to say this… he is not
consistent with the current best thinking on racial matters."
"How is he at teaching English?" I said.
"That's a fallacy. A university faculty is not simply about
teaching, it is about creating and passing on culture. The university
is a place where the best minds must be allowed freedom to contemplate
the most basic human issues. A university faculty is the progenitor and
propagator of culture."
I was certainly glad I had said "by whom" a while ago.
"Would you say Robinson is out of step with current racial thinking
in the sense that he does not see it as genocidal to teach dead white
men in his classes?"
"That's part of it, though of course you would put it in a way that makes it sound puerile."
"So you felt obligated to lie about him to the tenure committee because he was not the right kind of black guy," I said.
"Again you have demeaned my point," she said.
"Someone ought to," I said. "I'm glad I could be the one."
"I did what I thought best in the larger context."
"Let me get one thing clear," I said. "This bastion of civility
you've been speaking of, is Amir Abdullah a tenured member of it?"
"Yes."
"I refute it thus," I said.
She came out of her abstraction trance enough to look puzzled.
"Is that a quote?" she said.
I couldn't stand her anymore. I stood.
"Samuel Johnson," I said. "Look it up." I left.
Chapter 46
Unless I am under actual attack, I always read the paper in the
morning while I drink coffee. If I'm away I read whatever morning paper
is local. When I'm home I read the Boston Globe. So when Henry dropped
off the literature from Last Stand Systems on his way to work on
Tuesday morning, I put it aside until I had drunk my third cup of
coffee and finished the comic section. Then I folded the paper back up
and put it aside in case I wanted to consult it later. Sometimes
"Doonesbury" was too hard for me the first time through and I had to
reread it later.
The stuff from Last Stand Systems was obviously computer-generated,
though it was pretty professional-looking with colors and
right-justified margins and typefaces that someone had thought about.
It was also dreck. The centerpiece of their promotional literature was
a newsletter titled Alert! which warned against the encroaching
mongrelization of the white race, the feminization of the American
male, the homosexual assault on marriage, the debasement of American
Christianity, and the arrival of the Antichrist. There was a thoughtful
discussion, complete with footnotes and bibliography, of a secret plot
which festered deep within the power centers of the federal government,
abetted by Zionism, whereby this country would be handed over to the
One Worlders at the UN. The author signed himself Octavio Smith, Ph.D.
The writing was grammatical and wooden.
I put Alert! down and picked up the other stuff. There was a letter
from the CEO, Milo Quant, explaining that Last Stand's mission was to
restore the America our fathers had founded. There was also an
application for membership, and a calendar of upcoming Last Stand
events. I filed the application which required a $100 fee and looked at
the calendar. It was mostly a list of Quant's public appearances. The
closest one was at the state college in Fitchburg, Mass., Friday night,
sponsored by a student group. A don't-miss opportunity.
Last Stand Systems, Inc., seemed the most unlikely organization to
be flying a black homosexual radical activist named Amir Abdullah up to
Maine for the weekend. But they had, and there was no plausible
explanation that I was able to come up with. It was also possible that
they had sent out a squad of well-scrubbed shooters to chase us away
from him. Again I couldn't think why. Maybe they were using him as a
recruiting ploy. Enough exposure to Amir Abdullah would make anyone a
racist homophobe.
My office door opened. It was Susan. She had a small bag of Key lime
cookies she'd bought somewhere and wanted to share them with me over
coffee. Sharing meant Susan ate most of one cookie, and I ate all the
rest in about the same amount of time. I had no problem with that.
"There's a fund-raiser at the ART Friday night," Susan said. "I'd like us to go."
She had put the cookies out on a little paper plate and was making coffee.
"Oh darn," I said. "I have to drive out to Fitchburg State and listen to a speech by a racist homophobe."
"Well," Susan said, "I couldn't ask you to give that up. Decaf all right?"
"Sure," I said. "Want to can the ART and go with me?"
I watched her as she spooned the coffee into the filter. She always made it too weak.
"Yes," she said, "but I can't. I'm on the board, you know. I just hate to go alone."
"Bring Hawk," I said. "He's got a good sense of humor."
"Oh my," Susan said.
We were silent for a moment, both of us thinking about Hawk at the fund-raiser.
"Whyn't you add another heaping spoonful of coffee," I said.
"Won't it be too strong?" she said.
"No, and a pinch of salt."
"Okay," she said and did what I said, although I could tell by the
set of her shoulders that she knew the coffee would be salty and much
too strong to drink. She turned on the coffeemaker and stood looking
down at it while it began to brew.
"I'm missing you," she said while she watched.
"Yeah, I'm missing you, too."
"I feel like we haven't seen enough of each other," Susan said.
"Working couples," I said.
"Do you think we can get away soon, just the two of us, somewhere?"
"Yes," I said. "A mystery ride?"
"I'd love that," Susan said.
"I'll put something together for us."
"I don't want to tour the new ballpark in Cleveland," Susan said.
"And you don't want to go to Cooperstown," I said, "and visit the Hall of Fame."
"That still leaves a lot of options for us," Susan said.
"I guess so," I said. "I wonder if KC Roth would like to see the Hall of Fame."
"She's probably in it," Susan said. "They probably retired her diaphragm."
"Her diaphragm?"
"I'm an old-fashioned girl," Susan said.
"And not a jealous bone in your body."
"Not one," Susan said.
The coffee had brewed enough to fill two cups. Susan poured it and
put the pot back, added milk and Equal, and brought the two cups to my
desk.
"Why are you going to listen to a speech by a racist homophobe?" she said.
"His name popped up in the Robinson Nevins case."
"Really."
I was on my second cookie. Susan had a small bite out of hers. The
coffee was just right. I knew she thought it was just right too, but
wasn't saying so because she was stubborn.
"Last weekend a plane came to Logan and picked up Amir Abdullah and
took him up to Bangor. The plane belonged to Last Stand Systems, Inc.,
of Beecham, Maine, and this speaker is the CEO of Last Stand Systems,
Inc., which appears to be at the far right end of the family values
movement."
"Is that being put kindly?" Susan said.
"Very," I said. "We asked Amir about this. He denied that it happened."
"So what will you learn by going to the speech?"
"Don't know," I said. "See what this guy looks like. Hear what he
sounds like. Maybe I'll get to ask him about Amir. Mostly I don't know
exactly what else to do, so I'm going to do that. You know, keep
looking until I see something."
"I know very well. We do somewhat the same thing in therapy."
We finished our cookies and drank our coffee.
"Coffee's just right," I said.
"I thought it was a little strong," Susan said, "and a tad salty."
I grinned at her. I got up and walked around my desk and stood in front of her.
"I love predictable," I said. "Will you give me a big lingering open-mouthed kiss?"
Susan patted her lips with a little paper napkin that had been in the bag with the cookies. She stood.
"Yes," she said. "I will."
Chapter 47
I got a call at my office the next morning from KC Roth inviting me
to lunch. I figured I was safe in a public place, so I accepted. We met
at the Legal Sea Foods restaurant in Chestnut Hill, and because we were
early we didn't have to wait long.
"I've moved back into civilization," KC said, when she was seated across from me with a glass of white wine.
"Chestnut Hill?" I said.
She shook her head.
"Not enough dollars," she said. "Place in Auburndale, the first floor of a nice two-family."
We looked at menus and ordered. KC had another glass of white wine.
"I… I have to say things," she said.
"Okay."
"I…I'm sorry about some of the crazy things I did. Calling you up and leaving you notes."
"No harm," I said.
"I was just… crazy, I guess. Crazy time, you know?"
"I know."
"And of course I want to thank you for saving me."
"Just had to convince you to save yourself. Your ex-husband was more useful than I was."
"Yes. Burt was there for me. Sometimes I think I made a mistake. I
could be there now in a nice house with someone taking care of me."
"You can take care of yourself," I said.
"I didn't do much of a job of it before," she said.
"Your ex-husband send you money?" I said.
"Alimony."
"Enough?"
"Enough to be independent," KC said.
"Or dependent."
"Sure, men always say things like that. You have no idea what it is
like to have been a married housewife forced suddenly to take care of
herself."
"You're right," I said.
She sipped her wine. The restaurant was busy. Legal Sea Foods are always busy.
"You think I should get a job?" she said.
"I think if you supported yourself and didn't take money from your ex-husband, in the long run you'd feel better about things."
"I wonder if he's seeing anyone.
" I didn't say anything.
"He was there for me," KC said.
"And he urged you not to misunderstand," I said. "He reminded you that you and he had different lives to live."
"Of course you'd stick up for him. Men always stick up for each other. The old boys' network."
"I'm not so old," I said.
"Oh pooh," she said. "You know what I mean."
The waitress brought chowder for KC and lobster salad for me. KC
took the opportunity to order another glass of wine. We each had a
taste of our lunch. KC's wine came and she had some.
"But," she said, "I didn't ask you to lunch to complain."
"Oh," I said.
"I just wanted the chance to let you know that I understand how much you've done for me."
"My pleasure," I said.
"Is he-whose-name-shall-not-be-mentioned going to be in jail a long time?"
"Ask me after his trial," I said.
"What if he doesn't go to jail?"
"He will."
"But what if there's, you know, a miscarriage of justice?"
"Then we'll take the necessary steps," I said.
"You'll still be there for me?"
"It's sort of what I do, KC."
"But I haven't even paid you."
"I know."
"What if he comes back and I still can't pay you?"
"We'll work it out," I said.
"I… I just don't think I can cope if I don't know you're there."
"Where?" I said.
"You know, there for me."
"As I said, that's sort of my profession."
"You mean you're there for anyone who hires you."
"More or less," I said.
She was taking in more wine than chowder, which was shame because
the chowder at Legal was very good. I finished my lobster salad.
"When you were sitting by my bedside," KC said, "after the…
that awful thing happened to me, I thought maybe I might be more than
just someone who had hired you to be there."
I didn't like the way this conversation was going.
"Part of the service," I said.
She put her hand out and placed it firmly on top of mine, and stared into my eyes.
"God damn it," she said, "can't you see I love you?"
I felt like I'd wandered into a remake of Stella Dallas.
"I don't think so," I said. "I rescued you from a bad situation. And
you need to be in love with someone to feel secure and you don't have
anyone else to love at the moment, and I'm handy and you think I'm it."
"Don't tell me what I feel," she said.
"Are you still seeing the therapist Susan recommended?"
"Drive all the way to Providence twice a week to talk about my father? I don't think so."
"Susan can get you someone up here."
"You think I'm crazy?"
"I think you need help in figuring out who to love and who to trust and what you need."
"Talk talk talk. Why can't men ever simply feel?"
"You need help in not generalizing, too," I said.
She stood up so suddenly that she knocked over her empty wine glass.
She came around the table and threw her arms around me and kissed me on
the mouth. I sat stock still feeling like a virgin under siege. Flight
seemed unbecoming. KC was pushing the kiss as hard as a kiss can be
pushed. I remained calm. When she broke for air she leaned her head
back and stared into my eyes some more.
"I love you, you bastard," she said. "Don't you understand that I love you."
"If you don't let go of me," I said, "and sit back down, I will hit you."
She straightened up as if I actually had hit her, and stared at me,
and began to cry. Sobbing loudly, she turned and ran from the
restaurant. Everyone in the place watched her leave, and then looked at
me with either disapproval (almost all of the women, some of the men)
or sympathy (several of the men, one woman). My waitress remained
unperturbed. She brought me the check.
Chapter 48
The post office in Beecham, Maine, was located in one corner of a
variety store in a small weathered-shingle building at the top of a
short hill which led down to the harbor. The coast of Maine was tourist
country, and a lot of shopkeepers had adopted a kind of stage Yankee
persona in order to fulfill expectations.
"I'm looking for Last Stand Systems," I said.
The shopkeeper/postmaster was a fat old guy wearing a collarless
blue and white striped shirt, and big blue jeans held up by red
suspenders.
"In town here," he said.
As he answered me he eyed Hawk. The look wasn't suspicious exactly,
it was more the look you give to an exotic animal that has unexpectedly
appeared. The way he might have looked if I'd come in with an ocelot on
a leash.
"Where in town?"
"Out the Buxton Road," he said.
"Does it have an address?" I said.
"Beecham, Maine."
The shopkeeper was seated on one of four stools bolted to the floor
in front of a marble-topped soda fountain, his fat legs dangling, his
fat ankles showing sockless above a pair of moccasins. There were
donuts under a glass dome, and straws and napkins in chrome dispensers.
"Does it have a number on it?" I said.
"Nope."
"If I went out the Buxton Road how would I recognize it?"
"See the sign out front."
"The one that says Last Stand Systems, Inc.?"
"Yep."
"That should help us," I said.
"Might."
"How do we get to the Buxton Road?" I said.
"Right out front. Turn right."
"You been working on this act for a long time?" Hawk said.
The old fat guy almost smiled for a moment, but fought it off and stayed in character.
"Yep," he said.
"Real hay shakers wear socks," Hawk said.
"Some do," the old fat guy said.
Hawk grinned.
We turned and went back out and got into Hawk's car and turned
right. Nearly all the houses were white and set on low foundations.
Many had long porches that wrapped around the front and one side where
people could sit in rocking chairs and look across the street at people
sitting in rocking chairs looking across the street. The Buxton Road
barrel-arched over a fast-moving little river and then flattened out
between tall pines on the right and the sea-foamed boulder-scattered
coastline on the left. The sea birds seemed livelier on this coast.
There was very little of the effortless gliding that gulls did in
Boston. Here, they flashed above the waves, and dove into the foam, and
scooted over the rocks and snapped food out of the tidal ponds that
formed among the rusty-looking granite chunks. About a mile out of town
there was a narrow drive off into the pine trees. A small sign, black
letters on white wood, read Last Stand Systems, Inc. Hawk U-turned and
pulled up onto the shoulder at the opposite edge of the road above the
ocean fifty yards down past the sign.
"We could be bold," Hawk said.
"And if it's the outfit that sent the well-dressed shooters," I said, "we could be dead."
"Or, we could be guileful."
"Guileful?"
"Guileful."
"I vote for guileful," I said.
"Good," Hawk said, "what you suggest?"
"You don't have a plan?"
"I come up with the strategic concept," Hawk said.
"Is that what that was?" I said. "I thought you were just showing off you knew a big word."
"That too," Hawk said.
"Okay, let's sneak around in the woods and see what we can see."
"Covertly," Hawk said.
"Of course," I said. "Covertly."
Hawk and I were both in work clothes, which meant jeans, sneakers,
tee shirt. I wore a blue oxford dress shirt with the tails out to hide
the Browning on my belt. Hawk mostly used a shoulder holster. To
conceal it he was wearing a gray silk sport coat. He took it off and
folded it carefully on the backseat. He had a big .44 Mag under his arm.
"Doesn't the weight of that thing make you tip to the side?" I said.
"It do," Hawk said. "But you never know when you might have to shoot an elephant."
Hawk put the car keys over the visor.
"Case we need wheels real quick," Hawk said. "Don't want to be looking for the keys."
"'Course this could be an outfit of pleasant people who make umbrella stands," I said.
"With an unlisted number and a private jet," Hawk said.
"Just a thought," I said.
We crossed the road and went into the woods. It had that bittersweet
scent that the woods often have on a hot day. Except for the whine of
locusts, and the occasional movement of the wind off the ocean, it was
very still. Pine needles were six inches thick underfoot. We made very
little sound as we walked. We walked in a wide circle aiming to come to
Last Stand Systems, Inc. from a direction other than the road. It was
easy going. There was very little underbrush. It was as if the land
beneath the high pines had been carefully cleared. In about twenty
minutes we saw the compound. Not much to see. It looked like it might
once have been a manufacturing facility that had been recycled. There
were three cinder block buildings with those high glass windows that
nineteenth-century industrial buildings used to have, the kind that
have a fine wire mesh running through them. The buildings were painted
flat white. The compound was surrounded by a high chain-link fence with
razor wire on top.
I climbed a tree. From there I could see that the buildings faced
onto an open area about the size of a football field. An American flag
was on a flagpole in front of one building. A couple of men in dark
suits and white shirts came out of the building by the flagpole and
walked across the open area and went into the building across the way.
I looked down. Hawk had taken a seat under the tree with his back
against the trunk and his ankles crossed and appeared to be asleep,
though he probably wasn't.
I sat in my tree some more. There's something about sitting in a
tree when you're a grown man that makes you feel like a doofus. But it
was a feeling I understood, I'd had it before. I sat, doofus-like, and
looked at the layout. To my left was a gated entrance with a guard
shack manned by a guard. The gate was open, folded back out of the way
against the chain link fence. The central building with the flagpole
was directly opposite the gate. It was clearly the administrative
place. The suits continued in and out of there. The other two buildings
seemed to be a barracks and maybe a supply warehouse. A couple of green
Jeeps and a black Lincoln stretch limo with tinted windows were parked
in front of the administration building. They all had Maine plates. I
noted the plate numbers.
As I watched, a man in starched fatigues and wearing a pistol belt
strolled slowly along the fence. There was a radio on his belt on the
hip opposite the pistol, and a microphone clipped to his epaulets. At
the corner he stopped and spoke to another guy with the same equipment
who had obviously walked down his length of fence. One of them leaned
his hand against the chain-link as they talked. Which meant the fence
was not electrified. The other two lengths of fence were hidden by the
buildings. I watched as my guy turned smartly and strolled back along
his fence and, sure enough, met another guard at the other corner.
Being a trained observer I concluded that the perimeter was guarded by
four men. I watched some more. The guards went back and forth. After
about a half hour a squad of four other men in starched fatigues came
out of the far building under the direction of another guy and they
marched out to change the guard. I sat some more. In the next hour and
a half I counted at least twenty men in starched fatigues and side arms
either guarding the perimeter or marching about in the compound in
something resembling close order drill. My left knee was beginning to
hurt where I'd gotten shot once. I wasn't sure I could stand the
excitement of another guard change, so I climbed back down the tree and
stood and stretched out my knee a little. Hawk tilted his head back and
looked at me.
"So, Hawkeye," he said. "What'd you see."
"Looks like something between an IBM retreat and Parris Island," I said.
"Got a perimeter guard," Hawk said.
"I counted about twenty guys in fatigues and side arms," I said.
"Don't seem necessary for a bunch of pleasant umbrella stand makers," Hawk said.
"No," I said. "It doesn't."
"We tough enough to go in there and roust twenty guys?" Hawk said.
"Of course we are," I said.
"How 'bout stupid enough?" Hawk said.
"Sure, but then what? I don't even know what we're looking for in there."
"Same thing we looking for when we drove way the fuck up here," Hawk
said. "We trying to figure out the connection between Amir and this
outfit."
"Oh yeah," I said. "And we're doing that because we think it might help us figure out who threw Prentice Lamont out the window."
"Exactly," Hawk said.
"Shooting it out with twenty guys may not be the best way to get that information."
"Specially if only one guy's got the information and you kill him."
"A definite possibility."
"Or we might both get shot to pieces and then the thing wouldn't ever get solved," Hawk said.
"Unlikely," I said. "But not impossible."
We both looked at the gleam of the white cinder block buildings
through the lacy distraction of the trees. The high locust whine was so
much a part of the woods that it had become nearly inaudible. The
bittersweet smell of the woods was stronger as the sun had gotten
higher.
"I think guile is still our best option," I said.
"So what the guileful thing to do?" Hawk said.
"Go back home, maybe have a couple beers, and think about it," I said.
"Works for me," Hawk said.
Chapter 49
Heading back to the car we were maybe twenty yards from the highway when we both stopped short at the same time.
"You smell it?" I said.
"Cigarette," Hawk said.
I nodded. Hawk took his elephant gun from the shoulder holster and
stuck it into his belt at the small of his back. He shucked off the
shoulder rig and dropped it and moved off to the right. I went left. We
emerged onto the highway bracketing the car, Hawk ten yards beyond it,
me ten yards this side. There were four of them leaning on the car.
They had on uniforms and carried side arms. An unmarked blue Jeep was
parked behind Hawk's Jag. I sauntered toward them with a big friendly
smile.
"Hi," I said. "You waiting for me?"
One of them turned toward me. He was still wearing his horn-rimmed
glasses and it still made him look smart. Of course, appearances can be
deceiving.
"This your car?" he said.
After he said it, he stared at me and I could see recognition begin to form behind his lenses.
"Actually it belongs to my Negro friend," I said.
They had not planned on being approached by two people at the same
time from opposite directions. They should have divided the chore. Two
look at me. Two look at Hawk. But they hadn't decided in advance, and
therefore didn't know, which two should look at whom. Training is good,
but sometimes innovation is better.
"I know you," Horn Rims said.
"And a better man for it," I said.
Hawk and I kept coming. Horn Rims put a hand on the radio at his
belt and turned his head and spoke something into the microphone
clipped to his epaulets. Then he unsnapped the flap of his holster.
"Stop right where you are," he said.
"Here?" I said.
For a moment all four of them were looking at me. When two of them
looked back at Hawk, he had put the car between him and them and was
resting the big .44 on the roof with the hammer back.
One of them said, "Jesus Christ," and all four looked for a moment
at Hawk. When two of them looked back at me I had the Browning out and
cocked and pointed.
"You guys got to be better organized," I said. "Move away from the car."
Horn Rims glanced toward the driveway. He was expecting
reinforcements. I stepped closer and hit him with a left hook that
staggered him into the road. Then I got in the car and fumbled the keys
down from the sun visor. Hawk remained with his gun on the security
guards.
"You're a dead man," Horn Rims screamed at me. "Wherever you run,
whatever you do, even if you kill some of us, we'll run you both to
ground and kill you."
From up the long driveway I could hear the sound of cars coming. More than one. I started the Jaguar.
I heard Hawk say, "Watch this."
There were two big booms from the .44 and in the rearview mirror I
could see the Jeep settle forward on its rapidly deflating front tires.
I heard Hawk say, "All of you on the ground, facedown."
Then Hawk was in the front seat. I stomped on the accelerator and
the Jag lunged forward spinning up gravel from the road shoulder. We
lurched up onto the road surface and screeched away. I could smell the
tires scorching and there was some small-arms fire, but nothing hit us.
Hawk slammed the door shut as the car stabilized and smoothed out.
"We going to have to do something about these guys," Hawk said.
I was driving as fast as the Buxton Road would let me back toward
Beecham. Hawk had the cylinder of his .44 open and was feeding in two
fresh rounds that looked about the size of surface-to-air missiles.
"I'll bet they're back there saying the same thing," I said.
Chapter 50
I had the mystery ride all put together. Until I figured out exactly
what Hawk and I were going to do about Last Stand Systems, Inc., I
wanted the time I spent with Susan to be covert. I was in a profession
where getting threatened was part of the deal. So was Hawk. But Susan
was not. So I left Hawk to look out for himself for a long weekend and
took Susan for a few days to Lee Farrell's empty condominium at Sanibel
Island on Florida's west coast. It was late June, and as out of season
as you could get. But I was pretty sure no one would shoot at us while
we were down there.
It was all right on the plane, and in the car rental office, and the
car we rented was air-conditioned. The walk from the car to the
elevator and the ride up in the elevator was not air-conditioned, and
we were near collapse by the time I got Farrell's door unlocked. The
condo was roasting. It had been closed since Farrell's last vacation. I
staggered to the thermostat and turned the air-conditioning on high. In
a few minutes the crisis had passed and we were breathing normally
again.
"I don't want to disappoint you," I said to Susan after she had
unpacked and hung up all her clothes and joined me at the little bar in
the living room for a cocktail. "But Farrell made me promise there
would be no heterosexual carnality in here."
"Is this your way of telling me you want me to dress up in a man's suit again?" Susan said.
"Lee says it's in the bylaws of the condo association-heterosexuality is prohibited."
"Oh boy," Susan said. "Finally a real vacation."
"Gee," I said. "Usually when someone tells you that you can't do something, you want to do it immediately."
Susan sipped on the Bellini I had made her and looked at me and frowned thoughtfully.
"You know," she said, "you're right. That is how I am. The hell with the condo association. Let's fuck."
"That's the Susan I know," I said. "Did you say something about a man's suit?"
"Just a little humor," she said.
"How about maybe just the shirt and a tie," I said.
"Stop it," Susan said and got up and walked toward the bedroom. I followed.
"How about just the tie?" I said.
Susan unzipped her shorts.
"How about less talk and more action," she said.
Later that night we had dinner at The Sanibel Steak House. The
dining room was small and pleasant with glass at the far end looking
out over some greenery. We both had martinis. They were excellent. We
both ordered steak. For Susan to order steak was a breach of
self-discipline comparable to masturbating in public. Salads arrived
first. They were excellent. The steaks arrived shortly thereafter.
Susan recovered herself sufficiently to cut her steak into halves and
put one half aside.
"I guess we showed them," Susan said as she chewed on a small piece
of steak. "Sex, martinis, and steak. How much more carnality is
possible."
I took a bite of my steak. It was excellent.
"That can be our project while we're here," I said. "See how much carnality is possible."
"Would you care to tell me exactly why we are here?"
"Haven't been away in a while," I said. "Lee offered:"
"Lee's a cop," Susan said. "He doesn't spend all winter here either. Why now at the end of June?"
"Sure it's out of season," I said. "But everything's air-conditioned."
"I'm not complaining about the heat," Susan said. "And so far I'm
having a lovely time. But I think that there's something lurking behind
the arras."
"A rat, maybe?"
"Or Polonius," Susan said. "Shakespeare aside, I know you nearly as well as you know me. What's up?"
I finished my martini, and in a burst of unbridled carnality, Susan
finished hers. The waitress noticed our situation and came over. We
ordered red wine. She went to get it. And brought it back and left.
"You remember Beecham, Maine?" I said.
She shook her head. I told her, all of it. She listened as I talked
as she always did, with full attention, her eyes fixed on me. I could
feel the charge in her. I could feel the energy between us. It made
talking to her a lush experience.
"And you obviously believe them," Susan said when I finished.
"That they'll try for Hawk and me? You remember Clausewitz on war?"
"I should," Susan said, "by now. You keep quoting him."
"And what is the quote?"
"Something like `you must prepare for the enemy's capability, rather than his intentions."'
"Yes."
"So you have to assume they might try."
"If I assume they might try and I'm wrong, I'm inconvenienced. If I assume they won't try and I'm wrong, I'm dead."
"Which is why you brought me here. Because if we were to spend time
together you wanted it where I wouldn't be in danger by proximity."
"Yep. I figure they follow us down here in late June and their bullets will melt."
"And you still don't know their connection with Amir?"
"Only that they sent a plane for him. And warned us away from him."
"It's the first time in this case that you've run into people who seem like they could have killed Prentice Lamont," she said.
"Yeah, I noticed that too. Don't know if they did, but at least we can assume they would."
Susan had another bite of steak. I sipped some red wine. I had
finished my steak and was keeping track of what happened to the half of
her steak that she had put aside. It was still aside. I remained
hopeful.
"So what are you going to do?"
"Keep pushing," I said. "Something will pop out."
"The police can't help you?" Susan said.
I shrugged.
"We say they threatened us, they say they didn't, what are the cops going to do?"
"You wouldn't go to the police anyway," Susan said. "And certainly Hawk would not."
I didn't say anything. Susan put her knife and fork down, and folded her hands under her chin and gazed at me in silence.
"Don't let them kill you," Susan said.
"I won't," I said.
She thought for a minute, looking at me, and then said, "No, you won't, will you."
"No."
We sat and our eyes held like that for a long minute. Finally I said, "You going to eat the rest of that steak?"
She kept staring at me and then began to smile and her eyes filled
up, and then she began to laugh and the tears spilled onto her cheeks.
She managed to say, "No."
"Good," I said.
I forked the steak onto my plate and sliced off a bite.
"Do you have a plan for tomorrow?" Susan said.
She had herself back under control but her face was still flushed
the way it gets when she cries, or laughs, or both, and there was still
some wetness on her completely sensational cheekbones.
"I thought we could sleep late, have a leisurely breakfast, once
again defy the condo association for much of the afternoon, have a swim
and go for dinner at a place called the Twilight Cafe. I hear they have
a steak with black beans that you won't be able to finish…"
She was laughing again. There was a slivered edge of fear behind the laugh, but it was real laughter.
"As I think about it," she said, "I don't think anything can kill you."
"Nothing has," I said.
Chapter 51
We were lifting weights at the Harbor Health Club. Hawk in a tank
top is a fairly scary sight, and a number of the other patrons glanced
at us covertly from time to time. Hawk knew this. He never missed
anything going on around him, and while, as usual, he paid no attention
to anyone, I think it amused him. Now and then he would do something
showy like handstand push-ups, to impress the rubes.
"While you been vacationing," Hawk said, "I been detecting."
"Good," I said. "You can use the practice."
"Every Friday Amir go up to Bangor. Every Sunday he come back. So I
figure I better see what he doing up there, and I drive up to Bangor
International Airport…"
"International?" I said.
"Sure," Hawk said. "You think they hay shakers up there?"
"Well," I said. "Yes."
Hawk shook his head. He was doing some dips as he talked, and if there was any effort involved it didn't show in his voice.
"Anyway, I'm there on a Friday afternoon sitting in my car, and
about five o'clock here come Amir out of the terminal with his little
overnight case. Black Lincoln stretch limo waiting. Driver gets out,
opens the door. Amir hands him the overnight case, driver puts it on
the front seat, Amir hops in the back. You want to guess the license
number on the limo?"
"Don't remember but I'll bet it's in my notes."
"Same one," Hawk said.
"You follow them?" I said.
"Yep."
"To Beecham."
"Yep."
"Last Stand Systems, Inc."
"Yep."
"Stayed the weekend and came home Sunday night."
"Yep."
"You got any theories on what he's doing up there?" I said.
"Visiting."
"You got any thoughts on what he does while he visits?"
Hawk was doing pull-ups. He did five more after I asked the question, then let himself, down slowly and dropped to the floor.
"We know Amir is queer."
"Nice rhyme," I said.
"And we know he, ah, hyperactive."
"Nice phrase," I said. "You think he's got a boyfriend in Last Stand Systems, Inc.?"
"Somebody send the company plane down for him."
"You think it's Milo Quant?"
"There a Mrs. Quant?" Hawk said.
I didn't say anything for a minute.
"You think there's hanky-panky between Milo and Amir?"
"Amir was a white woman, what would you think?" Hawk said.
"That there was hanky-panky between Milo and Amir."
Hawk smiled.
"That what I'd think," he said.
"So," I said. "We don't want to be homophobic about this."
"So hanky-panky it is," Hawk said.
"On the other hand," I said, "you've read the literature. For the
leader of this movement to be having an affair with a gay black
militant is not just miscegenation, for crissake, it's treason."
"You right," Hawk said. "Couldn't happen. Be like J. Edgar Hoover running around in a dress."
"Exactly," I said. "Impossible."
I did some curls. Hawk worked on his triceps a little. I did some
dips. Hawk worked on his lats. Henry strolled past us and explained to
someone that the leg extension machine gave you a better workout if you
put some weight on it. He showed them how to set the weight, then he
walked back past Hawk and me without looking at us.
After a while Hawk said, "I feelin' short on electrolytes."
"Me too," I said. "Luckily Henry keeps some in his office."
We went back into Henry's office that looked out over the harbor and got some beer out of the refrigerator.
"Milo is speaking out in Fitchburg," I said. "I thought I'd go out and listen."
"Why?"
"Why not? Right now I got so little that knowing what he looks like will help."
Hawk nodded.
"I had a lover in Maine," he said, "and he coming to Fitchburg, maybe I arrange to meet him."
"Why don't you stick with Amir," I said. "And I'll tag along behind Milo Quant. And we'll see."
"Say we catch them doing the hoochie coochie," Hawk said. "What we got?"
"More than we got now," I said.
"That much," Hawk said.
"Well, we've got some stuff," I said. "We've already got Amir
connected to an outfit that is capable of pitching someone out a
window."
"True."
"What we don't have is proof that they did it, or any reason why."
"Prentice a blackmailer," Hawk said.
"Could be a reason," I said.
"Don't forget why we doing this," Hawk said.
"I know. Robinson's tenure," I said. "I think we've got enough now. But it's messy. I want it clean."
"How often you get clean?" Hawk said.
I grinned.
"Figure I'm due," I said.
Chapter 52
I was getting ready to drive out to Fitchburg when KC Roth called me on the phone.
"I'm sorry about the other day," she said.
"Un huh."
"I guess I'm a little crazy right now."
"Probably."
"It's not easy being me, you know."
"I know."
"I'm alone, I have no prospects, I need support. I guess sometimes I get a little too aggressive."
"Nothing wrong with aggressive," I said. "But you need to focus it properly."
"Easy for you to say. You're not alone."
"The question isn't whether it's easy for me to say. The question is am I right?"
"I didn't call up for you to give me advice," KC said.
"No," I said. "Of course you didn't."
"It's frankly none of your goddamned business."
"It was," I said. "But now it isn't."
"That doesn't mean I can't call. you up and have a civil conversation, does it?"
"No it doesn't," I said.
"Well fine," she said and slammed the phone down.
I seemed to be in a lovers' quarrel with someone who was not my
lover. I hung up the phone and looked at it for a moment and then got
up and went to get my car.
Fitchburg is a little working-class city of 40,000 people about
fifty miles west of Boston. It is also south of Ashby and southeast of
Winchendon and north of Leominster, and a great many people don't care
much where it is. The state college is up the hill from Route 2A. There
were signs directing me to the evening's event. When I got to the
auditorium there were several Fitchburg Police cars and at least three
blue and gray State Police cruisers parked around the place, taking all
the best spots. I parked in a slot that said Faculty Only, and walked
over to the auditorium. There were cops in the lobby, cops at the
entrances, standing around talking to each other. There were also
several Ivy League-looking guys in shirts and ties and dark suits,
clustered near the main entrance door, scanning the crowd. One of them
was the guy with the horn-rimmed glasses who had come to my office with
his associates and spoken unkindly to me and Hawk about Amir Abdullah.
He had also spoken even more brusquely to us in Beecham, Maine. I had
the impulse to step into his line of sight and say, "booga, booga," but
I was there to observe, and I usually observed better if no one was
paying any attention to me. I went in another entrance, and took a seat
in the back. The room was full. Mostly students. From their
conversations I gathered that not all of them were fans of Milo Quant.
At 7:30 Horn Rims and his fellows walked out quietly and stood at
parade rest on the floor of the auditorium between the front row of
seats and the stage. I noticed that there were state and local cops
along the walls on both sides of the auditorium. A heavyset woman in a
pale blue pants suit came onto the stage and stood behind the lectern.
She waited for a moment and when she saw that the audience wasn't going
to quiet, she began.
"I'm Margaret Dryer," she said. "I'm the dean of student affairs
here. Like many of you present I do not agree with Mr. Quant's view of
the human condition."
The audience quieted a little as she spoke.
"But I agree with his right to hold those ideas and indeed to
espouse them, however repellent I personally find them to be. That is
the meaning of free speech, and I hope each and every one of you in the
audience will respect Mr. Quant's right to free speech. There has been
talk of disruption. I have heard it, just as you have heard it. The
police are here. We have asked them to be here. We have asked them to
protect everyone's right to civil discourse. We have also asked them to
prevent any infringement on those rights, and they will do so."
She paused for a moment. The audience was quiet. Then she turned and
gestured toward the wings of the stage. "May I introduce our guest, Mr.
Milo Quant, of Last Stand Systems, Incorporated."
The audience booed the minute his name was mentioned. The booing
magnified when he strolled out from the side and replaced Dean Dryer at
the lectern. He stood silently for a time, smiling down at the
audience, allowing the roar of boos to roll over him. He was a short
fat man in a well-made blue suit, a white shirt, and a maroon silk tie.
It was hard to be sure from where I sat, but his shoes looked as if
they had lifts in them. His nose was sharp and curled a little at the
tip like the beak of a falcon. His mouth was wide with thick lips. His
face was fleshy. He, had thick eyebrows that V-ed down over the bridge
of his nose. His upturned smile was V- shaped so that he looked sort of
like a devilish Santa Claus.
The boos continued. He stood quietly, smiling. After a while the students tired. The boos dwindled. Finally it was nearly quiet.
"There," Quant said. "Feel better?"
There was some more booing, but there was also a scatter of laughter. Quant beamed down at us.
"There, I'm not such a monster now am I? Look a little like your grandfather, maybe."
Somebody laughed. Somebody yelled "Fascist."
"Do you know where the word fascist comes from?" Quant said.
He leaned slightly forward at the lectern, so that his mouth was
closer to the microphone. He let his folded hands rest quietly on top
of the lectern.
"It comes from ancient Rome. It derives from the word fasces which
refers to the symbol of Official Power, a bundle of reeds with an axe
head protruding. We at Last Stand are hardly fascists. We don't
symbolize official power. We oppose it. We oppose a government
hell-bent to dissemble my country, your country, our country. We oppose
a government which will make us not Americans, but mongrelized members
of a world government where every Arab despot and cannibal dictator may
say yea or nay to us."
He was good. The audience was listening.
"And we ask you to join us in that opposition. We are not asking of
you the sacrifices that were asked of the men who founded this country."
"And women," someone shouted. Quant smiled.
"They made their own sacrifices. But I'm talking about the men who
were asked to fight and often die for liberty. We don't ask that of
you. We ask only that you keep yourself worthy of the liberty they died
for. We ask that you keep yourself clean and straight. We ask that you
value marriage. That you respect the God of our fathers. That you honor
your ethnic purity. That you fulfill the destiny for which so many of
those men suffered and died."
He paused. They listened. He smiled warmly at us all.
"If this be treason," he said slowly, "let us make the most of it."
Some people clapped. A few hooted. Most were quiet. Quant went on.
If he spoke ill of other races and religions, if he said that all
American values were to be found only in white Christian males, he said
it obliquely, sliding it in always in terms of honor and cleanliness,
heritage, straightness, and respect.
He spoke until 8:15, and then took questions. The majority of the
questions were hostile. He handled them easily. He had heard them
before. He never said nigger, or queer, or Jew, or dyke. He managed
also to be more magnanimous than his questioner, and he always had a
gracious and convincing answer for even the most difficult questions.
His answers were largely bullshit, but they were good bullshit. I
had years ago learned that it was useless to debate zealots. They had
spent most of their adult life thinking intensely about the object of
their zealotry. Normally their debaters had not. I wanted to stand and
ask him if in fact he were wearing lifts in his shoes. But I was there
to watch and listen and I didn't want to get into it with Horn Rims or
any of the other preservers of our heritage. So I shut up. Which is a
ploy that often works well for me.
When it was over, Quant was escorted out by his keepers and the
cops. It was raining. A small group of students were standing across
the street, getting wet, chanting "Two, four, six, eight, USA can't use
your hate." I wondered why protesters so often demeaned their
deepest-held convictions by reciting them loudly in doggerel. Nobody in
Quant's party paid any attention to them. And, in fact, neither did
many people in Quant's audience. Shielded by an umbrella one of the
security guys deployed, Quant got into his black Lincoln and departed
with three bodyguards. The other security guys got into a large van.
The protesters chanted at them until they were out of sight. Then they
stood somewhat aimlessly for a few moments and then drifted away in
various directions.
I suspected that Quant hadn't convinced anyone who hadn't come
convinced. But he had made them see that he was pleasant, and that he
spoke as if what he espoused was both reasonable and kind, and they
were puzzled. And maybe they didn't enjoy doggerel much, either.
My car had a parking ticket on the windshield issued by the
Fitchburg State College Campus Police. I took it off my windshield and
tucked it carefully under the wiper of the car next to me. Then I got
in and drifted along behind Quant with the windshield wipers making
long steady sweeps across my glass, their sound like the rhythm of
music that wasn't playing.
Chapter 53
At about 10:30 with the rain coming down steadily, the Quant limo
pulled off of Route 495 near Chelmsford and into the parking lot of a
big motel that looked like the Disney version of a Norman castle. The
van kept on going. I followed Quant, and got into a slot in the next
row and watched as Milo and his bodyguard deployed umbrellas and walked
across the glistening parking lot into the hotel lobby. The place was
more hotel than motel, in that it was four stories high and entry was
through the front door. For my purposes, I would have liked the
conventional one-room one-door approach, but the more I live the more I
don't always get what I want. I sat for a while and thought. While I
was doing this Hawk opened the passenger door and slid in, the rain
beaded on his smooth head.
"Ah ha!" I said.
"Ah ha indeed, my good man," Hawk said. "The game's afoot."
"Amir," I said.
"Yowzah," Hawk said. "Rents a car this afternoon, comes out here
'bout three o'clock. I see him pull in and I take a chance and get into
the lobby 'fore he do. There a phone booth right by the desk. I'm in it
with my back turned and the phone at my ear when he gets to the desk.
He's got a reservation. He's in room four seventeen."
"Good to know," I said.
"Well, I got nothing much else to do so I hang around, sit in the
bar, read a paper, drink some Perrier with a nice wedge of lime, have a
club sandwich, drink some more Perrier and about five minutes ago in
come a group of people and one of them is our man with the horn-rimmed
glasses. They got reservations. Their rooms are four fifteen and four
nineteen."
"Either side," I said.
"Un huh."
"There were four bodyguards, right?"
"Including the limo driver," Hawk said. "Plus Quant."
"Two bodyguards in four fifteen," I said. "Two bodyguards in four nineteen. Where's Quant go?"
"Four seventeen," Hawk said. "Want to take a look?"
"Sure," I said. "Why don't I register and we can look at the room setup."
"Call from the car," Hawk said, "make sure they have a room."
I did. They did.
"Okay," I said. "Stay here. I'll call you."
I left the motor running, took a gym bag from the trunk of my car,
and walked toward the lobby. The gym bag looked right, but all it
contained were burglar tools. I checked into the lobby. They gave me
room 205. I went up and let myself in and put the gym bag on the bed
and called Hawk.
"Room two-oh-five," I said.
"Fine. Is the desk clerk a man or a woman?"
"Woman."
"Good. I'll come in tell her I'm Amir and I've lost my key."
"They often want to see ID," I said.
"She'd be scared to ask me," Hawk said. "Scared I say she racist for asking."
"And if she remembers Amir at all it'll be that he's black and so are you, so you must be him."
"Un huh."
"See you soon," I said.
And I did. In about ten minutes he knocked on the door and I let him in. He smiled at me and held up the plastic key card.
"She thought I look like Michael Jordan," Hawk said.
"You know how to play that old race card," I said. "Don't you."
"I do," Hawk said.
The room was standard B-class hotel. Tile bath and shower in the
short hall as you came in the door, king-sized bed, small table and two
chairs by the window, built-in bureau with a large television set on
top of it. The door unlocked electronically with the plastic card and
could be chain bolted from the inside. I looked at the chain bolt. The
chain was attached to the door frame by two small brass screws. I took
a small pry bar from the gym bag.
"Bolt the door," I said.
I took the room key and went out and shut the door. I heard Hawk set
the. chain bolt. I opened the door with the plastic card, slid the pry
bar in through the opening, and popped the chain loose without much
effort. I went back into the room and closed the door.
"Shouldn't be hard getting in there," I said.
"Once we in what we going to do?"
"I guess we'll ask them what they're doing here," I said. "And then we'll see what happens."
"What you want to happen?"
"I want everyone to get so percolated that they start saying things
they will later regret and we might finally know something concrete."
"And what we going to do they start hollering and the bodyguards come dashing in?"
"I thought you had that covered," I said.
"'Course I got it covered," Hawk said. "I just meant you want me to shoot them or quell them with a stern look?"
"Stern look will probably cause less ruckus," I said.
"I'll work on it," Hawk said, and we went out and took the elevator to the fourth floor.
Chapter 54
The room was half lit by the security lights that shone on the
parking lot. We could have kicked the door in while singing Verdi's
"Othello" and neither Milo nor Amir would have heard us. They were in
bed together, zonked. Hawk walked over to the bed and leveled his gun
at them. When he was in place I closed the door, found the light
switch, and turned on the lights. They slept on. Amir was on his side,
his back to Milo who lay on his back, his mouth half open, snoring
gently. Hawk put the big Magnum back under his coat. He picked up the
telephone from the bedside table and disconnected the handset and
tossed it onto one of the soft chairs by the window table. There were
dirty dishes on the table, remnants of food, glasses, and an empty
champagne bottle. There were also five small plastic pill bottles, the
kind prescriptions come in. I picked one of them up. It had no label. I
took off the top. It contained five large maroon capsules. I dumped
them out on the table. I picked up another one. Blue capsules. All five
were unlabeled. All five contained some sort of pills. I dumped all of
them out on the table.
"Recognize any of these," I said to Hawk.
He shook his head.
"Only do booze," Hawk said. "But they don't look like prescriptions."
Milo opened his eyes. They didn't focus. His mouth was still open
and he was still making soft snoring noises. Hawk took his gun back
out. Milo blinked a couple of times. He closed his mouth. He blinked a
couple more times. Then he sat bolt upright and as he did so Hawk put
the gun muzzle right up to Milo's face.
"Don't yell," Hawk said.
Milo fumbled at the bedside phone. He couldn't find the handset and couldn't seem to register that it was gone.
"Phone won't work," Hawk said.
"There's money in my wallet," Milo said in a thick voice. "In my pants pocket. On the back of that chair."
"Wake him up," I said and nodded at Amir.
Milo turned and shook Amir awake. He came back from wherever he was
even more slowly than Milo had, but after a while everyone was awake
and looking at each other.
"Tell Milo who we are," I said to Amir.
Both men had edged up into a sitting position, their backs resting
against the headboard. Both were half covered by the bedclothes. Both
their upper bodies were naked. Amir wore three thick gold chains. His
chest was black and bony. There was a lot of short curly hair on it.
Milo had no jewelry, nor hair on his chest. He was fat and pale with
blotchy pink highlights.
"They're," Amir paused, "the white one is a detective."
"Detective? Damn you, you have no right…"
Hawk tapped him gently on the forehead with the muzzle of his gun.
"Shh," Hawk said.
"Tell him what detective I am," I said.
"What detective? I don't know what…"
"I'm the detective you sent your people to threaten," I said.
"Threaten?"
I knew that Milo's brain was fuddled by whatever controlled
substance he'd been ingesting with Amir. But even so he looked
genuinely puzzled.
"Didn't he do that, Amir?" I said.
"I… how would I know?"
"Well, you and Milo seem sort of friendly," I said. "I just thought you might. So, tell him what we're doing here."
"Doing here? God, how would I know?"
"You know," I said. "Explain to Milo what we're after."
"Speak up, Amir," Hawk said.
Amir looked as if someone had taken a shot at him.
"They're after me," Amir said. "They are after me because they think I made a person lose tenure."
"Tenure?" Milo said.
"And because a kid you know got pitched out a window," I said. "Tell him about that."
"Window?" Milo said.
"It's all craziness, Milo," Amir said.
Milo looked at me and Hawk. Rallying is hard when you're half stoned, and you got no pants on, but Milo was trying.
"There are armed men in rooms on either side of us," Milo said. "If
you were to fire that revolver, they would rush in here and kill you."
Hawk smiled.
"You think?" he said.
Milo turned his head and stared at Amir.
"What is this about tenure and a person getting thrown from a window?"
"It's not anything, Milo."
"What are you doing to me, you degenerate cannibal?"
"Who are you calling degenerate?" Amir said. "I'm everything you hate and you can't stop fucking me."
Milo slapped him across the face. Amir laughed at him.
"Talk about degenerate," he said.
It came all at once. Gestalt. The whole thing. For the first time
since Hawk had come in with Robinson Nevins in the spring, I knew what
was going on. It was a feeling I wasn't used to.
"Prentice knew about you and Milo," I said to Amir.
Amir's face seemed to freeze.
"You got a lot of perks out of being a militant black man, just like
you got a lot of perks out of being a militant gay activist."
Milo had stopped looking at Amir and was looking at me.
"And Prentice caught you," I said to Amir.
He seemed to be freezing right there in front of me. Compacting as he froze, growing smaller.
"Who, pray tell, is Prentice?" Milo said.
"Kid that got thrown out the window by some of your security twerps," I said.
"I know nothing about any Prentice."
"No," I said, "you don't. Prentice Lamont ran a newspaper called
OUTrageous, which was primarily committed to outing gay men and women
who would have preferred otherwise."
Milo frowned. I knew he could identify.
"First the kid probably was doing it for philosophical reasons.
Hiding one's sexuality contributed to the belief that it was shameful.
Something high-sounding like that, but then, and I'm guessing here,
Amir started hitting on him, and the kid was flattered because Amir is
a big-deal gay guy and a leading black activist, and a professor, and
an all-around joy to contemplate."
Outside the room the rain kept coming down in the dark. The motel window was streaked with it.
"And Amir gives him the blackmail idea. Maybe he wanted a cut of it.
Maybe he wanted Prentice to think he was smart. Maybe he gets a kick
out of perverting idealism. I'd guess all of the above with the
perversion of idealism especially appealing to him, because he did it
again with Willie and Walt when he was with you, Milo, and no longer
needed the money. There's people like that, get a kick out of seducing
virgins, so to speak."
Both Milo and Amir were now watching me as if I were Scheherazade.
Hawk seemed to have faded back a little into the background. No one
made a sound. I was talking mostly to Milo now.
"Anyway the scheme was working good. Good enough for Prentice to
have accumulated two hundred fifty thousand dollars. Also, while Amir
was with Prentice, he learned that OUTrageous was investigating the
possibility that another professor at the university, Robinson Nevins,
was gay. Nevins was Amir's bitterest rival, and Amir filed that away
for future use."
The pupils in Amir's eyes seemed to have reduced to pinpoints. I spoke to him again.
"But somewhere in there you got bored with Prentice, and you dumped
him and moved on and somewhere in there you took up with Milo Quant."
Neither of them said anything.
"And Prentice was jealous, wasn't he?"
Amir shrugged, as if he were embarrassed to talk about how magnetic he was.
"And he used his OUTrageous sources and he found out who you'd left him for."
"The damned queen used to follow me," Amir said to Milo.
Milo was looking at him as if he had just discovered a Gila monster sharing his pillow.
"And that was too explosive to let out," I said. "Each of you
sexually involved with everything you hate. Hard as it is for me to
imagine it, I assume you have devotees, and your devotees would be
hysterical. It would ruin both of you."
Milo's face was mottled to an almost maroon flush. Amir was rigidly
still. It was raining harder outside. The water flooded down the motel
window in crystalline sheets.
"So you spoke to one of the bodyguards, the guy with the horn-rimmed
glasses, maybe, and they went and threw Prentice out his window, and
left a generic suicide note, and went back up to Beecham."
"I . . :" Milo Quant's voice was very hoarse, it sounded as if it
was squeezing out of a very narrow opening in his windpipe. "I knew
nothing of this."
"No," I said. "You probably didn't. Amir probably said that you
wanted it done and didn't want to know about it. Was it the guy with
the horn rims, Amir?"
Amir stood up suddenly from the bed. He was naked. Hawk moved slightly to his right between the door and Amir.
"Chuck," Milo said. "Did you have Chuck kill this boy?"
Amir stood looking around the room. He seemed unaware that he had no clothes on.
"Up to there, he'd probably have gotten away with everything, and
you and he could have waltzed to the music of time for the rest of your
lives. But he got greedy. He put out the story that the boy had killed
himself because of Robinson Nevins. That way he gets rid of the kid,
and he gets rid of a man whom he saw as a threat to his position as
boss black man at the university. And that brought Robinson's father
in. And he brought Hawk in. And Hawk brought me in and here we are. "
"Is this true, Amir?" Milo wheezed.
"No. No. No."
"You can consult with Chuck," I said. "See what he says."
Amir broke for the door.
"Let him," I said to Hawk. "How far can he get?"
Hawk smiled and Amir Abdullah, naked, burst out of the room and disappeared down the corridor.
On the bed, Milo began to blubber. I could pick out the train of his complaint at first.
"I fought it," I think he said. "I fought it day and night…
but it consumed me… it is my sin… my corruption. I gave
in to my corruption. And it has brought me to this."
The ratio of blubber to clarity diminished so quickly as he
continued that the rest seemed all blubber and I couldn't understand it.
"What I think we need here now," I said to Hawk, "is some cops."
Hawk grinned and went to the chair and picked up the handset and
reattached it to the phone. I took it and called the cops while Milo
sat in the bed with his face in his hands and sobbed.
Chapter 55
Pearl was visiting for the day. She and I had some donuts while I
read the paper, and around 10:30 in the morning I put her leash on and
took her for a stroll. As we walked down Boylston Street, I realized
that I had picked up a tail. By the time we crossed Arlington Street I
realized that the tail was KC Roth. I crossed Boylston at the light and
went into the Public Gardens. I let Pearl off her leash so she could
point pigeons and barrel fruitlessly after squirrels. KC came behind
me. I thought about what to do. Pearl spotted a duck and went into her
full point, elongating her body, sucking up her stomach, one paw
raised, head extended, tail motionless. I stopped beside her and aimed
my finger at the duck and said "Bang" loudly. The duck flew up a few
feet and resettled near the small bridge. Pearl seemed satisfied and
began tracking Devil Dog crumbs among the shrubs.
KC was still behind me. I could confront her. I could lose her. Or I
could ignore her. It was Wednesday. Susan didn't see patients on
Wednesday. She taught a seminar Wednesday mornings and took Wednesday
afternoon off. It was our day to have lunch together. I smiled-a
solution had presented itself. Pearl and I strolled and KC stalked us
until we got back to the office at 11:30. Pearl and I went up. Pearl
drank some water and then flopped on the rug. I stood and looked out my
window. KC had taken up a position across the street outside F. A. O.
Schwarz where she could gaze up at my window. I felt like the Pope.
Susan was due at noon. She arrived of course at 12:20.
"Sorry, sorry, sorry I'm late," she said.
"It's okay," I said. "You're always late. I expected you to be late."
She came over and gave me a large kiss, which, I thought, boded well
for later. When she was through kissing me she went directly to the
mirror over my washbasin and began to reapply lip gloss.
"Where shall we lunch?"
"We could go straight to my place," I said.
"Un uh," she said. "And eat about four in the afternoon?"
"We could order out," I said.
"Sure, and while we waited… ? I don't think so."
"Where would you like to go?" I said.
"Anyplace where you won't try to undress me."
"You're the one that came in here with the big kiss," I said.
"Because I love you, does that mean I have to lie down immediately on my back?"
"I think so," I said. "Though I've never been a stickler for position."
"I've noticed," Susan said. "Let's go to the Ritz Cafe."
"Sounds good," I said.
I smiled to myself.
"Why are you smiling."
"Just happy," I said.
We walked Pearl down to my place and put her in my living room. I
put fresh water in Pearl's dish, and turned on the radio so she'd have
music to listen to. She hated talk radio. Susan kissed her good-bye,
and we went out. We came back out of my apartment and turned left on
Marlborough Street and right on Arlington.
"Talk to me a minute about people who stalk people," I said.
"Sure," Susan said. "I suspect you know what I know. It is some sort
of attempt to maintain or, I suppose, acquire the feeling of power over
someone. Following a person may not give you real power, but it gives
you the feeling of it. You watch them. You know where they go, what
they do, who they see."
"Knowledge is power," I said.
"Exactly," Susan said.
"Are stalkers dangerous?" I said.
"Not necessarily. Sometimes the need for power extends to physical
coercion, sometimes not. Sometimes dirty tricks, sometimes not."
"And the purpose?"
"Fear of loss," Susan said. "A lover, say, from whom you are
estranged. You fear if she gets out of your power you'll lose her. And
the feeling of power is a way to feel as if you haven't."
We were at the corner of Commonwealth less than a block from The
Ritz when Susan spotted KC Roth. She stopped dead in her tracks and
stared at her. KC realized that Susan had seen her and tried to look as
if she were just strolling along and didn't notice us.
"What the hell is this?" Susan said to me.
"The lovely and tenacious KC Roth," I said.
"She's stalking you again?"
"Yep."
"You knew it?"
"Yep."
"And you didn't say anything?"
"I thought it would be more dramatic if you discovered her yourself."
"It is," Susan said.
She was quiet for a moment, then she turned toward KC Roth and yelled.
"KC!"
KC tried to look startled. "Susan?"
"Get over here," Susan said.
KC walked over to us.
"Susan, what are you… ?"
"Shut up," Susan said.
She jabbed at a bench on the mall.
"Sit down," she said.
Her teeth were clenched and her face was hard-edged and kind of
white except for red splotches on her cheekbones. I stood a few feet
away. Oh boy!
KC wasn't brave, but she was stupid. She stood there looking at Susan.
"Wha… ?" she said.
Susan took hold of her blouse with both hands and yanked her to the bench and slammed her onto it.
"Now listen, you asinine little shit for brains," she said with her
teeth clamped hard together. "This is the last time you bother him, you
understand?"
"Bother?"
Susan still had hold of her blouse. She pulled her close for a moment and slammed her back against the bench.
"Call, follow, whine at, see, talk to, touch, look at, annoy,
anything-you understand? Annoy him again and I will knock out every
stupid fucking tooth in your stupid fucking mouth."
KC began to cry. She twisted loose from Susan and stood up.
"I need him," she screamed at Susan. "You have no right to keep him from me, if it weren't for you…"
With her clenched fist Susan hit KC on the jaw with a left hook just
like I'd taught her, getting her shoulder into it so that the power
came from the body, not the arm. KC fell backward and sat down hard on
the bench. Her lip was bleeding.
"Are we clear?" Susan said.
KC touched her mouth and took her hand away and stared at the blood on it.
"My God, I'm bleeding," KC said.
"You'll be sleeping with the fishes, you neurotic bitch," Susan said, "if you don't stay away from him."
KC nodded, still staring at the blood on her hand.
"Say it," Susan said with such force that I was a little scared.
"I'll stay away."
"You bet you will," Susan said.
She turned and looked at me and said, "Come on," and started off
toward The Ritz at a very fast pace. I followed her. We went in the
Commonwealth Avenue entrance and across the lobby into the cafe. The
maitre d' put us in a window seat only a few inches from passersby on
Newbury Street.
"My hand hurts," Susan said.
I nodded.
"You didn't tell me that it hurts your hand to hit someone."
"Mostly," I said, "if you hit them on the face or head. It's why I try to use my forearm or elbow when I can."
"I'll try to keep it in mind."
"Were you influenced by Freud or Adler," I said, "when you gave KC a whack on the kisser."
"Wonder Woman, I think. Not very shrink-like, was I."
"No."
"Did you mind?" Susan said.
"No. I liked it," I said. "It was what I wanted to do, but felt I couldn't."
"You knew I'd blow my top," Susan said.
"I was hoping," I said.
"What do you think she'll do?" Susan said.
"Dash back to the shrink you sent her to, that she stopped going to."
"So she can report me," Susan said.
"Yep."
Susan smiled.
"So maybe it was just the right thing to do," she said.
"I'm sure it was. Will your reputation be destroyed in the psychiatric community?"
Susan smiled again, more broadly than before.
"No, my colleagues will envy me."
"Good," I said. "Want to see if they'll bring you some ice for your hand?"
"No, but they'd better rush a martini out here pretty quick," she said. "Before I'm overcome with pain."
I signaled the waiter.
"Right away, Mrs. Silverman, I sure as hell don't want to cross you. "
The drink came promptly, and a beer for me.
"You think it worked?" Susan said. "You think she'll leave you alone?"
"Oh, I'm sure it will," I said. "But you better not let word get out
about my sexual performance, or you'll be beating up beautiful women
every week."
Susan raised her glass toward me and touched the rim of it against the top of my beer bottle.
She said, "Be my pleasure, big guy."
Chapter 56
The universtiy tenure committee held Robinson Nevins'
reconsideration meeting at the university on the third straight day of
rain in late August in a room next to the president's office. It was my
first tenure meeting. The English department tenure committee, which
had originally denied Robinson tenure, had voted not to reconsider, but
the university committee, which had the right to overrule the
department committee, agreed to a second hearing. This already seemed
like several committees more than I wanted anything to do with, but
Robinson needed some testimony. Robinson, and Hawk, and I all agreed
that it was best not to turn Hawk loose among the academics.
The meeting was chaired by a professor from the Law School named
Tilhnan. I sat against the wall behind Tommy Harmon, who sat at the
conference table as Robinson's faculty advocate. Bass Maitland and
Lillian Temple were there representing the English department tenure
committee. Maitland was speaking in his large rich voice.
"So whatever ex post facto changes may have occurred in the matter
of Robinson Nevins' tenure, the department feels that a decision
arrived at in good faith should stand. To do otherwise would be to set
a precedent that most of us would regret in the years to come."
"Even though the basis for the denial of tenure turned out to be not
only unfounded but part of a criminal conspiracy?" Harmon said.
"I believe it is an alleged criminal conspiracy," Maitland said, "until a court of law reaches a judgment."
He leaned back in his chair contentedly. Lillian patted his thigh. Professor Tillman looked a little tired.
He said, "Thank you for the reminder in law, Bass. Tommy, do you have a witness for us?"
Tommy Harmon said he did and introduced me.
"This is not a court of law, and you are not under oath, Mr.
Spenser," Tillman said. "Still the business of this committee, which
today is particularly serious business, cannot proceed properly if you
do not tell the truth."
He was a spare man with a gray crew cut and half glasses. His light
tan summer suit looked a little small for him, but you could see that
he was not a rube.
"The recommendations of this committee, when they are made, are just
that, recommendations," he said. "They are not binding on the
university."
Tillman glanced over his half glasses at Bass Maitland. He didn't
change his expression, but I got the sense that he and I would agree on
Bass.
"But they are not to be cavalierly disregarded either," Tillman said. "There is considerable at stake here."
"I'll try not to lie," I said.
Tillman smiled very slightly.
"Thank you," he said. "We have all, I'm sure, read the papers, but I
would like to hear from you what you know, as succinctly as you can.
And since I am the chair of this committee, I guess I can. You may
remain seated there unless you wish otherwise."
The various professors gathered around the long conference table
shifted in their seats a little. Several of them seemed interested.
Lillian Temple and Bass Maitland looked resigned to suffering fools as
gladly as they could.
"There are police reports," I said. "Both from the Massachusetts
State Police who did some of the initial questioning, when Amir
Abdullah and Milo Quant were arrested, and from the Boston Police
Homicide Unit in whose jurisdiction the murder of Prentice Lamont took
place and to whom the state cops turned them over. I assume you all
have copies."
Everyone did.
"Okay, here's what I know."
"Excuse me," Bass Maitland said, "I think we'd all be more
comfortable if you were a bit more precise in your choice of words.
This is what you surmise."
I looked at Bass Maitland for a minute without saying anything. Then I looked back around the table.
"Okay," I said, "here's what I know."
Maitland started to say something and Tillman gestured him to be quiet.
"Prentice Lamont ran a newspaper called OUTrageous which, as the
name might imply, was in the business of outing closeted gay people. He
was also having a sexual affair with Amir Abdullah. Prentice started
out high-mindedly, hoping to improve the lot of gay Americans by
forcing prominent people who were gay to publicly proclaim themselves.
But in a while-Amir has admitted that it was his suggestion-this became
a vehicle for blackmail, and made both Amir and Prentice a considerable
profit. Amir, however, ever the romantic, lost interest in Prentice and
took up with Milo Quant, the head of an anti-gay, anti-black, anti a
whole bunch of stuff group called Last Stand Systems, Inc. Prentice,
the jilted lover, threatened to out them both if Amir didn't return to
his arms. This would work very badly for the man whose official
position was white and heterosexual. Amir was frightened about what
Milo might do, so without telling Milo, he asked a couple of Milo's
security people to shut Prentice up. He swears he thought they'd rough
Prentice up and frighten him into silence. The security guys say Amir
told them to kill Prentice. Which they did, leaving a kind of
all-purpose suicide note."
A thin wiry woman with short very curly hair raised her hand at the far end of the conference table. I nodded at her.
"Did the Last Stand whatchamacallit know about their boss and Amir?"
"No. Just the personal bodyguard. They would smuggle Amir up to a
motel near the Maine headquarters, usually, but sometimes to other
places, where he would rendezvous with Milo."
"Classic fascist ambivalence," the speaker was a small man with
longish tan hair and horn-rimmed glasses, "to lust in private after
everything they despise in public."
"You bet," I said. "So Amir decided that since he had a corpse handy, blame Robinson Nevins for it, and get a twofer."
"Excuse me?" Bass Maitland said.
"Two for one," Tillman said brusquely. "Go ahead, Mr. Spenser."
"Well, why on earth would he do that?" Maitland said.
"Amir is pretty pathological," I said. "He couldn't stand any
competition, let alone competition from a black scholar as accomplished
and as fundamentally decent as Robinson Nevins."
"Nevins never had an affair with Prentice Lamont?" the wiry woman said.
"No. Robinson isn't even gay," I said.
I looked at Lillian Temple. Her face showed nothing.
"Well, for God's sake, why didn't he say so?" Maitland said.
"Because he felt that since the charges were specious regardless of
his sexuality, proclaiming his heterosexuality was both undignified and
perhaps in some way hostile to the interests of his many gay friends."
"Bass wouldn't understand that," Harmon said.
"Tommy, please," Tillman said.
"I resent that," Maittand said.
"Bass," Tillman said.
"To prove his heterosexuality would have required women to testify
that they'd been intimate with him," I said. "Several of them were not
free to be. He declined to put them on the spot."
Again I was looking at Lillian Temple. Her appearance remained rigidly unchanged.
"My God," said the little guy with the big glasses, "he sounds like one of nature's noblemen. And we're denying him tenure?"
"Do you know who any of these women are?" the wiry woman asked.
"Yes."
"May we know?"
I shook my head. Lillian Temple's expression remained unchanged. She was so still that she was barely there.
"How do we know that this man is telling the truth?" Maitland said.
"Bass," I said, "I don't wish to appear uncouth, so I'll let it
slide that you're kind of calling me a liar. But if you do it outside
of these august proceedings, I will knock you on your Harris tweed
tookus."
Tommy Harmon chuckled. Maitland flushed.
"Mr. Spenser," Tillman's voice was like the thin edge of a piece of
ice. "Whether or not these proceedings are august, they are serious.
Bass, everything Mr. Spenser has said is corroborated in the police
reports, generally in Abdullah's own words."
"I haven't had a chance to read the reports," Maitland said sullenly.
"They were distributed three days ago. We all had the chance,"
Tillman said. "I took advantage of it, you didn't. Do you have anything
else to tell us, Mr. Spenser?"
"I have a couple of guesses. One, I think Amir was beginning to tire
of Milo. Amir's taste usually ran younger. Or maybe Milo was tiring of
Amir. Whatever, Amir proposed the blackmail scheme to Walt and Willie,
the two young men who inherited OUTrageous. He told them he didn't want
a cut. Presumably he didn't need money as long as he was with Milo. But
if he was tiring of Milo, or vice versa, or was simply insecure in the
covertness of the relationship, and was going to be on his own again,
then he'd need to supplement his teaching salary with blackmail money
as he had before, and he wanted the system in place. He also took up
with one of the young men."
"Foresighted," Tillman said.
The committee asked me maybe a dozen questions. Tommy Harmon spoke
about the injustice that they were trying to avert. Bass Maitland made
a formal statement about the danger of taking these decisions from the
hands of the department. Lillian Temple concurred.
"Are we ready for a vote?" Tillman said. They were.
"Very well," Tillman said. "Mr. Spenser, will you step outside,
please. Professors Temple, Harmon, Maitland will join him please."
All the time we stood outside in the corridor nobody said anything.
I looked at Lillian Temple. She stood as close as dignity permitted to
Bass Maitland and looked at something else. Anything else. I was sort
of hoping Bass would call me a liar again. He didn't. Maybe I could put
an eraser on my shoulder and dare him to knock it off. I thought about
explaining that to Susan afterward, and decided not to dare him.
In about twenty minutes the committee came out in ones and twos and
dispersed without saying anything to us. Tillman came out last.
"The committee has voted to recommend to the dean that Robinson Nevins be granted tenure," he said.
Tommy Harmon broke into a wide grin and shook my hand.
"You'll inform Robinson?" I said.
"Right now," he said and walked away.
Bass Maitland and Lillian Temple were still there. He began to walk away. She lingered for a moment behind him.
"Well," she said. "It looks like you've won."
"Yes," I said. "It looks like I have."
"Congratulations."
"Thanks," I said.
"I…" She paused for a long time. I waited. Finally she shook her head and turned and started after Maitland.
"Sleep warm," I said.
Chapter 57
Apparently it was going to rain forever. But today, so it shouldn't
be boring, there was thunder and lightning as well. I was standing at
my window watching the rainwater overwhelm the storm drains and back up
over the sidewalk on Berkeley Street. A long streak of lightning
razz-ma-tazzed across the sky, followed hard upon by thunder. It was
early, people were on their way to work. Below me a scatter of colorful
umbrella tops was bright against the gleaming wet pavement. Flowers on
a dark wet field.
Behind me someone knocked on my office door. I turned away from the storm and looked at the door.
"Come in," I said.
A fat guy with his hat on backward came in.
"You Spenser?" he said.
"Yes."
"Got a couch here."
"A couch?"
"Yeah, where you want it."
"I didn't buy a couch," I said.
"Well, somebody did, says here your name, this address."
"Does it say who bought it?"
"Nope. Got a phone number though."
He read it to me. It was Susan's.
"Put it next to the door," I said.
He went back out and in a minute he came in with one end of a couch
wrapped in plastic. At the other end was a tall thin black man who was
probably Haitian. They put the couch down, the Haitian man took the
plastric wrap off it. The fat guy with the hat got my signature on the
slip and they left. I closed the door and looked at the couch. It was
very manly looking, brass studs, dark green leather, and long. I tried
stretching out on it. Nap-able. I got up and went back and looked at
the weather some more. More lightning jittered past. Behind me the door
opened. It was Susan wearing a scarlet silk raincoat and a big hat. She
had a large bag of something with her. As soon as she got inside she
turned and studied the couch.
"Cute, cute, cute, cute, cute," she said.
"Five cutes," I said. "You look like the rain goddess."
"I know," she said. "Do we love our new couch?"
"Cute, cute, cute, cute, cute," I said.
"You've got the phrasing all wrong," she said. "You pause after the second cute, then rattle off the last three rapidly."
"I'll work on it," I said. "What's in the bag?"
"Eats," she said. "In case you've not had breakfast."
"I can always use another breakfast," I said.
"Egg salad sandwiches," Susan said, as she took things out of the
bag, and put them on my desk. "On light rye, coffee, and some adorable
little Key lime cookies."
"Excellent choices," I said. "Why do I have a new couch in my office?"
"You need one," Susan said.
She put napkins out and unwrapped one of the sandwiches. It was cut in quarters.
"Be nice for Pearl," I said, "next bring your dog to work day."
"Yes, she hates sleeping on the floor."
"Me too," I said. "How come you're not working?"
"I canceled my appointments today, I thought we needed to celebrate."
"Have I missed an anniversary date?" I said.
"No. I just think you've done a hell of a job in some very messy cases that your friends got you into."
The room brightened for a moment as thunder chased lightning past the window. I had a bite of sandwich and a sip of coffee.
"You being one of the friends?" I said.
"And Hawk being the other."
"What are friends for?"
"And Hawk's friend got tenure?" Susan said.
"Yes."
"And Amir whatsisname is going to jail?"
"Pretty sure. Couple of state cops found him hiding naked, trying to
get out of the rain, in a culvert under 495. Soon as they got him into
the car he started blaming Milo for all his troubles, and along the way
confessed to everything. Which works out great because Milo is blaming
everything on Amir."
"What about Milo?" Susan said.
"He appears eager to testify against Amir, and the two security guys who tossed Prentice out the window."
"Will he go to jail?"
"I believe him that he didn't know about the Lamont murder," I said.
"And since it's not illegal to be a racist gay homophobe, I assume that
if the DA believes him, he'll walk when he gets through testifying. His
future as a charismatic leader seems grim, though."
We ate a little more sandwich and watched a little more lightning and listened to a little more thunder.
"I know the meteorological explanations," I said to Susan, "and I
believe them. But it's hard not to think of the gods during a
thunderstorm."
"I know," she said. "And Robinson wasn't even gay."
"Nope."
"But he wouldn't say so."
"Nope."
"That's either great integrity or great foolishness."
"Integrity is often foolish," I said.
She smiled at me and I was thrilled.
"Of course it is," she said. "I understand from sources that KC Roth has gone back to her therapist in Providence."
"Just needed a little professional intervention," I said.
"Didn't you tell me that she asked if you'd ever had sex in the office?"
"Yes."
"And you said you didn't want to do so on the floor, and were waiting for a couch."
"Why, yes," I said.
Susan smiled again. Not the smile of approval, which thrilled me,
but the smile of promise which could easily launch a thousand ships.
"I believe I see a pattern emerging," I said.
"You're a trained observer," Susan said. "Do you mind making love after you've eaten?"
"After, before, during, instead of-whatever the schedule calls for."
Susan got up and went to my door and locked it. Then she took off
her raincoat and hung it on the coatrack. She took her hat off and put
it on top of my file cabinet. She slipped her dress over her head, and
hung it on a hanger on the rack, taking time to smooth out any
wrinkles. She fluffed her hair carefully. Then she turned and smiled at
me and finished undressing. She picked up the big hat and put it on.
"Shall we try the couch?" she said.
"With the hat on?" I said.
"Special effects," Susan said.
"Works for me," I said.
The hat was on the floor shortly after we began. The storm made the
room sort of dim, except when the lightning made it brilliant. The rain
was thick on the window. By the time we finished we were on the floor
beside the hat.
"So much for the new couch," I said.
Susan pressed her face into my neck as if her nose were cold.
"So much for KC Roth," she said.
And we lay there with our arms around each other and laughed while the thunder and lightning frolicked with the rain outside.
Hush Money - Parker
Hush Money
(Spenser 26)
By
Robert B. Parker
Copyright © 1999
For Joan;
all the day and night time
Contents
Chapter 1
Chapter 2
Chapter 3
Chapter 4
Chapter 5
Chapter 6
Chapter 7
Chapter 8
Chapter 9
Chapter 10
Chapter 11
Chapter 12
Chapter 13
Chapter 14
Chapter 15
Chapter 16
Chapter 17
Chapter 18
Chapter 19
Chapter 20
Chapter 21
Chapter 22
Chapter 23
Chapter 24
Chapter 25
Chapter 26
Chapter 27
Chapter 28
Chapter 29
Chapter 30
Chapter 31
Chapter 32
Chapter 33
Chapter 34
Chapter 35
Chapter 36
Chapter 37
Chapter 38
Chapter 39
Chapter 40
Chapter 41
Chapter 42
Chapter 43
Chapter 44
Chapter 45
Chapter 46
Chapter 47
Chapter 48
Chapter 49
Chapter 50
Chapter 51
Chapter 52
Chapter 53
Chapter 54
Chapter 55
Chapter 56
Chapter 57
Hush Money
(Spenser 26)
By
Robert B. Parker
Copyright © 1999
For Joan;
all the day and night time
Chapter 1
Outside my window, a mixture of rain and snow was settling into
slush on Berkeley Street. I was listening to a spring training game
from Florida between the Sox and the Blue Jays. Joe Castiglione and
Jerry Trupiano were calling the game and struggling bravely to read all
the drop-ins the station had sold. They did as well as anyone could,
but Red Barber and Mel Allen would have had trouble with the number of
commercials these guys had to slip in. The leisurely pace of baseball
had once been made for radio. It allowed the announcers to talk about
baseball in perfect consonance with the rhythm of the game. We listened
not only to hear what happened but because we liked the music of it.
The sound of a late game from the coast, between two teams out of
contention on a Sunday afternoon in August, driving home from the
beach. The crowd noise was faint in the background, the voices of the
play-by-play guys embroidering on a dull game. Now there was little
time for baseball talk. There was barely time for play-by-play. And
much of the music was gone. Still, it was the sound of spring, and it
took some of the chill out of the slush storm.
Just after the fifth inning started, Hawk came into my office with a
smallish man in a short haircut, wearing a dark three-piece suit and a
red and white polka dot bow tie. His skin was blue black and seemed
tight on him. I turned the radio down, but not off.
"Client," Hawk said.
"Ever hopeful," I said.
I recognized the small man. His name was Robinson Nevins. He was a
professor at the university, the author of at least a dozen books, a
frequent guest an television shows, and a nationally known figure in
what the press calls The Black Community. Time magazine had once
referred to him as "the Lion of Academe."
"I'm Robinson Nevins," he said and put his hand out. I leaned
forward and shook it without getting up. "Hawk may be premature in
calling me a client. We need to talk a bit first, among other things we
ought to find out if we can get along."
"Whose tab?" I said to Hawk.
"Guarantee half everything I get," Hawk said.
"That much," I said.
"I can't afford very much," Nevins said.
"Maybe we won't get along," I said.
"I am dependent largely on a university salary and, as I'm sure you know, that is not a handsome sum."
"Depends what sums you're used to," I said. "How about the books?"
"The books are well received, and have influence I hope beyond their
sales. Their sales are modest. I make some money on the lecture
circuit, but far too often I speak because I feel the cause is just
rather than the price is right."
"Don't you hate when that happens," I said.
Nevins smiled, but not as if he thought I was funny.
"What would you like to pay me a modest amount to do?" I said.
"I have been denied tenure," Nevins said.
I stared at him.
"Tenure?" I said.
"Yes. Unjustly."
"And you want me to look into that."
"Yes."
"Tenure," I said.
"Yes."
I was silent. Nevins didn't say anything else. I looked at Hawk.
"You want me to do this?" I said to Hawk.
"Yes."
I was silent again.
"I understand your reaction," Nevins said. "I sound churlish to you.
And you think that there are causes of greater urgency than whether I
get tenure at the university."
I pointed a finger at Nevins.
"Bingo," I said.
"I know, were I you that would be my reaction. But it is not simply
that I am denied tenure and therefore will have to leave. I can find
another job. What is at issue here is that I shouldn't have been denied
tenure. I am more qualified than most members of the tenure committee.
More qualified than many who have received tenure."
"You think it's racial?" I said.
"It would be an easy supposition and one most of us have made
correctly in our lives," Nevins said. "But I am, in fact, not sure that
it is."
"What else?" I said.
"I don't know. I am something of an anomaly for a black man at the university. I am relatively conservative."
"What do you teach?"
"American literature."
"Black perspective?"
"Well, my perspective. I include black writers, but I also include a number of dead white men."
"Daring," I said.
"Do you know that we are turning out English Ph.D.s who have never read Milton?"
"I didn't know that," I said. "You think you were shot down for being insufficiently correct?"
"Possibly," Nevins said. "I don't know. What I know is there was a
smear campaign orchestrated by someone, which I believe cost me tenure."
"You want me to find out who did the smearing?"
"Yes."
I looked at Hawk again. He nodded.
"Wouldn't an attorney be more likely to get you your tenure?"
"I am not fighting this because I didn't get tenure. I'm fighting this because it's wrong."
"If you got the tenure decision reversed, would you accept it?"
Nevins smiled at the question.
"You press a person, don't you," he said.
"I like to know things," I said.
"Like how sincere I am about fighting this because it's wrong."
"That would be good to know," I said.
"If I were offered tenure I would have to assess my options. But even if I accepted it, the process was still wrong."
"What was the thrust of the smear campaign?"
Hawk appeared to be listening to the faintly audible ball game. And
he was. If asked, he could give you the score and recap the last
inning. He would also be able to tell you everything I said or Nevins
said and how we looked when we said it.
"A young man, a graduate student, committed suicide this past
semester. It was alleged to be the result of a sexual relationship with
me."
"What was his name?" I said.
"Prentice Lamont."
"Any truth to it?"
"None."
I nodded.
"I imagine you'd like that laid to rest as well."
"Yes."
"Okay," I said.
"Okay meaning you'll do it?"
"Yep."
Nevins seemed mildly puzzled. "Like that?"
"Yep."
"Aren't you going to ask if I'm gay?"
"Nope."
"Why not?"
"Don't care."
"But," Nevins frowned, "it might be germane."
"If it is, I'll ask," I said.
Nevins opened his mouth and closed it and sat back in his chair.
Then he took a green-covered checkbook out of his inside coat pocket.
"What will you need for a retainer?"
"No need for a retainer," I said.
"Oh, but I insist. I don't want favors."
Hawk was looking out the window at the slush accumulating around the
stylishly booted ankles of the young women leaving the insurance
companies on their way to lunch.
Without turning around he said, "He doing me the favor, Robinson."
Nevins was not slow. He looked once at Hawk, and back at me, and
nodded to himself. He put the green checkbook back inside his coat and
stood.
"Do you need anything else right now?" he said.
"No. I'll poke around at it, see what develops."
"And I'll hear from you?"
"Yes," I said.
"Will you be involved, Hawk?"
Hawk turned from the window and grinned at Nevins.
"Sure," he said. "I'll help him with the hard stuff."
Nevins put out his hand. "I appreciate your taking this," he said, "for whomever you're doing the favor."
I shook it.
"You need a ride anyplace?" he said to Hawk.
Hawk shook his head. Nevins nodded as if to confirm something in his
head, and turned and left. Hawk continued to look out the window. The
ball game had moved quietly into the eighth inning. Outside my window
it was mostly rain now. Hawk turned away from the window and looked at
me without expression.
"Tenure?" I said.
Hawk smiled.
"'Fraid so," he said.
Chapter 2
Susan undertook periodically to make my office more homelike, and
one of her most successful attempts was the relatively recent
introduction of a coffeemaker, coffee canisters, and some
color-coordinated mugs. Milk for the coffee then required a small
refrigerator, in which I could also keep beer in case of an emergency.
The refrigerator, of course, matched the mugs and the canisters and the
sugar bowl and milk pitcher. The coffee filters and flatware were in a
little drawer in the cabinet that I had built under her direction to
hold the refrigerator. Hawk always smiled when he looked at it. Which
he was doing now as he made us some coffee.
"Surprised Susan don't have you color-coordinating your ammunition," Hawk said.
"Well, she does sort of like the .357," I said, "because she likes
how the lead nose of the bullets contrasts with the stainless steel
cylinder."
"Tasteful in small things," Hawk said, "tasteful in all things."
He poured a pot full of water into the coffeemaker and turned the machine on.
"Tell me about Robinson Nevins," I said.
"Father is Bobby Nevins," Hawk said.
"The trainer?"
"Un huh."
Hawk and I both watched the small trickle of coffee that Mr. Coffee was generating very slowly into the pot.
"A watched pot never brews," I said.
"Yeah it will," Hawk said.
"You know Bobby Nevins?" I said.
"Yeah."
"He ever train you?"
"Some," he said.
"That how you know the kid?"
"Un huh."
The pot had filled slowly.
"Tole you it would brew." Hawk said.
"Jeez," I said. "I was sure I was right."
Hawk took it from the machine and poured us two cups of coffee.
"You are a domestic fool," I said when Hawk handed me a cup.
"Ancestors were house slaves," Hawk said. "It's in the genes."
"So how well you know Robinson Nevins?" I said.
"Bobby come closer to bringing me up," Hawk said, "than anyone else."
"So you've known Robinson all your life."
"Yes."
"Well?"
"No, not so much. He was around some."
"But he came to you when he got in trouble," I said.
Hawk shook his head.
"Bobby did," Hawk said.
"He's still alive?"
"Yeah. Eighty-two now, still healthy, still hangs out at the gym looking for young fighters."
"So Robinson was born to him late."
"Yes, only kid. Got divorced when Robinson was pretty small. Wasn't a good divorce. Don't know where Robinson's mother is now."
"Kid close to his father?"
"Bobby loves that kid," Hawk said. "Kid grew up mostly with his
mother. But Bobby paid the bills and saw the kid when he could and when
the kid got to be a professor Bobby was walking around talking like the
kid had just become heavyweight champ. You know, I don't know if Bobby
ever even went to school. I'm not sure how much Bobby can read."
"How about Robinson. He close to Bobby?"
"I think he's a little embarrassed by his father," Hawk said. "He's
close to his mamma and his mamma never had much good to say about
Bobby."
I nodded.
"What do you know about his problems?" I said.
"Just what he told you:"
"What do you think?"
"'Bout the tenure or the suicide or what?"
"Any of the above." I said.
"Don't know shit about tenure," Hawk said. "Kid who died, Prentice
Lamont, was a very gay guy. I pretty sure Robinson knew him. Don't know
if Robinson is gay or not."
"How gay?" I said.
"Activist. Ran a little flier service that outed people."
"How nice," I said. "What's the rumor about him and Robinson?"
"That they had a big affair and Robinson broke it off and the kid killed himself."
"Love unrequited?"
"That's the rumor," Hawk said.
"Bobby Nevins know this rumor?"
"Yeah."
"What's he say?"
"He says fix it." Hawk said. "He wants the kid to get his tenure."
"Bobby got any money?"
Hawk shook his head. He was holding the coffee mug in both hands,
his hips resting against the color-coordinated countertop, the steam
from the coffee rising faintly in front of his face.
"So we're in this for the donut," I said.
Hawk nodded and smiled. When he smiled he looked like a large black
Mona Lisa, if Mona had shaved her head… and had a nineteen-inch
bicep… and a 29-inch waist… and very little conscience.
"How's that work, exactly," I said. "You take on somebody for no money, and I get to share in the profits?"
"You the detective;" Hawk said.
"True."
"Whereas," Hawk said, "I just a simple thug."
"Also true."
"And you my friend."
"Embarrassing, but true."
"So." Hawk spread his hands, holding the coffee cup with his right,
in a gesture of voila "I try to bring you as much business as I can."
"Like this thing."
"Exactly," Hawk said. "And I going to help you with it."
"Swell," I said.
"So what we going to do first?" Hawk said.
"Drink some more coffee," I said.
Hawk nodded. "Tha's a good start," he said. "Then what we going to do, bawse?"
"Get you diction lessons," I said. "I always know when you are
really jerking my chain, because you start sounding like Mantan
Moreland."
"Mantan Moreland?"
"I'm kind of proud of coming up with that one myself," I said. "Where did the Lamont kid do the deed?"
"Had a condo in the South End," Hawk said. "Did it there."
"Okay, that's Boston Homicide. Which means Quirk and Belson."
"So we talk with them first," Hawk said.
"I'll talk with them first," I said. "They'd arrest you."
"Bigots," Hawk said.
Chapter 3
I was in Cambridge with Susan. We were cleaning up the backyard
behind the house on Linnaean Street where she lived and worked. Pearl
the wonder dog was catching some rays on the top step of the back porch
while we worked. Since part of what we were cleaning up was left by
Pearl, it seemed only right that she be there.
I had dug a large hole in the recently thawed earth in one corner of
the yard and into it I was putting shovelfuls of yard waste which
Susan, wearing fingerless leather workout gloves, had raked into a
number of small piles. One of the things that made Susan so interesting
was the fact that she looked like a Jewish princess and worked like a
Bulgarian peasant. As far as I knew she had never been tired. I dumped
a shovelful of waste into the hole and shoveled a little dirt over it.
"Reminds me of my profession," I said.
"Cleaning up after?" Susan said.
"Yeah."
In addition to her workout gloves, Susan had on black tights, a
hip-length yellow jacket, and a black Polo baseball cap. In the spirit
of cleanup she had put on designer work boots, black leather with
silver eyelets, which looked odd, but good, over the tights.
"It's a good reminder," Susan said, "of life's essential messiness."
"Or Pearl's."
"Same thing," Susan said.
Pearl raised her head slightly at the mention of her name, and then
looked slightly annoyed that it was a false alarm. She sighed noisily
as she settled her head back down onto her front paws. The sun was
bright, and the earth had thawed, but in the shady corners against the
fence and under a couple of evergreen shrubs, granular snow lingered
like a dirty secret, and lurking inside the sixty-degree temperature
was an edge of cold to remind us that it was too early for planting.
When we were done, and I had shoveled the dirt over the waste hole
and tamped it down, Susan and I went and sat on the penultimate step,
just below Pearl.
"Are you actually going to investigate that tenure case at the university?" Susan said.
"Yes."
She smiled.
"What," I said.
"The thought of you rampaging about in the university tenure committee," Susan said, "is very engaging."
"Rampaging?" I said. "I can be delicate as a neurosurgeon when it's called for."
"Most university tenure committees call for rampaging, I think."
"I admit to being more comfortable with that approach," I said.
Moved by an impulse understandable only by another dog, Pearl raised
up and began to lap my face. I hunched up and endured it until she
decided I'd had enough and switched to Susan.
"How'd you know about the case?" I said.
She was fending Pearl off, so it took her a while to answer. But
finally, Pearl-free and makeup still mostly intact, Susan said, "Hawk
discussed it with me, before he asked you."
"He did?" I said.
"He wanted my view on whether he was asking more of you than he should," Susan said.
"And you answered?"
"I answered that he had the right to ask you for everything and vice versa."
"What'd he say?"
Susan smiled.
"He agreed," she said.
I nodded.
"Is Hawk's friend gay?" Susan said.
"Don't know," I said.
"But wouldn't raging heterosexuality be a useful defense against the
allegation that the graduate student killed himself as the result of an
affair with Professor Nevins?"
"I guess it would," I said.
"Did you ask him?"
"No."
"I understand why you would not, but isn't it something that needs to be established?"
"Can it be established?" I said. "In my experience it's not always so clear-cut."
Susan leaned her elbows on the top step and pressed her head back
against Pearl's rib cage. She thought about my question for a moment
while I observed the way in which her posture made her chest press sort
of tight against her jacket.
"Are you looking at my boobs?" Susan said.
"I'm a trained investigator," I said. "I notice everything."
"Do you make judgments on what you observe?"
"I try not to, but am sometimes forced to."
"And the boobs?"
"Top drawer," I said. "What about the question?"
"It's a good one." Susan said, "and much more complicated than is generally thought."
"Then I've come to the right place."
"Yes."
Susan smiled at me. It was a smile that could easily have launched a thousand ships.
"Complications 'R' Us."
She rubbed the back of her head on Pearl for a moment.
"Sexuality is not as fixed as is commonly thought, and the
discussion of it has become so political that if you quoted in public
what I'm about to say I'd probably deny I said it."
"Before or after the cock crowed?" I said.
"I didn't know it crowed," Susan said.
"Never mind;" I said. "Talk to me about sexuality."
Susan smiled but didn't go for the obvious remark. Instead, she
said, "I have treated people who experienced themselves as homosexual
at the beginning of therapy and experienced themselves as heterosexual
at the end." Susan was picking her words carefully, even with me. "I
have treated people who experienced themselves as heterosexual at the
start of therapy and experienced themselves as homosexual at the end."
"And if you said that in print?"
"A firestorm of outrage."
"Because you seem to be saying that sexuality can be altered by therapy?"
"I am recounting my experience," Susan said. "Obviously I have
experienced a self-selecting sample: people whose presence in therapy
is probably related to either uncertainty about, or dissatisfaction
with, their sexuality. It is not always the presenting syndrome, and it
is not always what people thought they wanted. Some people come to be
`cured' of their homosexuality, only to embrace it by the end of the
therapy."
I nodded. As she concentrated on what she was saying, Susan had
stopped rubbing Pearl's rib cage with her head, and Pearl leaned over
and nudged Susan with her nose. Susan reached up and patted her.
"And in the therapeutic community that would be unacceptably incorrect?" I said.
"I don't know anywhere, but here, that what I've said wouldn't stir up a ruckus."
"You've never minded a ruckus."
"No," Susan said. "Actually, I sometimes like ruckuses, but this
ruckus would get in the way of my work, and I like my work better even
than a ruckus."
"How about me," I said. "Do you like me better than a ruckus?"
"You are a ruckus," Susan said.
Chapter 4
I talked with Frand Belson in his spiffy new cubicle in the spiffy new police headquarters on Tremont Street in Roxbury.
"Golly," I said when I sat down.
"Yeah," Belson said.
"This will knock crime on its ear, won't it?" I said.
"Right on its ear," Belson said.
He was built like a rake handle, but harder. And, though I knew for
a fact that he shaved twice a day, he always had a blue sheen of beard.
"They issue you a nice new gun when you moved here?"
"I could call informational services," Belson said. "One of the ladies there be happy to tour you around the new facility."
"Maybe later,"' I said. "What do you know about a suicide named Prentice Lamont?"
"Kid from the university?"
"Yeah."
"Did a Brody out the window of his apartment. Ten stories."
"A Brody?"
"Yeah. I heard George Raft say that in an old movie last week," Belson said. "I liked it. I been saving it up."
"Why?"
"Why'd he do a Brody?" Belson grinned. "Left a note on his computer.
It said, I believe, `I can't go on. There's someone who will understand
why."'
"What kind of suicide note is that?" I said.
"What, is there some kind of form note?" Belson said. "Pick it up at the stationery store? Fill in the blanks?"
"Did he sign it?"
"On the computer?"
"Well, did he type his name at the end?"
"Yeah."
"Any thought that maybe he got Brodied?"
"Sure," Belson said. "You know you always think about that, but
there's nothing to suggest it. And when there isn't, we like to close
the case."
"Any more on the cause?"
"We were told that he was despondent over the end of a love affair."
"With whom?"
"That's confidential information," Belson said.
"Who told you?"
"Also confidential," Belson said.
He reached into the left-hand file drawer of his desk and ruffled some folders and took one out and put it on his desk.
"That's why we keep all that information right here in this folder
marked confidential. See right there on the front:
Con-fid-fucking-dential."
He put the blue file folder on his desk, and squared it neatly in the center of the green blotter.
"I'm going down the hall to the can," Belson said. "Be about ten
minutes. I don't want you poking around in this confidential folder on
the Lamont case while I'm gone. I particularly don't want you using
that photocopier beside the water cooler."
"You can count on me, Sergeant."
Belson got up and walked out of the squad room down the hall. I
leaned over the desk and turned the file toward me and opened it. The
report was ten pages long. I picked up the file and walked down to the
copy machine and made copies. Then I went back to Belson's cubicle.
When Belson came back the copies were folded the long way and
stashed in my inside coat pocket, and the file folder was neatly
centered on Belson's blotter. Belson picked the folder up without
comment and put it back in his file drawer.
"Unofficially," I said, "you got any thoughts about this thing?"
"I'm never unofficial," Belson said. "When I'm getting laid, I'm getting laid officially."
"How nice for Lisa," I said.
Belson grinned.
"I don't see anything soft in the case," he said. "The kid was gay,
apparently had a love affair with an older man that went sour, and he
did the, ah, Brody."
"You interview the older man?"
"Yep."
"He admit the affair?"
"Nope. He is a faculty member at the university. I heard he was up for tenure."
"So he'd have some reason to deny it."
"I don't know how they feel on the tenure committee about professors fucking students," Belson said. "You?"
"I'm guessing it's considered improper," I said.
"Maybe," Belson said.
"You ask?" I said.
Belson dropped his voice.
"The deliberations of the tenure committee are confidential;" he said.
"So they wouldn't tell you if sex with a student counted for or against tenure?"
"Some of the people I talked to, sex with anything would count," Belson said.
"But you got no information from the tenure folks."
"No."
"And if you yanked their ivy-covered tuchases down here for a talk?" I said.
"Tuchases?"
"You can always tell when a guy's scoring a Jewess," I said.
"I thought the plural was tuch-i," Belson said.
"Shows you're not scoring a Jewess," I said. "You didn't want to shake them up a little?"
"We had no reason to think that the case was anything but an open-and-shut suicide," Belson said.
He smiled. "Quirk wanted to run them down here just because they
annoyed him," he said. "But they had the university legal counsel
there, and like I say, we had no reason."
"But it would have been kind of fun," I said.
Belson smiled but he didn't comment. Instead he said, "So what's your interest. You think the suicide's bogus?"
"Got no opinion," I said. "I been hired to find out why Robinson Nevins didn't get tenure:"
"Really?" Belson said.
"He says a malicious smear campaign prevented it, including the
allegation that he was the faculty member for whom Lamont did the
Brody."
"See?" Belson said. "I knew you'd like that word. Does he admit it?"
"He denies it."
Belson shrugged.
"Should be easy enough to prove he had a relationship," Belson said.
"Harder to prove that he didn't."
"Yep.' I stood up. "Well, I think your new digs are fabulous:"
"Yeah, me too," Belson said.
"But it's a long way from Berkeley Street. What are you going to do when you need help?"
"You're as close as my nearest phone," Belson said.
"Well, that must be consoling to you," I said.
"Consoling," Belson said.
Chapter 5
At two in the afternoon the temperature was in the eighties, the sun
was bright, and there was only a very soft breeze. A perfect midsummer
day except that it was March 29. I was reading the paper with my feet
up and the window open.
Susan came into my office wearing white shorts and a dark blue sleeveless top. She had Pearl on a leash.
"It's summer," she said. "I want us to go outside and play."
"Don't you have patients?" I said.
"Not this afternoon. It's the afternoon I teach my seminar."
"And?"
"And I canceled my seminar because of the weather."
"I might have clients," I said.
Susan glanced around my office. "Un huh."
"And I might be studying evidence," I said.
She came around the desk and looked over my shoulder.
"Tank McNamara," she said.
"There could be a clue there;" I said. "You don't know."
Susan gave me a look that, had it not been diluted by affection,
would have been withering. I folded the paper carefully and put it down
on my desk.
"So," I said, "what would you like to do?"
"You don't know where there's a field of daffodils in bloom, do you?"
"Susan," I said, "it's March 29:"
"Okay, then let's walk along the river."
"Flexible," I said.
"You bet:"
"I like flexible," I said.
"I know."
We were crossing the footbridge near the Shell when Susan said to
me, "Do you have time between the Robinson Nevins case and Tank
McNamara to do a little something for a friend of mine?"
I said I did.
"KC Roth," Susan said. "Actually that's a nickname. Short for Katherine Carole. She is recently divorced, and being stalked."
"Ex-husband?" I said.
"That's what she thinks, but she's not actually seen him."
"So how does she know she's being stalked?" I said.
We were down on the Esplanade, and Pearl was leading out up the river.
"Phone calls, she answers, silence at the other end," Susan said. "A
flat tire, there's a nail in it; eerie music on her answering machine;
a guy she dated got a threatening letter."
"Anonymously," I said.
"Of course:"
"He keep it?"
"I don't know. She said she hasn't seen him since:"
"Course of true love," I said, "never did run smooth:" P
earl saw a cocker spaniel coming along the Esplanade from the other direction. She growled. The hair on her back rose.
"Not a friendly dog," I said to Susan.
"Friendly to you and me," Susan said.
"All you can ask," I said. "What you've described may legally be stalking, but it falls more into the realm of dirty tricks."
"I know."
"Husband abuse her when he was with her?"
"I asked that," Susan said. "She says he did not:"
"Why'd they divorce?"
"She left him for another man," Susan said.
"And the other man?" I said.
"Didn't work out."
"How come she doesn't think it's the other man doing the stalking?"
"He dumped her," Susan said.
"As soon as she became available?"
"Yes."
"You know his name?"
"No. She won't tell me, says he's a married man."
"Who was happy to sleep with her on the side and said `oh honey if only we were single' and she believed him and got single."
"I don't know what happened," Susan said, "but your scenario is not unheard of."
The spaniel passed by and kept going with its owner. Pearl looked
longingly after it and then stopped growling and let her hair back down
and forged ahead again, keeping the leash taut.
"What's her ex's name?" I said. "Burt-Burton. Burton Roth."
"You know him?"
"He seemed a pleasant man."
"Any kids?"
"One, she's with her father."
"Hmph," I said.
"Hmph?"
"Hmph."
"What's hmph mean?"
"Means now I've got two cases and no fee;" I said.
"Well, in this case there might not exactly be no fee," Susan said.
"I'll get right on it," I said.
Chapter 6
Hawk and I sat on a bench by the swan boat lagoon in the Public
Garden on the first good day of spring. The temperature was 77. The sun
was out. And the swan boats were cranking. We were looking at the notes
I made from Belson's confidential files.
"So," Hawk said when we were through. "Nobody actually claims to
have seen Robinson and the Lamont kid together in any romantic fashion
except these two professors:"
I looked at my photocopy of Belson's report. "Lillian Temple," I said, "and Amir Abdullah."
"Amir," Hawk said.
He was looking at a squirrel who kept skittering closer to us, and
rearing up and not getting anything to eat and looking as outraged as
squirrels get to look.
"You know Amir?" I said.
"Yeah, I do," Hawk said.
"Tell me about him," I said.
A man in an oversized double-breasted suit walked by eating peanuts from a bag.
"Gimme one of your peanuts, please," Hawk said.
The man in the big suit looked flustered and said, "Sure," and held the bag out to Hawk.
Hawk took a peanut out and said, "Thank you." Big Suit smiled
uncomfortably and walked on. Hawk gave the peanut to the squirrel and
then said again, "Amir."
I waited.
"Amir embarrassed as hell he didn't grow up poor. And he embarrassed
as hell he lived where there was white folks and he been working for
the Yankee dollar all his life."
"Most of us do," I said.
"But Amir, he never had no ghetto to drag himself out of, and been
treated decent by all the white folks he met along the way, and he got
a scholarship and then he got another one and he got a nice
middle-class income and now he got a Ph.D. and he can't stand it."
"Poor devil," I said.
"So to make up," Hawk said, "Amir so down even I don't understand him when he talk."
"So he'll be really pleased to help me with this investigation," I said.
"Can't hide the fact that you a blue-eyed devil, but I maybe talk to
him with you," Hawk said. "Give you some, ah, authenticity."
The aggressive squirrel returned and looked at Hawk, sitting up on its hind legs, balancing on its disproportionate tail.
"Give a squirrel a peanut and you feed him for a moment," I said. "But teach him to grow peanuts…"
"You and Amir going to get along so good," Hawk said. "Can't wait to watch."
"How about Ms. Temple," I said, "I don't suppose you know her."
"How I going to know her?" Hawk said.
"Well, for a while you were running a sub-specialization in female professors," I said. "She coulda been one of them."
"Good-looking female professors," Hawk said.
"How do you know Prof. Temple isn't good-looking?"
"Don't," Hawk said. "But the odds are with me."
"Just because she's an academic?" I said.
"Where she live?" Hawk said.
I checked my notes. "Cambridge," I said.
Hawk smiled.
"Well, it doesn't actually prove she's not a looker," I said.
Hawk continued to smile.
"This is bigotry;" I said. "You're generalizing based on profession and residence."
"Yowzah;' Hawk said.
"She might be a beauty," I said.
"What you figure the chances of that are?" Hawk said. I shrugged.
"Slim and none," I said.
Hawk smiled more widely.
Chapter 7
I went to visit KC Roth. She was livin in one unit of of a brick
complex of what used to be called garden apartments, on Route 28 in
Reading. Across the street was a liquor store and a fish place called
The Friendly Flounder. Up the street was what may have been the last
drive-in movie theater in Massachusetts. Next to the garden apartments
was an Exxon gas station and convenience store.
KC's apartment was neat enough, but it had been built for the
builder's profit. The doors were hollow core. The finish work was
minimal, mostly quarter round molding. The floors were plywood, covered
wall to wall with inexpensive tan carpeting which didn't wear well, but
showed the dirt easily. The furniture was fresh from the warehouse at
Chuck's Rent-All, Everything for the Home.
"Well," KC said when I introduced myself, "so that's what you look like:"
"This is it," I said.
"Susan spoke of you a lot, but I never knew what you looked like."
"But from the way she talked, you were picturing Adonis," I said.
"I guess," she said. "Come on in."
KC was wearing a man-tailored white shirt and blue jeans. She was
amazingly good-looking. Thick black hair worn a little too long, large
green eyes, wide mouth, flawless skin.
"You are so nice to come by," she said when we were sitting in her
ugly living room. "How about a nice cup of coffee, or a drink? Do
private eyes drink before lunch? I have some vodka."
"I don't need anything," I said. "Tell me about your problem."
"Oh boy, all business," she said.
She was sitting on the couch with her feet tucked up under her. I
sat across in an uncomfortable barrel-shaped gray plush armchair.
"Well," I said, "not all business."
She smiled brilliantly. There was something about her that seemed to
require flirtation. And when the requirement was filled, it pleased her.
"I'll keep it in mind," she said.
"So how about the harassment?" I said.
"The son of a bitch won't give up," she said. "Can you make him stop?"
"The son of a bitch being whom?"
"Burt, the bastard-I hope you don't mind swearing, I can't help it, I have a terrible mouth."
"I'll be all right," I said. "Burt is your husband?"
"Ex-husband," she said.
"And you know he's doing this?"
"Who else." She leaned forward and her voice became a little girl's. "Could you beat him up for me?"
She had more affect than a Miss America contestant. Her voice went
from contralto to soprano in an easy glissade. Her eyes widened and
narrowed as she spoke. Everything she said, she dramatized. She went
from seductress to child in an exhale. I was willing to bet she'd cry
before I left. I was pretty sure she could cry at will.
"We'll see," I said. "Could anyone else be harassing you?"
She cast her eyes down.
"No," she said softly. "Who else but Burt would have any reason?"
"Tell me about your boyfriend." I said.
She kept her eyes downcast and was silent. It was a pose, but I
didn't think it was an insincere one. In fact I didn't find her
insincere at all. Rather she seemed to have been playing this role,
whatever it was, for so long, that she probably didn't have any idea
when she was sincere and when she wasn't.
"I can't talk about him," she said.
"Why not?" I said.
She raised her head and she was angry, or seemed to be.
"I'm not hiring you to cross-examine me."
"You're not hiring me at all, yet," I said. "This is foreplay. See if we like each other."
"You only work for people you like?"
"I only work for people I want to," I said.
She smiled suddenly. It was quite spectacular.
"You'll want to work for me," she said.
"So what about the boyfriend?"
The smile went away.
"Must you?"
"'Fraid so," I said.
"Is it confidential?"
"Absolutely," I said. "But it's not privileged."
"What do you mean?"
"If you hired me through your attorney," I said, "under certain
circumstances what you told him, and he told me, could be privileged.
As it stands now, I won't tell anyone, but it is not privileged. If it
is information required by the police in the course of an
investigation, or a prosecutor in the course of a trial, then if I'm
asked I have to tell.'
"Police?"
"I'm just trying to be clear," I said. "I don't expect to tell anyone."
"If you told anyone I'd die."
"I'll try to remember that."
We were quiet. She was thinking, and, as she did everything else,
she dramatized thinking. Her eyes narrowed, she got a vertical wrinkle
between her eyebrows. Her lips pursed slightly. I waited. Finally she
leaned back and shifted on the couch so that she could hug her knees
while she talked.
"When we were together," she said, "we could barely breathe. We
couldn't eat. We didn't want to drink. All we wanted to do was be
together and look at each other and make love."
I nodded. I knew the feeling, though love had never made me lose my appetite.
"If only we were both free," she said.
"You're free," I said.
She shook her head sadly and a little condescendingly. "He can't leave his wife."
"Why?"
She shook her head again. Men were so dumb.
"He just can't. She's too dependent on him, and men can't do the hard things. He's such a baby."
"Might have been smart to wait until he left her, before you left your husband," I said.
"I'm not that way," she said. "When I commit, I commit entirely. I give everything."
"Would you have left your husband if you hadn't thought you'd be with him?" I said.
"And what? Live in this gruesome goddamned apartment by myself? Burt and I lived in a castle."
"Do you still see your boyfriend?" I said.
Again the downcast eyes. Her mouth pouting like, a sad child, albeit
a cute one, she traced a small circle on her kneecap with the
forefinger of her right hand.
"No."
"Why not?"
She began to cry. I waited, letting the question hang. She placed
both her hands over her face, being careful of her makeup, and cried
some more. I was pretty sure I was supposed to go and sit on the couch
and put my arm around her, in which case she would turn in and bury her
head on my shoulder and weep as if her heart would break. I stayed
where I was. Finally after waiting as long as was decorous she stopped
crying and lowered her hands, and raised her head so she could look
searchingly into my eyes.
"Men are such babies," she said.
"Maybe not all of them," I said.
"You're not, are you?"
"Except when I don't get my way," I said. "How come you and the BF are not still an item?"
"Somehow, I know this sounds… something… anyway,
somehow when we were both married and sleeping with each other it was,
like even. But then I was divorced and he was the only one that was
cheating. He couldn't stand it."
It did in fact sound… something.
"Sure," I said. "What is his name?"
"Oh, I can't give you his name," she said.
"You can if you wish me to work for you."
"Aren't you already hired, I mean, I've told you all this stuff."
"KC, the surest way to prevent the stalker involves knowing who he
is. Probably is your ex-husband; but it might be your ex-boyfriend, it
might be somebody else. If I'm going to do what you are trying to hire
me to do, I will do it better and quicker if you tell me what I ask."
She bit her lower lip gently and, with her hands laced over her knees, rocked slightly on the couch.
Finally she said, "Louis."
"That's a start," I said.
More lower-lip biting until finally she said, quite tragically, I thought,
"Vincent."
"Louis Vincent," I said.
Her voice softened almost reverentially. "Yes."
"And where does he live?"
"Hingham."
"Does he have a place of business?"
"Why?"
"Doesn't seem discreet to approach him at home," I said.
"Oh God, you can't approach him. He'd never forgive me."
"He'll never know I got it from you," I said.
Again a long and fully acted-out period of silent pondering.
"He's a stockbroker," she said. "Hall, Peary."
"Fifty-three State," I said.
She nodded. I had made her thoroughly miserable.
"Would you feel safer if I had someone outside your house until I, ah, crack the case?"
"I went down to the police department," she said. "The sergeant was so nice, really lovely to me."
"I'll bet he was."
"He says they'll keep an eye on my apartment."
"Have you notified the phone company?"
"No."
She seemed startled, either that she hadn't thought of it, or that I had.
"You should probably do that," I said.
"He never says anything when he calls."
"Most people don't," I said.
If she thought I was amusing she didn't let on.
Chapter 8
Hawk and I went to call on Amir Abdullah in his offices at the
African-American Center at the university. A couple of hard-looking
young guys in black suits and white shirts let us in. They eyed me like
I was a case of the clap.
"Teaching fellows?" I said to Hawk.
Hawk smiled and let his stare rest on the two men.
"Dr. Abdullah," I said. "He's expecting me."
They looked at me some more and at Hawk, who smiled at them engagingly.
Then one of them said, "Down this hall, third door on the left."
Hawk and the two young men kept eye contact until we were past them
and headed down the hall. There was African art on the walls, and some
splashy posters advocating action. Everyone I saw was black.
"I feel like Casper the friendly ghost," I said.
"You a pale one, all right," Hawk said, and we knocked on the half-open door of Abdullah's office.
A voice said, "Come!"
And in we went.
The walls of the office were covered with some sort of pan-African
proletarian art in which magnificent black men were throwing off yokes
of oppression. The white men in the posters were all mean-looking fat
guys. None of the white guys looked like me. None of the magnificent
black men looked like Abdullah. Abdullah was very light-skinned. In the
old days, before tans were unhealthy, Susan, in summer, was darker than
Amir. He was skinny, and quite tall. His hair was short and
militant-looking. He wore round gold glasses and a saffron-colored robe
and sandals. His nails were long and clean and looked manicured. He
wore rings on all four fingers of each hand. A Rolex watch peeked
diffidently out from under the sleeve of his robe. He was smoking a
long curved meerschaum pipe, and the room was rich with the pungency of
his tobacco. A six-foot shield made of ornamented hide stood in the
corner, with two long-bladed spears crossed over it. The bookcases were
full of books. Many names I didn't recognize, a few I did, Frantz
Fanon, Ralph Ellison, Richard Wright.
Abdullah nodded at Hawk.
"Do I know you?" he said to me.
"My name's Spenser," I said. "This is Hawk."
Abdullah looked thoughtfully at Hawk, and nodded.
"S'happenin', bro?"
Hawk didn't say anything. He moved to the left of the door and leaned on the wall. Abdullah looked back at me.
"Don't get many white men in here," Abdullah said.
"Too bad." I said.
"Why?"
"I hate segregation," I said.
"Don't need no smartass honky jivin' me 'bout segregation," Abdullah
said. "Nigger's got to get on with life. He do that best if he keep
Whitey at a distance."
I didn't see anything there to help me with Robinson Nevins' tenure problem so I let it slide.
"You're on the English department tenure committee?" I said.
"Why you axin?"
The strain of talking like a homeboy was palpable in Abdullah, you
could tell he had to rephrase things in his head so he wouldn't sound
like Clarence Thomas. Leaning against the wall, Hawk looked like he was
fighting a yawn.
"You caught me," I said. "Actually I know you're on the tenure
committee of the English department, I guess I was really wondering why
you don't have an office there."
"Ain't my business solvin' yo' problems," Abdullah said.
"Of course not," I said. "You ever see Robinson Nevins in a sexual circumstance with the late Prentice Lamont?"
"You ain't no cop," Abdullah said.
"How can you be sure?"
"You'da hassled me when you came in."
"Private cop," I said.
"And him." Abdullah nodded at Hawk.
"Amir," Hawk said. "You refer to me as `him' again and I will slap your skinny ass around this office like a handball."
Hawk's voice was calm and his diction was better than Tony Blair's. Abdullah flushed. He was so light that it was visible.
"Only way you talk to a brother like that, is if you a damned Tom," Abdullah said.
Without a word Hawk stepped toward Abdullah, who flinched back involuntarily behind his desk.
"Hawk," I said. "It won't get us what we're after."
Standing directly at Abdullah's desk, Hawk kept his eyes on Abdullah.
"No white man calls me nigger," Hawk said quietly, "no black man calls me Tom."
He leaned across the desk and grabbed a handful of Abdullah's
saffron robes. Abdullah screeched for help and several of the hard
young men in dark suits came dashing down the corridor. Hawk slapped
Abdullah across the face forehand and backhand, hard enough to rock his
head back. Abdullah was all skinny arms and legs scrambling to get
away. Hawk slapped him again as the first of the hard young men rushed
into the room. Hawk dropped Abdullah, turned, and flattened the hard
young man with a left hook. Three more crowded through the door. I took
in a deep breath and let it out, and hit one of them on the back of his
neck behind his right ear, and the fight was on. There were four of
them and two of us, but one of us was Hawk and one of us was me, and
they had Abdullah on their side. Having Abdullah on your side was like
subtracting one, so the fight was almost even. The young men were all
aficionados of some sort of Asian fighting technique, at which they
were technically skilled. But they'd used it mostly to frighten college
kids and intimidate professors. By the time the university cops
arrived, the fight was over, we had won, and the militant Professor
Abdullah was trying to crawl out of his office door from behind his
desk, before Hawk got hold of him again.
"He assaulted me," Abdullah shrieked to the first cop through the door. "He assaulted me."
The university cops were followed in pretty close order by a couple
of Boston cops, one of whom I knew. The university cops wanted to
arrest us, but I explained what I was doing there and swore that
Abdullah had started it, and the Boston cop that I knew interceded and
eventually Hawk and I walked, though we were to stay close in case
Abdullah pressed charges.
When we left the university police station we headed for the Harbor
Health Club. Atlantic Avenue was generously dug up and intricately
detoured as the Central Artery project lumbered ahead. I pulled in and
parked in among some heavy equipment near the Harbor Health Club.
After Henry Cimoli had stopped fighting, and before he opened what
at that time he'd called a gym on the waterfront, he'd worked corners
for a while as a cut man. I had a cut under my eye, and a puffy lip and
the knuckles on my left hand were scraped and swollen. Hawk had a black
eye and a cut on his bald scalp that bled a lot. We needed Henry's
repair service.
"Well," I said, "a fine mess you got us into this time, Ollie."
"He hurt my feelings," Hawk said.
He was pressing a folded paper towel against the cut on his head.
"You don't have feelings," I said. "I've heard blacks call you Tom,
and whites call you nigger, and for all you cared they could have been
singing `Louie, Louie."'
"I know."
"And all of a sudden you have a NO-BLACK-MAN-CALLS-ME-TOM fit and we're fighting four martial arts freaks."
"I know. Done good too," he said. "Didn't we."
"We're supposed to," I said. "What was all that wounded pride crap."
Hawk grinned.
"Scrawny fucker annoyed me," Hawk said.
"Well, of course he did," I said.
"Hate phonies," Hawk said.
"Sure," I said. "It's the right thing to do. But if it comes up again, could you hate them on your time?"
"Can't promise nothing," Hawk said.
Chapter 9
So far I was nowhere.
We had annoyed the hell out of Amir Abdullah but hadn't learned a
thing. I had talked with KC Roth and hadn't learned much about that
case, except that KC was a piece of work. I had talked with Belson and
gotten nothing to help me. My next appointment was at the university
with Professor Lillian Temple of the English department tenure
committee, that afternoon at two. Until then I had nothing else to do
except watch the swelling subside in my lip, so I decided to go up to
Reading and talk with the cops about KC Roth. No grass growing under my
feet. Two cases at a time. I thought about having "Master Sleuth" added
to my business cards.
I talked to a beefy red-faced Reading police sergeant named O'Connor in the squad room.
"Yeah, we have a car go by there usually about every hour. It's easy enough, we routinely patrol that stretch anyway."
"You vary the time?" I said.
"We're just sort of shit-kicker cops out here, a course," O'Connor
said, "but we did figure out that if we showed up the same time every
night people might start to work around us."
"Good thinking," I said. "You have any thoughts on the stalker?"
"Like who he is?"
"Un huh."
"Well, the ex-whatever is usually the one you look at, if there is somebody."
"You have any reason to think there might not be a stalker?" I said.
"Well, you've talked to the lady," O'Connor said. "What's your impression?"
"Good-looking," I said.
"Yeah."
"Seems as if she might be sexually forthcoming," I said.
"You bet," O'Connor said.
"You got any information on that?"
"Nope, just instinct."
"Nice combo," I said. "Good-looking and easy."
"The best," O'Connor said, "if there wasn't the next morning to think about."
"That could be grim," I said. "But what's your point?"
"Just that she seems like she ain't wrapped too snug," O'Connor said. "Nothing about her bothered you?"
"She seemed a little contrived."
"Contrived? I heard you was a tough guy. Tough guys don't say contrived."
"Probably don't say sexually forthcoming either," I said.
"A course they don't," O'Connor said.
"Part of my disguise," I said. "So you haven't seen any sign of a stalker."
"No."
"Telephone records?"
"She hadn't talked to the phone company when we talked with her. They weren't keeping track."
"I suggested she do that," I said.
"We did too."
"Damn. She acted like I was smarter than Vanna White when I suggested it."
"Sure."
"So why would she make it up?" I said.
"You've seen broads like her, probably more than I have. Husband
dumps them, they're alone out in the suburbs, and they want men around.
They want to be looked after. So they call the cops a lot. Maybe Mrs.
Roth just took it a step further and hired a guy to look after her."
"Me," I said, "after you broke her heart."
"Could be."
"On the other hand, you look like her, you probably don't have to hire anyone," I said.
"After they get dumped," O'Connor said, "they're pretty crazy. Ego's fucked. Maybe she don't know she's goodlooking."
"She knows," I said.
O'Connor thought about it for a minute.
"Yeah," he said. "She does."
"And there's at least two ex-whatevers," I said.
"Boyfriend?" O'Connor said.
"Yep. Way she told me," I said, "she left her husband for the boyfriend and the boyfriend dumped her."
"Fucking her was one thing," O'Connor said. "Marrying her was another."
"I guess," I said. "You know the other thing that bothers me, her husband's got the kid."
"She got a kid?"
"Yep."
"And the kid's with the husband."
"Yep."
"Doesn't fit with your usual stalker," O'Connor said.
"Custody of the kid?"
"Yeah."
"No it doesn't. But you never know. He could love his kid and still be crazy."
"I got seven," O'Connor said. "The two may go together."
"You going to stay on this for a while?" I said.
"Yep. We'll keep a car checking her, keep the file open. 'Bout all we can do."
"I'll talk to the ex-husband, and the ex-boyfriend," I said. "I learn anything I'll let you know."
"Thanks," O'Connor said. "You learn who it is you might try dealing
with him one to one. We can help her get a restraining order and we can
warn him he's subject to arrest. And sometimes if it's done right he
can get hurt resisting arrest. But it usually works better if you get
his attention before we're involved."
"I'll keep it in mind," I said.
Chapter 10
I got to Lillian Temple's office in the university English
department at two o'clock exactly, hoping to impress her with my
punctuality. It proved an ineffective approach, because she wasn't
there and the office was locked. I leaned on the wall outside her
office until ten minutes past two when she hurried down the hall
carrying a big blue canvas book bag jammed with stuff. She didn't
apologize for being late. She was, after all, a professor, and I was a
gumshoe. Apology would have been unbecoming. At first glance I figured
that Hawk had called it on her appearance, but when we got seated in
her small office and I looked at her a little more, I wasn't so sure.
She was plain, and she was plain in the Cambridge way, in that her
plainness seemed a deliberate affectation. Had she chosen to treat her
appearance differently, she might have been pretty good-looking. She
was in the thirty-five to forty range, tallish, maybe 5'8", brown hair
worn long, no makeup, loose-fitting clothes straight from the J. Crew
catalog. Large round eyeglasses, quite thick, with undistinguished
frames, a mannish white shirt, chino slacks, white ankle socks, and
sandals. She wore no jewelry. No nail polish. Her most forceful
grooming statement was that she seemed clean.
"May I see some identification, please," she said.
I showed her some. She read it carefully. It was a small office on
an interior wall, and it was lined with paperback editions of English
lit classics: The Mill on the Floss, Great Expectations, case books on
English lit classics. Blue exam booklets were stacked in a somewhat
unstable pile on a small table behind her chair. Above her desk was a
framed diploma from Brandeis University indicating that she had earned
a Ph.D. in English language and literature. She wore no perfume, but I
could smell her shampoo-maybe Herbal Essence, and the faint odor of
bath soap-maybe Irish Spring. I could see the neat part line on the top
of her head as she looked down at my credentials.
She looked up finally, and handed me back my identification.
"I've asked the department ombudsman, Professor Maitland, to sit in on this interview," she said.
Ombudsman. Perfect. I looked serious.
"Gee," I said. "Couldn't we just leave the door ajar?"
She suspected I might be kidding her, I think, and she decided that her best course was to look serious too.
"Is Amir Abdullah an English professor?" I said.
She thought about my question and apparently decided that it was not a trap.
"Yes," she said. "African-American literature."
"But he has offices in the Afro-American Center."
"The African-American Center, yes, he prefers to be there."
"And what do you teach?"
"Feminist studies," she said. "Anybody teaching dead white guys I said. "Shakespeare, Melville, guys like that?"
"Guys," she said, "how apt."
I think she was being ironic.
"Apt is my middle name," I said.
She nodded, still serious.
"Traditional courses are offered," she said.
A tall handsome man with a thick moustache walked into the office.
He had on a brown Harris tweed jacket with a black silk pocket square,
a black turtleneck, polished engineer's boots, and pressed jeans.
"Hi, Lil," he said, "sorry I'm late."
He put out his hand to me.
"You must be the detective," he said. "Bass Maitland."
He had a big round voice.
"Spenser," I said.
We shook hands. Maitland threw one leg over the far corner of
Lillian's desk and folded his arms, ready to listen, alert for any
improprieties. I restrained myself. Whenever I got involved in anything
related to a university, I was reminded of how seriously everyone took
everything, particularly themselves, and I had to keep a firm grip on
my impulse to make fun.
"I'm here at Lillian's request," he said. "My role here is strictly to observe."
"Open-shuttered and passive," I said.
He smiled.
"How do you feel," I said to Lillian Temple, "about the allegation
that Robinson Nevins was responsible for the suicide of Prentice
Lamont?"
"What?"
"Do you think Nevins had an affair with Lamont? Do you think that the end of the affair caused Lamont's suicide?"
"I… my God… how would I… ?"
"Wasn't it discussed in the tenure meeting?"
"Yes… but… I can't talk about the tenure meeting."
"Of course," I said, "but such an allegation would certainly have weighed in your decision. How did you vote?"
"I can't tell you that:" She looked shocked.
"You could tell me how you feel about the allegation."
She looked at Maitland. Nothing there. She looked back at me.
"Well," she said.
I waited.
"I feel… " she said, "that… each person has a right to his or her sexuality."
"Un huh."
"But that with such a right there is a commensurate responsibility to be a caring partner in the relationship."
She stopped, pleased with her statement.
"You think Nevins was a caring partner?"
"Not," she spoke very firmly, "if he left that boy to die."
"And you think he did," I said.
"I suspect that he did."
"Why?"
"I have my reasons."
"What are they?"
She shook her head.
"Oh," I said, "those reasons."
"There's no call for sarcasm," she said.
"The hell there isn't," I said.
"I think that's probably enough, Mr. Spenser," Maitland said.
"It's not enough," I said. "But it's all I can stand."
I stood. Maitland still sat half on the desk, looking bemused and
neutral. Lillian Temple sat straight in her swivel chair, both feet
flat together on the floor, her hands folded in her lap, looking
implacable. I got to my feet.
"I'm sorry I can't help you more," she said. "But I do not take my responsibilities lightly."
"You don't take anything lightly," I said.
As I walked past the African-American Center on my way to the
parking lot, I thought that while I had been fiercely bullshitted in
the English department, no one had tried to kick my head off. Which was
progress.
Chapter 11
Burton Roth lived in, an, eight—room white colonial house with
green shutters on a cul-de-sac off Commonwealth Avenue in Newton. I
went to see him in the late afternoon on a Thursday when he said he'd
be home from work a little early. We sat in front of a small clean
fireplace in a small den off his small dining room and talked about his
former wife.
"She always had that flair," he said. "It made her seem maybe more special than she really was."
"You miss her?" I said.
"Yes. I do. But not as much as I first did. And of course I'm really angry with her."
"Because she left."
"Because she took up with another man, and left me for him, and for crissake she wasn't even smart enough to find a good one."
"What would have constituted a good one?"
"One that loved her back. The minute she was free of me he dumped her."
"You'd have felt better about things if she'd married him?"
"And been happy? Yes. This way she wasted our marriage, for nothing, if you see what I mean."
"I do," I said.
He was a well-set-up man, middle sized with sandy hair and square
hands that looked as if he might have worked for a living. On the
mantel over the fireplace was a picture of a young girl. It had the
strong coloration of one of those annual school pictures that kids
take, but the frame expensive.
"Your daughter?" I said.
"Yes. Jennifer. She's eleven."
"How's she handling all this," I said.
"She doesn't understand, but she's got a good temperament. She sees
her mother usually every week. Divorce is hardly a stigma in her
circles, half her friends have divorced parents."
"She's all right?"
"Yes," Roth said, "I think so."
"Where is she now?" I said.
"She has soccer practice until six," Roth said. "I have to pick her up then."
"You dating anyone?" I said.
"I don't mean to be discourteous, but you said you were investigating something about my ex-wife and a stalker."
"Stalking is usually about control or revenge or both. I'm trying to get a sense of whether you are controlling or vengeful."
"My God, you think I might be stalking her?"
"It's a place to start," I said.
Roth was quiet for a time. Then he nodded.
"Yes, of course, who would be the logical suspect?" he said.
"Did you say you were dating?"
"I'm seeing someone," Roth said. "She's fun. We sleep together. I doubt that we'll walk into the sunset."
"Do you think your ex-wife would invent a stalker?"
"Well," he said, "she's pretty crazy these days. So much so that I'm
careful about letting Jennifer spend time there. KC and I had a pretty
good fight about it, and I can't simply keep her away from her mother.
But I always stay home when she's there so she can call me if she needs
to."
"So you think she might?" I said.
"No, I don't really. I think she might go out with her boyfriend,
now former boyfriend, and leave Jennifer alone. Or I think she might
bring her with her when she and the boyfriend went someplace that was
inappropriate for an eleven-year-old girl. She might be crazy that way,
sort of like in junior high school where there was a girl who was boy
crazy. But for all her drama and affect, she is a pretty shrewd woman
in many ways, and I think she loves her daughter, and I don't think
she'd invent a stalker, even to blame me."
"Why would she want to blame you?"
"Because she feels guilty about leaving me, and she feels like a
fool for being in love with a guy who dumps her, and she can't stand
either feeling, so she needs to make it my fault somehow."
"You seeing a shrink?" I said.
"Oh, yeah:" Roth said. "This is much too hard to do alone."
"You know the boyfriend?"
"We've never met."
"Know his name?"
"Just his first name, Louis."
"How do you feel about him?"
"I'd like to kill him."
"Of course you would," I said.
"But I won't."
"No," I said.
"You sound like you understand that."
"Yes," I said.
He looked at his watch.
"I've got to pick up my daughter," he said. "I don't want to discuss
this in front of her. Would you like to schedule another time to talk?"
"Not for the moment," I said. "If I need to, I'll call you."
"I am happy to help with this. I don't want Jennifer's mother to be stalked."
"Do you still love her?" I said.
"Yes," he said. "But less than I used to and in time I won't."
"Good," I said.
Chapter 12
I'd put it off as long as possible. Now I had to talk to Prentice
Lamont's parents. It was always the worst thing I did, talking to the
parents of a dead person. It almost didn't matter how old the deceased
had been, it was the parents that were the hardest. I'd had to do it a
couple years ago for the parents of a girl alleged to have been raped
and killed by a black man. The mother had called me a nigger lover and
ordered me to leave. It often was the mother that was most frenzied. In
the case of the Lamonts, it was worse because they were divorced, and
I'd have to do it twice.
I started with the mother.
"Yes," she said, "Prentice was gay."
"Do you know if Robinson Nevins was his lover?" I said.
"Well," Mrs. Lamont said. "You get right to it, you?"
"There aren't any easy questions here ma'am and they don't get easier if I sneak up on them."
"No," she said. "They don't."
She was a smallish dark-haired lively looking, but sort of worn at
the corners, as if life had been wobbly. We sat in the yellow kitchen
of her apartment on the first floor of a three-decker off Highland Ave
in Somerville.
"So what do you know?" I said. "About Prentice and Robinson Nevins."
She shrugged. The initial horror of her son's death had faded with
the six months that had passed. The sadness was deeper and probably
permanent. But she was able to talk calmly.
"I think Prentice knew we weren't too comfortable about him being gay. He didn't talk much about it in front of us."
"`Us' being you and his father?"
"Yes."
"You're divorced."
"Yes. Five years ago."
And she still talked about us. Things didn't go away from Mrs. Lamont.
"Did he know Robinson Nevins?"
"I don't know."
"Would he have dated a black man?"
"I shouldn't think so, but I wouldn't have thought he'd be gay either."
"Do you think he killed himself?" I said.
"Everyone says he did."
"Do you believe them?"
I pushed too hard. Her eyes began to fill.
"How can I believe he killed himself?" she said. "And how can I believe someone killed him? Prentice…"
"Awful stuff, isn't it," I said.
She nodded. She couldn't speak. The tears were running down her face now.
"I'll find out, Mrs. Lamont, it's all I can offer you. I'll find out and then you'll know."
Still she couldn't speak. Again she nodded her head.
"Would you like me to leave?" I said.
She nodded.
"Are you going to be all right?"
She nodded.
There were more questions. But you had to be a tougher guy than I
was to ask them now. As far as I knew, there wasn't anyone tougher than
I was, so I patted her shoulder uselessly and got up from her kitchen
table and left.
Chapter 13
The old man was a different story.
I met him and his more recent wife for a drink at an athletic club
in the financial district. Lamont and his wife were both in workout
gear. She carried two small racquets. He was bald, medium sized,
muscular, and deeply tanned. She was blonde, medium sized, muscular,
and deeply tanned. She was also about the age that his son must have
been when he did his Brody. Her name was Laura. We sat by a window
looking down at the indoor tennis courts where several games of mixed
doubles were progressing badly.
"Whew," Lamont said after we'd shaken hands. "She's starting to push me."
"Oh, not very hard," Laura said.
"Racquetball?" I said.
"Yeah. You play?"
"No," I said.
"Ought to, it's a great workout."
"Sure," I said. "Do you know Robinson Nevins?" Lamont's eyes narrowed.
"That's the jigaboo was supposed to be involved with my ex-wife's kid."
"Not your kid?"
Lamont shook his head.
"He made his choice," Lamont said.
Laura put her hand on top of his on the table.
"You mean he was gay," I said.
"No need to clean it up with a cute word," Lamont said. "He was a homosexual."
"And his choice was you or homosexuality?"
"I'm an old-fashioned guy," Lamont said. "In my book it's a shameful
and corrupt thing for men to have sex with each other. Makes my damned
skin crawl."
"I can see that," I said. "So you wouldn't know if he did in fact have a sexual relationship with Robinson Nevins."
"No."
"You ever meet Nevins?"
"No."
"How long have you been divorced from Prentice's mother?" I said.
"Six years:"
"When's the last time you saw Prentice."
"When I left the house."
"More than six years?"
"Yes, closer to seven. The divorce took about ten months. Obviously, I wasn't living there while it processed."
"So you hadn't seen your son for what, six, six and a half years before he died?"
"For me," Lamont said, "he died a long time ago."
"Was he an issue in the divorce?"
"Well, if she'd brought him up right, maybe he'd be alive now."
"Maybe," I said. "You have any thoughts on his suicide, any reason
to doubt it, any reason to think it might not have been Nevins who
triggered it?"
"As I say, Mr. Spenser, for me Prentice died a long time ago."
"I wonder if he'd have lasted longer if he had a father."
"Mr. Spenser!" Laura said.
"That's a cheap shot, pal. You got kids?"
"Not exactly," I said.
"Then you don't know shit."
"Probably don't," I said.
I looked at Laura. "I hope he's a better father to you, ma'am," I said.
I didn't want to scramble his teeth. I wasn't even mad. I was sad.
It was all sad. Families breaking up, people dying, mothers grieving.
For what?
I stood and walked away.
For fucking what?
Chapter 14
Belson and two other detectives had talked to thirty-five people
about Prentice Lamont, and twenty-nine of them had been a routine waste
of time. Professors Abdullah and Temple had alleged that Lamont had
been having a love affair with Robinson Nevins. Though not to me. I
wondered why they were so reluctant to speak to me.
Academics, being academics, attached great importance to
abstraction, and there may have been reasons that had to do with
listening long to the music of the spheres, reasons a mind as deeply
pedestrian as mine would not be able to understand. I had already
talked with his parents. Not very informative and not very pleasant
either. Next on the list were Robert Walters and William Ainsworth, who
were listed as close friends. They has been associated with Lamont in
his pamphleteering career.
The pamphlet was published out of Lamont's apartment and despite his
demise it was still appearing. His successors had agreed to meet me
there. When I arrived the door was open.
One of the two men said, "Are you Spenser?"
I said, "Yes."
He said, "Come in. We're Walt and Willie. I'm Walt."
I shook hands.
"You can sit on the bed, if you want," Walt said.
"I'd just as soon stand," I said. "That way I can stroll around while we talk, and look for clues."
It was a bed sitting room with a kitchenette and bath. The floor was
covered with linoleum. The walls were plasterboard painted white. There
were travel posters Scotch taped on the wall; the tape had pulled
loose, and the posters curled off the wall like wilting leaves. The bed
was covered with a pale blue chenille spread. There was a pine kitchen
table in the middle of the room with a kitchen chair in front and a big
important-looking computer on it. There was a color monitor on top of
the hard drive and a laser printer under the table along with a tangle
of lash-up. A recent issue of the publication was piled on the table
beside the computer screen. Several open cans of diet Coke were
scattered around the room. None of them looked recent.
"This the latest newsletter?" I said.
"Yes."
"Mind if I look at it?"
"No," Walt said, "go ahead."
He was a tall trim man with a smallish head. He looked like he
exercised. He had even features and short brown hair brushed back and a
clipped moustache. Willie was much smaller, and wiggly. His blond hair
was worn longish and moussed back over his ears. There was a sort of
heightened intensity to his appearance, and I realized he was wearing
makeup. I picked up one of the newsletters.
"OUTrageous?" I said.
"I made up the name," Willie said. He sounded like Lauren Bacall.
"Nice," I said.
The newsletter was one of those things that, pre-computer, would
have been mimeographed. It was a compendium of gay humor including a
number of lesbian jokes, poetry, gay community news, badly executed
cartoons, all of which were sexual, many of which I didn't get. There
was a section on the back page headed "OUT OUT" in which famous
homosexuals through history were listed and where, as I read through
it, it appeared that covert gay people were revealed.
"You out people," I said.
"You better believe it," Walt said.
"Do that when Prentice was alive?"
"Absolutely," Walt said. "Prentice started it, we're continuing the
newsletter just the way he left it, kind of a memorial to him."
"Are there back issues?"
"Sure," Walt said. "All the way to the beginning."
"Which was?"
"Three, three and half now, years ago. When we all started grad school."
"You been in grad school three and a half years?"
"Un huh," Willie said.
"Lots of people go six, eight, nine years," Walt said. "No hurry."
"Could I see the back files?"
"Certainly," Walt said. "They're in the cellar. You can get them before you go."
"Good," I said.
I was walking around the room. I stopped at the window and looked at it, tapping my thigh with the rolled-up newsletter.
"He went out here," I said.
"Yes," Walt said.
"You see any clues?" Willie said.
"Not yet," I said.
I opened the window. It was swollen and old and warped and a
struggle. I forced it open finally, and looked down. Ten stories. I put
my hands on the windowsill and leaned out. The window was big enough.
It would have been no particular problem to climb out and let myself
go. And I was probably bigger than Prentice had been. I turned away
from the window and looked back at Walt and Willie.
"Prentice a big guy?"
"No," Walt said.
Willie sort of snickered, or giggled, or both.
"Not very butch?" I said.
"Princess?" Willie said and laughed outright, or giggled outright, or both. "That's what we called him."
"Not very butch," Walt said.
"Do you think he jumped?" I said.
Walt said, "No."
Willie shook his head. His hair was so blond I assumed he colored it.
"Then you think he was, ah, defenestrated?" Walt said,
"Yes."
Willie nodded. The nod shook loose some hair above his right ear and he tucked it back in place with a practiced pat.
"You have any idea who?"
Walt said, "No."
Willie shook his head. His hand went automatically to his head to see that the hair hadn't shaken down again.
"Or why?"
"No."
Shake. Pat the hair in place.
"Was he having an affair with Robinson Nevins?"
"Oh, gawd no," Willie said. "That square little prig. Don't be silly."
I looked at Walt.
"No."
"So you know Professor Nevins."
"He's a damned Tom," Willie said.
"Easy for you to say."
"Yeah, well maybe I'm not black but I know about oppression."
"Most of us have," I said.
"Oh, really? Well, who has oppressed you, Mister Straight White Male?"
"Guy shot me last year," I said.
"That's kind of oppressive," Walt said.
"Well, Robinson Nevins is a traitor to his people," Willie said.
"Who are?"
"Every person of color," Willie said.
"Heavy burden." I said. "He out?"
"Out?" Walt and Willie said it at the same time.
"Nevins isn't gay," Walt said. "He hasn't got the soul to be gay."
"He's the straightest priss I ever saw," Willie said. "He hire you?"
"Not exactly," I said.
"Then who are you working for?"
"Friend of his father's," I said. "Why are you so sure that Prentice didn't kill himself?"
"He had no reason to," Walt said. "I saw him the morning before it
happened. He wasn't depressed. He'd, ah, he'd met somebody the night
before and was excited about it."
"A lover?"
"Potentially."
"You know who?"
"No."
"Where?"
"No."
"He out any people who might have resented it?"
"Lot of people who are outed resent it, but it has to be done."
"For the greater good," I said.
"Absolutely," Willie said.
"Anyone that might have been really mad?"
"Not to throw Prentice out a window," Walt said.
"Any to-be-outed that might have wanted to forestall him?"
"Oh, come on," Walt said. "This isn't some cops and robbers movie."
"How'd he find the names of people to out?"
"You go to the gay bars, you hear talk at parties, you talk to your
friends, see some big contributors to gay-type charities, you sort of
nose around, see what you can find out."
"Investigative reporting," I said.
"Exactly."
"You have a file?"
"A file?"
"Of people you suspect that you may out if you can compile enough gossip?"
Willie's eyes went to the desk and flicked away. I'm not sure he was even aware that they'd moved.
"That's not fair," Walt said. "It's more than gossip."
"You have a file?"
"No."
I went to the desk and opened the center drawer.
"Hey," Walt said. "You got no right to be looking in there."
I paid no attention. And neither Walt nor Willie pressed the issue.
I found nothing in the center drawer. The side drawer was locked.
"Open it," I said.
"I have no key," Walt said.
I nodded and went to the window. I leaned on it hard and after a struggle got it closed.
I said to Willie, "Prentice about your size?"
"Un huh."
"Open the window," I said.
"You just closed it."
"Humor me," I said. "Open it."
Willie shrugged expressively and went to the window and pushed. It
didn't move. He strained until his small face was red. The window
didn't move. Walt watched frowning.
"Let me try," he said.
He was bigger and looked like he worked out some. He couldn't budge it either.
"So what's that prove," Willie said. "That you're macho man?"
Walt shook his head.
"Prentice couldn't have opened that window," Walt said.
"So if he jumped he either got someone to open it for him," I said, "or he waited around until it was open."
"My gawd," Willie said, "he really didn't jump."
"Probably not," I said. "You got a key to that drawer?"
"Sure," Walt said.
Chapter 15
The drawer contained a long list of names of people being considered
for outing. I took it with me and back issues of OUTrageous. It wasn't
like Belson to have missed the window. It was probably open when he
arrived and he never tried it. I took the stuff back to my office and
put it on my desk in a neat pile and looked at the pile. Maybe tomorrow.
I pulled the phone over and called Hall, Peary.
"Louis Vincent, please."
I got switched to his secretary who told me that Mr. Vincent was in
a meeting and could he call me back. I said no and hung up. I looked at
the pile of material on my desk. I got up and made coffee and drank
some. I looked at the pile. I finished my coffee and got up and walked
downtown to State Street to see if Louis Vincent was out of his meeting.
He was. But he was on the phone to Tokyo and really couldn't see
anybody today without an appointment. His secretary was maybe
twenty-three, the kind of athletic-looking young woman who walks to
work in her running shoes and sweat socks, carrying her heels in a
Coach bag. I tried out one of my specialty smiles-paternal, yet
seductive, which is usually very effective with athletic young women.
She smiled back. Though she might have been responding to the paternal,
and ignoring the seductive. Takes all kinds.
"I can wait," I said.
"Certainly," she said, "though I really can't encourage you."
"That's okay."
I took out one of my business cards, and wrote on the back of it, KC Roth. I handed it to the secretary.
"If you'll just give him this, perhaps he'll be able to squeeze me in."
"Worth a try, sir," she said and took my card.
As she went into Vincent's office I noticed that she must have done
a lot of work on the StairMaster. I noticed also that she didn't look
at the card. In shape and discreet was a good combination. She was in
there maybe two minutes and when she came out she smiled at me.
"He'll see you in just a moment," she said.
"It's the business card," I said. "It pays to get a quality print job."
She smiled again.
"I'm sure it does," she said.
The office door opened and a man stood in the doorway in full
upwardly mobile regalia. He was a tall man who looked like he'd be good
at racquet sports. He wore a blue striped shirt with a white collar and
a pink bow tie, wide pink suspenders, and the trousers of a dark blue
pinstripe suit. His blond hair was longish and combed straight back
like Pat Riley's, and his skin had the ruddy look of health and maybe
Retin-A.
"Spenser? Come on in."
I went in. He must have been churning a lot of accounts. It was a
corner office, filled with pictures of family and horses and famous
clients, trophies from tennis tournaments, and ribbons from horse
shows. His children looked like the kids you see in cereal commercials.
His wife looked like a model. The jacket of his blue suit hung on a
coat hanger on a coatrack behind the door. There was a pink silk pocket
square showing. He gestured me to a seat in front of his desk. The
diamonds in his heavy gold cuff links glinted in the understated light
from his green shaded desk lamp. He glanced at his watch. A Rolex, how
surprising.
"Now how can I help you?" he said.
"Tell me about KC Roth," I said.
"Why do you think I know anything about a person named KC Roth?"
"She told me you were until recently her boyfriend."
He raised his eyebrows and leaned back a little in his chair, and
clasped his hands behind his head. Beyond him the view stretched into
Boston Harbor and out to the harbor islands. To his left a big color
computer screen flickered with the facts of someone's life savings.
"Did she?" he said.
I nodded ingenuously. He leaned back some more.
"By God, you're a big fella, aren't you," he said.
"I try to be modest about it," I said.
"You play some sports?"
"Used to be a fighter," I said. "I'm not sure it was play."
"Ah, the sweet science," he said.
"Sweet science is what happened to my nose," I said. "Were you KC Roth's boyfriend?"
"What is this in regard to?"
"A criminal case."
"Something happen to her?"
"Nothing permanent," I said.
"Well, I… I wouldn't want anything to happen to her."
"She's fine," I said. "You were her boyfriend?"
He shrugged and grinned. His teeth gleamed. "Well, I can count on your discretion?" he said.
"In my business," I said, "you're discreet or you're not in business."
It wasn't really true. I'd blab his name in a minute if I needed to,
but there was no point in telling him that. And the answer I gave him
sounded like the kind of answer he'd want to believe.
"Yeah, same in my business. You know? You're fucking with people's money, babe, and their hair stands up real stiff."
"So you and KC Roth?"
He grinned, hands still clasped behind his head. He put his feet up on the corner of the desk.
"She could fuck the balls off a brass monkey," he said.
"Good to know."
"Don't misunderstand," he said. "I'm married and plan to stay that way, but, ah, you've seen KC?"
"Un huh."
"So you can see how easy it would be to wander off the reservation one time."
My guess was that he'd been wandering off the reservation since his voice changed.
"Easy," I said.
"Well, I did and I'm not proud of it, but it was a ride."
He winked at me. We knew the score, he and I. Couple of studs. More notches on the weapon than John Wesley Hardin.
"Why'd it end?" I said.
"For crissake she left her husband. She wanted me to marry her."
"Don't you hate when that happens." I said.
"You better believe it. I got three kids, big job, my wife's no
slouch in the sack either, mind you. KC wanted us to go to Key West and
live on the beach."
He laughed. I laughed. Women are so silly. Fortunately there are a lot of them.
"What a ditz," he said. "I told her this isn't about love, KC, this is about fucking. You know what she said? You wanna know?"
"What'd she say?"
"She says, `What's the difference?' You believe that? What's the difference."
He chuckled. I chuckled too. Man of the world.
"She didn't threaten you when you dumped her?" I said.
"With what?"
"Tell your wife?"
"No. She wouldn't. She's not like that. She's a really sappy broad,
but she's not mean. Besides I think she likes the drama. She's all
drama. She likes the drama of a clandestine affair, and she likes the
drama of a sorrowful breakup, and being heartbroken and all that."
Vincent was a little smarter than he seemed. Or I was as dumb as he
was. I too thought that life for KC was a series of dramatic renditions.
"Somebody is stalking her," I said.
"And you're coming to me?"
"Ex-husbands, ex-boyfriends, that's where you usually go," I said.
"Hey pal, I dumped her, you know. I'm not some heartbroken loser
sneaking around in the dark. There's plenty more where she came from.
Try her husband."
"You replace her yet?" I said.
He grinned at me.
"Like Kleenex," he said. "Use once and discard. There's plenty more."
"Your wife?" I said. He shrugged.
"She's fine. House in Weston. Kids in private school. Drives a Range
Rover. Plays golf. Sex is still good. I'm home at least three nights a
week."
"What could be better?" I said.
He nodded enthusiastically. Irony was not his strength.
"It's a pretty good gig," he said. "I gotta admit it. There much money in your line of work?"
"No," I said. "But you meet interesting people."
He stood and put out his hand.
"Nice talking to you."
"You have no thoughts on who might be stalking KC?" I said.
"Knowing KC," he said, "she probably made him up. Have fun."
I nodded. "Fun's what it's all about," I said.
"And the winner dies broke," he said.
Chapter 16
Susan and I were walking back to Linnaean Street from the Charles
Hotel where we had lunched with her friends Chuck and Janet Olson at
Henrietta's Table.
"Your friends are nice," I said.
"Yes, they are."
"As nice as my friends?" I said.
"Like Hawk, say? Or Vinnie Morris?"
"Well, yes."
"Please!" Susan said.
We were on Garden Street walking past the Harvard Police Station. I
decided to move the conversation forward, and told her about my
encounter with Louis Vincent at Hall, Peary.
"Kleenex?" Susan said. "Women are like Kleenex?"
"Un huh. Use and discard. There's plenty more."
I watched her ears closely to see if any steam escaped. she was controlled,
"The man is an absolute fucking pig," she said.
"There's that," I said.
"I want him to be the stalker."
"Because he's a pig?"
"Yes."
"Does he fit the profile?"
Susan glared at me for a moment, before she said, "No."
"He appears to be one of the masters of the universe," I said.
"Good-looking, well married, good job, lots of dough, endless poon tang
on the side. Stalkers are usually losers."
"I know."
"It's usually about control," I said. "Isn't it?"
"Yes."
"I'd guess this guy is in control."
"Not of his libido," Susan said.
"No, maybe not," I said. "On the other hand KC wasn't bopping him under duress."
Susan gave a long sigh.
"No," Susan said, "she wasn't."
"And she didn't dump him, did she?"
Susan thought about that.
"In one sense," she said, "maybe not. She left her husband to marry
him. He said, `I won't marry you.' But who said, `Therefore it's over'?"
I raised both eyebrows. I could raise one eyebrow, like Brian
Donlevy, but I didn't very often, because most people didn't know who
Brian Donlevy was, or what I was doing with my face.
"I don't know," I said. "I'll ask."
Susan looked pleased.
"Maybe he could still be the stalker."
"We can always hope," I said.
We reached Linnaean Street and turned right toward Susan's place.
"How about that thing you're doing for Hawk."
"Well, it is, I believe, turning into a hair ball."
"Oh?"
"I don't think the Lamont kid killed himself."
"Why not?"
I told her how his friends said he was happy and how they were
scornful of the possibility that he was having an affair with Robinson
Nevins and how the window was hard to open and how Lamont was said to
be approximately the size of a dandelion, but not as strong.
"Suicides often appear happy prior to the suicide," Susan said. "They've decided to do it."
"Thus solving all their problems."
"And getting even with whomever they are getting even."
"Which is usually why people do it?"
"Yes," Susan said. "The pathology is often similar, oddly enough, to
the pathology which causes stalking-see what you've made me do is a
kind of back door control. It forces emotion from the object of your
ambivalence."
"I don't think he could have opened the window," I said.
"Maybe it was conveniently open when the time came. Maybe its openness was the presenting moment, so to speak."
"I checked," I said. "It was thirty-six degrees, raining hard, with a strong wind on the day he went out."
Susan smiled at me.
"So much for psychoanalytic hypothesis," she said.
"It's very helpful," I said. "Especially when you asked about who
actually ended KC's affair. But it isn't intended to replace the truth,
is it?"
"No. It's intended to get at it."
We went into Susan's office. Her office and waiting room and what
she called her library (it looked remarkably like a spare room with a
bath to me) were on the first floor. Her quarters, and Pearl's, were on
the second. When Susan opened the door to her living room, Pearl
bounded about giving and receiving wet kisses, torn with her passion to
greet us both at the same time. But, being a dog, she quickly got over
her bifurcating ambivalence and went back and sat on the sofa with her
tongue out and looked at us happily.
Susan got me a beer from her refrigerator and poured herself a
bracing glass of Evian, and we sat down together at her kitchen
counter. Pearl sat on the floor beside us in case we moved into eating.
"So where to now," Susan said.
"One thing is I'll ask KC to go through the breakup, see if he might
have experienced it as her leaving him. Second, I figure that Louis has
fooled around before."
"I think you can bank on it," Susan said.
"So I'm going to see if I can find a few former girlfriends and see
if there's been any stalking. If he's a wacko, KC can't be the only one
he's been a wacko with."
Susan nodded and sipped some Evian. I drank some beer.
"How about the other case?"
"I've got a stack of back issues of the magazine that Lamont published: OUTregeous."
"As in OUT of the closet?"
"Yes. I'll read through that and see if there's a suspect. I'll look
at the plans for future issues, which I also have, and see if there's
any suspects there."
"And if there aren't?"
"Then I'll try to establish whether there was or was not a
relationship between Nevins and Lamont, and if there was why people
didn't know and if there wasn't why people said there was."
"And if that doesn't work?"
"I'll ask you," I said.
"For some psychoanalytic theory?"
"Can't hurt," I said.
"What I think we should do is go take a shower and brush our teeth
and lie on my bed and see what kind of theory we can develop."
"I'm pretty sure I know what will develop," I said.
"Should we shower together?" Susan said.
"If we do, things may develop too soon."
"Good point," Susan said. "I'll go first."
"And Pearl?" I said.
"In the living room with the TV on Fox-loud. She loves to watch Catherine Crier."
"Anyone would," I said.
And Susan disappeared into her bedroom.
Chapter 17
KC Roth poured some white wine into her glass.
"I was about to have lunch, I could make us both something," she said.
"Thank you, no," I said. "Just a couple questions."
"Did you see him?"
"Vincent?"
She smiled as if I had prayed aloud.
"I saw him," I said. "Handsome devil."
"Oh isn't he," she said. "What did he say?"
"He said he didn't stalk you."
"What else."
She was sitting on the pink sofa in the bay window of her beige living room. I was back in the uncomfortable gray chair.
"Nothing of consequence," I said. "Could you run back over the breakup."
Her eyes filled. She sipped some more white wine.
"I don't think I can," she said.
"Well, let me help you focus. Who said that you would no longer sleep together."
"What difference does it make?" she said. "It's over."
There were tears now on her cheeks. She wiped them with the back of her left hand.
"It might make a difference," I said. "I know it's painful, but think back. Who decided that you'd stop making love."
She drank wine again and looked down at her lap and answered me so softly that I couldn't hear her.
"Excuse me?" I said.
"I did," she said. "I told him that if he wouldn't leave his wife then I wouldn't fuck him until he did."
"Negotiating ploy?" I said.
She looked up and her eyes though teary were harder than one would have thought.
"I was desperate," she said.
"But you meant it."
"Well, he had to lose something too," she said. "He couldn't have
everything. I have to leave my beautiful house and my beautiful
daughter…" Now she was not just teary, now she was crying.
"I have to live in this… this cell block. He can't keep on fucking me. He has to give up something."
"Fair's fair," I said.
Struggling with her crying she said, "Could you . . could you come and sit beside me?"
"Sure."
I went and sat on the couch beside her and she leaned over and put
her face against my chest and sobbed. I put an arm around her shoulder
and patted. Uncle Spenser, tough but oh so gentle. After a while she
stopped crying, but she stayed with her face pressed against my chest,
and turned a little so she had snuggled in against me.
"So in fact you broke it off," I said. "Not him."
"All he had to do was leave his wife."
"Which he wouldn't."
"He can't. She's too dependent."
"But he'd have been willing to have you as his girlfriend."
"Yes."
"Being the only one cheating in fact didn't bother him."
She shrugged.
"No," she said. "Sometimes I say things because they sound right."
"Most people do," I said.
She seemed to wriggle a little tighter against me, though I didn't see her move.
"You're very understanding," she said.
"Yep."
"And you always seem so clear."
"Clear," I said.
"Have you ever cheated on Susan?"
"Once. Long time ago."
"Really?"
"Yep."
"She ever cheat on you?"
"That would be for her to answer," I said.
"If she did would you care?"
"Yes."
"Did she care the time you did?"
"Yes."
"How'd she find out?"
"I told her."
"Would she have known if you hadn't told her?"
"Maybe not."
"Why did you tell her?"
"Seemed a good idea at the time," I said.
"If you did again would she care?"
"Yes."
"Would you tell her?"
"I'll decide after I do it again."
"Do you think you'll do it again?" she said.
I couldn't figure out how she had moved so much closer to me, since she had started out leaning on me.
"Day at a time," I said.
My voice sounded a little hoarse. She turned her head slightly on my
chest so she could look up at me. One hand kneaded my left bicep.
"You're awfully strong, aren't you?"
I cleared my throat.
"It's because my heart is pure," I said.
I was still hoarse. I cleared my throat again. Her face was so close to mine that her lips brushed my face when she spoke.
"Really?"
"Sort of pure," I said.
She raised her head a couple of millimeters and kissed me hard on
the mouth. It seemed ungallant to struggle. She pulled her head back.
"When you kiss me put your tongue in my mouth." she said.
Her voice had thickened and grown richer, so that it had acquired
the quality of butterscotch sauce. She kissed me again and opened her
mouth. I kept my tongue to myself. She pressed harder. I thought that
somewhere there must be laughter, as I clung to my chastity. Finally
she pulled her head back and looked at me.
"Don't you want to fuck me?" she said.
"Very respectfully, no."
"My God, why not. I know you're aroused."
"You're very desirable," I said. "And I get aroused at green lights."
"Then, what?"
"I'm not at liberty, so to speak."
"My God, you're Victorian. A Victorian prude."
I disagreed, but arguing about my prudishness didn't seem productive. I shrugged.
"It's because of Susan?"
"Sure," I said.
She had sat up and was no longer leaning against me. This was
progress, it would help my arteries relax. KC poured some more white
wine and drank a swallow.
"What's so great about Susan?"
"The way she wears her hat," I said. "The way she sips her tea."
"Seriously, what's so special about her? I mean I've known her
longer than you have, since we were in college. She's so vain, for
God's sake."
"I'm not so sure it's vanity," I said.
Better to be talking about Susan than about what to do with my tongue.
"Well, what the hell is it, then. Hair, makeup, clothes, exercise, diet, always has to look perfect."
"Well," I said, "maybe she thinks of her appearance as a work of art in progress, sort of like painting or sculpture."
"And she's so pretentious, for God's sake. She's always like lecturing."
"And maybe not everyone gets it," I said.
"Gets what?"
"Susan's pretty good at irony."
"What's that mean?"
"She understands herself well enough to make fun of herself," I said.
"You'll defend her no matter what I say, won't you?"
"Yep."
KC got up and walked to the other side of the room and stared out the window at the blacktop parking lot behind her building.
"Do you think Louis is the stalker?"
"Could be."
"But why would he?"
"Maybe he feels like he's lost control of you."
"But we love each other."
"Not enough for him to leave his wife," I said. "Not enough for you to sleep with him if he doesn't."
"Of course I won't. Why would I give him what he wants when he won't give me what I want."
"I can't think of a reason," I said.
"Well, I don't believe it. I don't believe a thing you've said about him."
"Just a hypothesis."
"Why isn't my ex a hypothesis?"
"Doesn't seem the type," I said.
"How the hell would you know what type he is?"
"I talked with him."
"And you think that's enough?"
"No, but it's all I've got. I'm not a court of law here. I am allowed to go on my reactions, my guesses, my sense of people."
"And you sense that Louis would stalk me and Burt would not?"
"Yes," I said.
"Well, I don't have to listen to you. And I won't."
"Reading cops still checking on you," I said.
"Like you care."
I stood. "Time to go," I said.
"Past time."
I walked toward the door. She turned slowly to watch me, her hands on her hips, her face flushed.
"I would have shown you things that tight-assed Susie Hirsch doesn't even know."
I smiled at her. "But would you have respected me in the morning?" I said.
"Prude."
"Prudery is its own reward," I said, and left with my head up. I did
not run. I walked out the door and toward my car in a perfectly
dignified manner.
Chapter 18
When I came into my office in the morning there was a message on my
answering machine from Prentice Lamont's mother. It had come in late
yesterday while I was in KC Roth's condo preserving my virtue.
"Mr. Spenser, Patsy Lamont. I need to see you, please."
I had some coffee to drink and some donuts to eat and the
tiresome-looking pile of homosexuals-to-be-outed list still to read.
Reading it while eating donuts and drinking coffee would make it go
better.
I called Patsy Lamont.
"Spenser," I said. "When would you like to see me?"
She sounded like I'd awakened her, but she rallied.
"Could you come by around noon?" she said. "I have my support group in the morning."
"Anything I can do on the phone?" I said.
"No, I, I need to talk with you."
"Be there at noon," I said and hung up.
I took a bite of donut, a sip of coffee, and picked up the Out list.
There were some surprises on it, though none of them seemed like a
clue, and by 11:30, with the coffee a dim memory, and the donuts a
faint aftertaste, I put the list down and headed for my car. All I
could think of was to talk with each of the people on the list. This,
coupled with trying to find out who else Louis Vincent had been
hustling, meant a great deal of boring legwork that made me think about
becoming a poet.
I parked illegally near Mrs. Lamont's three decker and rang her
doorbell at noon. Prudish but punctual. We sat at her thick wooden
kitchen table with the high sun shining in through the upper panes of
the window over her sink. There was a big white envelope on the table
in front of her. It had been mailed and opened.
"Would you like some coffee?" she said. "I have instant."
"No thank you."
"Tea?"
"No ma'am."
"I'm going to have some tea."
"By all means," I said.
I sat at the table with my hands folded on it, like an attentive
grammar school student, and looked around. It was a kitchen out of my
early childhood: painted yellow, with luan mahogany plywood wainscoting
all around, yellow, gray, and maroon stone patterned linoleum on the
floor, white porcelain sink, an off-white gas stove with storage
drawers along one side. The kitchen table top was covered with the same
linoleum that covered the floor. The hot water kettle whistled that it
was ready, and Mrs. Larnont poured hot water into a bright flowered
teacup. She plopped in a tea bag and brought the teacup in a matching
saucer to the table. She took a spoon from a drawer in the table and
prodded the tea bag gently until the tea got to be the right shade of
amber. Then she took the tea bag out and put it in the saucer. She
picked up the teacup with both hands and held it under her nose for a
moment as if she were inhaling the vapors. Then she sipped and put the
cup back down.
"I barely know you," she said.
"That's true," I said.
"And yet here you are," she said.
"Here I am."
"My husband took care of all the financial things," she said.
I nodded.
"When he left I didn't even know how to write a check."
I nodded again. You find something that works, you go with it.
"I don't know any lawyers or people like that."
I nodded. She had some tea. I waited.
"So when this stuff came in the mail, I didn't know who to ask."
"This stuff?" I said and patted the big envelope.
"Yes. Now that he's… gone, his mail comes to me."
I knew who he was. I knew that parents tended to think of their
children as he, or she, or they, as if there were no one else that
could be so designated. And I knew that when something bad happened to
a child the tendency exacerbated.
"Would you like me to look at it?" I said.
"Yes, please."
She handed me the envelope. It was a financial statement from Hall,
Peary. Home of that great romantic, Louis Vincent. Boston isn't all
that big, sooner or later cases tended to overlap. The statement showed
that Prentice Lamont and Patsy Lamont JTWROS had $256,248.29 in a
management account consisting mostly of common stocks and options. I
copied down the name and phone number of his financial consultant which
was listed at the top. It wasn't Louis Vincent. It was someone named
Maxwell Morgan.
"What is it?" she said.
"It's a financial statement from a stockbroker."
"What does it say?"
"It says that your son and you had two hundred fifty-six thousand
and change invested in stocks and bonds, which the stockbroker managed
for him."
"You mean Prentice's money?"
"Yes. Now yours I assume."
"Mine?"
"Yes, see this, JTWROS? Joint tenants with right of survivorship. It
means that now that your son has passed away the money is yours."
"Mine?"
"Yes."
"Where would Prentice get two hundred thousand dollars?"
"I was hoping you'd know," I said. "His father?"
She snorted, in a gentle ladylike way.
"You've talked to his father."
"Yes. I withdraw the question."
I picked up the envelope. It was addressed to both Prentice and Patsy at Patsy's address.
"Envelopes like this come here before?"
"Yes. Every month. I just gave them to him."
"He wasn't living here."
"No. He lived in that apartment where they had the newspaper."
But he had the statements sent here.
"What should I do?" Mrs. Lamont said.
"With the money?"
"Yes."
"Do you need it?"
"Need it?"
"It's yours," I said.
"Are you sure?"
"Yes."
"How do I get it?"
"Somewhere in Prentice's effects there's probably a checkbook."
"He showed me one once."
"What'd he say?"
"I don't recall exactly, just something about see this checkbook."
"If you had it you could simply write a check on account when you needed to."
"Maybe in his room," she said. "It's not the room he grew up in. We
lived in Hingham until the divorce. It's just the room he used when he
came to see me. A child always needs to have a home to come to."
"Yes," I said.
"I haven't been in his room since the funeral."
"Would you like me to look?"
She was silent, looking into her teacup, then she nodded.
"Yes," she said very softly.
It was a small room behind the kitchen. Single bed with a maple
frame and flame shapes carved on the tops of the bedposts. A braided
rag rug, mostly blue and red, that was a little raveled at one edge. A
patchwork quilt, again mostly blue and red, covering the bed, some
jeans and sport shirts and a pair of dark brown penny loafers in the
closet. A maple bureau with an assortment of school pictures on top of
it. Prentice Lamont when he was in first grade, looking stiff and a
little scared in a neat plaid shirt, and in most of the grades between.
His high school graduation picture dominated the collection, a
round-faced kid with dark hair and pink cheeks, wearing a mortarboard.
His bachelor's degree was framed on the wall, but no college graduation
picture. In the top drawer of the bureau was a checkbook and a box of
spare checks and deposit slips and mailing envelopes. Apparently
Prentice did his financial planning in Somerville.
There was nothing else of interest in the room. It wasn't a room
that spoke of him, of his sexuality, his fears, why he was dead, or who
killed him. It was an anonymous child's room, maintained by a mother,
for an adult to come and sleep in once in a while. I brought the
checkbook and the spare checks out to his mother.
Chapter 19
Hawk and I were sparring in the boxing room at the Harbor Health
Club. There was no ring, just an open space to the left of the body bag
and speed bag and the skitter bag that was so hard to nail that even
Hawk missed it now and then. We had on the big fat pillow gloves that
even if you got nailed wouldn't hurt much, and we were floating like a
couple of butterflies and pretending to sting like a couple of bees.
"So, Lamont is outing people," Hawk said.
I put a left jab out and Hawk picked it off with his right glove.
"Un huh."
I turned my head, and rolled back from a right cross and felt the big soft glove just brush past my cheekbone.
"And he got two hundred fifty thousand in his money management account at Hall, Peary."
I tried a flurry of body punches which Hawk took mostly on his elbows, and then closed up on me and clinched.
"Un huh."
We broke and moved in an easy circle around the ring looking for daylight.
"I not a thinker like you," Hawk said, "being the pro-duct of a racist ed-u-cational system."
"This is certainly true," I said and threw a lightning fast left
hook which Hawk seemed to catch quite easily on his hunched right
shoulder. He countered with a whistling right uppercut which I managed
to avoid.
"But if I a thinker," Hawk said. "I be thinking that OUT plus money could equal blackmail."
"That's amazing," I said as I circled him clockwise, bouncing on my
toes to demonstrate that I wasn't getting tired. "And you're not even a
licensed investigator."
Hawk shuffled in suddenly and threw a short flurry of punches which
I bobbed and weaved and rolled and ducked and mostly avoided. I
countered with an overhead right which Hawk pulled back from. Hawk
stepped back and leaned against the wall of the gym.
"You think we go fifteen and not get a winner?" Hawk said.
"Fifteen for real," I said, "maybe we'd be trying harder."
"Have to."
We walked out of the boxing room and down to Henry Cimoli's office.
"How long'd you go," Henry said.
He was in his trainer's costume, a very white tee shirt and white
satin sweatpants. His small upper body looked like it might pop the
weave in the tee shirt.
"Half hour," I said.
"You need mouth to mouth?"
"Not from you," Hawk said and put his hands out for Henry to unlace
the gloves. When we were both glove free, Henry nodded at the small
refrigerator next to his desk.
"Trick I learned when I was fighting," he said. "Keep some good sports drinks handy so as to replenish the electrolytes."
I opened the refrigerator and took out two bottles of New Amsterdam Black and Tan.
"You can use my office, you want," Henry said. "I got to go suck around the customers."
"You too teeny to run a health club," Hawk said. "The same people
come here year after year, since the place stopped being a dump. Nobody
lose weight. Nobody put on muscle. Everybody look just like they did
when they signed up to get in shape."
"One difference," Henry said. "They are a little poorer, and I am a lot richer."
Hawk grinned at him.
"Maybe you ain't too teeny after all."
Henry jumped up and kicked the palms of his outstretched hands with
his toes, and landed easily and laughed and went out to the gym floor.
"Agile too," Hawk said.
"Easy to be agile if you're the size of a salt shaker."
"Almost beat Willie Pep once," Hawk said.
"I know."
Hawk sat in Henry's chair and took a pull at the beer. He swiveled
the chair so he could look out Henry's picture window at the harbor.
"You getting anywhere on Susan's friend's stalker."
"I got a guy I like for it."
"Time for me to go reason with him?" Hawk said.
"No. I'm not sure he's the one."
Hawk shrugged. He put his feet up on the windowsill and crossed his ankles and took another drink of beer.
"Thing I like about Henry," Hawk said. "He keep the sports drinks cold."
"That's a good thing."
We were quiet for a moment. One of the big harbor cruise boats eased
past, all glass and sleek lines, on a luncheon cruise to nowhere. It
loomed close to the window. We could see the people, mostly couples,
seated at tables in the main cabin.
"You think Robinson connected to the Lamont kid?" Hawk said.
"I don't know yet. I hope not. That thing shows every sign of being a mess."
"See any connection with Abdullah?"
"Nothing you don't know," I said.
The cruise ship had moved out of sight. For a moment the only
activity out the window was the wake of the cruise boat and the gulls
that swooped ever hopeful behind it. I finished my beer and Hawk
reached over without taking his feet down and got two more out of the
refrigerator.
"What's going on with Abdullah?" I said.
Hawk didn't move. He continued to look out the window at the harbor. He raised the bottle and took another drink of beer.
"You're completely pragmatic," I said. "You don't care what people
call you. You don't care if people are annoying. You don't care about
color. You don't get mad, you don't get sentimental. You don't hold a
grudge. You don't get scared, or confused, or boisterous, or jealous.
You don't hate anyone. You don't love anyone. You don't mind violence.
You don't enjoy violence."
"Kind of like Susan," Hawk said.
"Okay," I said. "You don't love many. My point stands. You taking a
run at Amir Abdullah because he called you a Tom is bullshit. You don't
care about insults any more than you care about fruit flies."
Hawk drank the rest of the beer in his bottle and put the bottle on
the desk. He dropped his feet off the windowsill, swiveled around, and
got another two bottles out of the refrigerator. He put one on the desk
in front of me, opened the other, and leaned back in Henry's chair
facing me. His face had no expression. His black eyes were bottomless.
I waited. I was barely into my second beer.
"I got you into this," Hawk said.
I nodded. One of the water taxis from Logan Airport plodded past.
Few couples in this one. Mostly men, a scattering of women. Both
genders dressed for business, carrying briefcases, paying no attention
to each other, too busy to flirt, or too tired, or it might mess their
hair.
"I was about fifteen," Hawk said, "making a living as a mugger. Used
to go to the Joe Louis gym to use the bathroom. Joe Louis didn't have
anything to do with it, of course, but half the black boxing clubs in
the country were using his name. Got so I'd hang around in there, watch
the fighters. Sometimes when there wasn't much going on they'd let me
hit the bag. I figured if I was going to make a living beating people
up, I might as well practice. I got good at it. Make the body bag jump,
make the speed bag dance. Had trouble in those days with that little
jeeter bag, but even some of the fighters had trouble with that."
"I still have troubles with that," I said.
Hawk smiled.
"Naw, you don't," he said. "Neither one of us do. So one day Bobby
Nevins comes in, sees me working on the bag, asks me have I got a
manager? I say no. He says, `You ever fight in the ring?' I say no. So
he says, `You want to try it?' And since I been making a living beating
people up I figure why not? So I say sure, and he puts me in with some
tall skinny Puerto Rican guy probably don't weigh more than a hundred
fifty pounds. And I'm thinking how smart Bobby is to start me off easy,
so I lace 'em on and get in the ring and of course the guy cleans my
clock."
"Knowing how helps," I said.
"It do. But Bobby sees something he likes and he takes me on, and
when he finds out I'm not living anywhere special he takes me in, and I
learn to fight and maybe along the way to use a fork when I'm eating.
Stuff like that. Robinson was a little kid then, maybe twelve, and his
mother kept him away from the fighters, so I see him, but I don't know
him much. So one day Bobby say to me, `I think you need to get a little
schooling.' And I say why, I gonna reason with people in the ring? And
Bobby say, `You should take an English class and a math class.' And
pretty soon I'm in night school at the community college. And my
English professor is a brother name of Dennis Crawford. Young guy maybe
four, five years older than me. He talk like Walter Cronkite, and he
wear horn-rimmed glasses and tweed jackets and English brogues and all
around, he about the smartest brother I ever saw. I never saw a black
man with an education. Bobby's wife was a schoolteacher, but she didn't
spend no time with the fighters so I didn't really know her either, and
besides she was a woman. So we reading Othello and we reading Invisible
Man and we discussing them and Professor Crawford, he smarter than the
white boys and even the white girls in the class. Never saw nothing
like it."
Hawk tilted the beer bottle back and drank some more and held it up
to the light and looked to see how much was left. I stayed quiet. Then
he took another swallow and put the bottle down.
"'Course I never say nothing in class. Those days I only know six
words if you count mother fucker as two. But I listened. One day after
class Professor Crawford asks me to come to his office."
Hawk had turned so he was staring out at the now empty harbor where the ocean moved in its directionless way.
"When I get there he say he notice me in class and don't think I'm
your usual night school student and he ask what I do. And I tell him
I'm a fighter and he says well tell me a little about that, so I do."
I was as still as I was able to be and still breathe. The air in the
room seemed to have gotten suddenly very dense. I wanted to drink some
beer but I didn't want to move. Hawk swung slowly around and let his
feet rest on the floor.
"And while I'm telling him, he hit on me," Hawk said with no discernible change in his voice.
"Shit," I said.
"I got up and left. Never went back to his class again. Never told nobody about it."
"Professor Crawford get caught up in the black power movement?"
"Yeah."
"He change his name?"
"Yeah."
"Amir Abdullah?"
"Yeah."
Chapter 20
Susan and I had been having brunch every Sunday at her home. She'd
set the dining room table with flowers in a vase and I'd cook
something, and when it was ready, we'd sit in her dining room and eat.
Pearl normally joined us. Today I had done huevos rancheros with mild
green chilies. We were talking about Hawk.
"Was it because the professor was gay?" Susan said.
"I don't think so," I said.
"Would he have reacted the same way if it had been a female professor that hit on him?"
"No. Femaleness didn't matter the way maleness mattered."
"It was because he was treating Hawk as a means not an end," Susan said.
"Avoiding the obvious wise remark about end…" I said.
"Thank you," Susan said.
"… I think so."
"The most august and accomplished black man Hawk had ever met and he-what would the street term be-dissed him?"
"Something like that," I said.
"And years later he turns up. Do you think he remembered Hawk?"
"I don't know. Hawk's probably not the only kid he ever hit on. Still most people meet Hawk remember him."
"Didn't he go out of his way to be insulting?" Susan said.
"Maybe. I think by nature he's an annoying sonovabitch."
"Predators often resent rejection," Susan said.
I shrugged. Pearl was resting her head on my thigh. I cut off a
small bite of the linguiqa I had substituted for chorizo, and gave it
to her.
"You're just confirming her in her bad habits," Susan said.
"Yes," I said, "I am:"
Susan stirred some Equal into her coffee. Pearl heard the spoon
click in the cup and left me for a more promising prospect. Susan gave
her a small forkful of black beans.
"Talk about bad habits," I said.
"At least I'm teaching her to use flatware," Susan said.
"Important for a dog," I said.
Susan smiled. She put her spoon down and put her chin on her folded hands and looked at me.
"It's very odd," she said. "It's like suddenly discovering Beowulf's childhood."
"I met him about the same time this happened," I said.
"When you were both fighting at the Arena:"
"Yes."
"You think he's all right?"
"Hawk?"
"Yes."
"Few people are more all right than Hawk," I said.
"He's very contained."
"Very."
"And he pays a high price for it," Susan said.
"You think?"
"The distance between containment and isolation is not so great," Susan said.
"He's got a lot of women," I said.
"But not one," Susan said.
"I guess that's right," I said.
"You ought to know."
"You think I'm too contained?" I said.
"You have me," Susan said.
"A claim no one else can currently make," I said.
"It makes your containment more flexible," Susan said.
"More fun too," I said.
"You're just saying that because I balled your ears off an hour ago."
"Not just that," I said.
Susan ate some of her food.
"This is very good," she said.
"You deserve it," I said.
"Because I'm deeply insightful?"
"Sure," I said. "And you also balled my ears off about an hour ago."
Chapter 21
I had a couple of ways to go in chasing down Louis Vincent. I could
talk to the cops in Hingham where he lived. Or I could talk to people
at Hall, Peary where he worked. Hall, Peary was closer, so I called
over there and talked with Phyllis Wasserman, the human resources
director. She told me that of the five complaints of sexual harassment
they'd had in the past year, one involved stalking and remained
unsolved. Two others, she said, were much closer to angry disagreement
than they were to sexual harassment, and the last two had been resolved
by firing the harasser. I asked who was involved in the stalking, and
she said she was not at liberty. I asked if she would give my name to
the victim and ask her to call me. She said she would.
While I was waiting hopefully, I called the Hingham police. It took
a little while but I got to the chief, whose name was Roach. They'd had
two stalking complaints in the last year. In one case the stalker had
been in violation of a court order, and they had been able to arrest
him and urge him to change his ways.
"You give me the name?" I said.
"Not without a good reason," Roach said.
"Well, was the stalker a Hingham resident?"
"No."
"Was he a stockbroker?"
"Hell no."
"Okay," I said. "What about the other one?"
"Never caught the guy."
"But the stalking stopped?"
"Yep. My guess is he found someone else."
"That's my guess too," I said. "Can you give me the name of the victim?"
"Nope."
"Can you give her my name and number, and remind her that I'm trying
to help some other woman who's going through what she went through?"
"I can do that," Roach said.
"Thanks."
I hung up and sat. The phone was quiet. I swiveled my chair so I
could look out my window at the corner of Berkeley and Boylston. I
opened the window so I could listen to the traffic. People were already
in summer clothes although we were only about half done with May. There
was a Ford Explorer waiting for the light on Boylston Street. The
sunroof was open and there was heavy metal music thundering up. As I
watched, someone stuck a sign out of the sunroof that said Brendan
Cooney for King. The light changed. The Explorer moved on, its
exuberant sign still deployed. The young are very different than we
are, I said to myself. Yes, I responded, they have more time. What if
you could be young again and were able to undo the things that were
done that made you into the person you would later become. But then who
would you be. Would Hawk have been Hawk if he hadn't met Professor
Crawford/ Abdullah? Maybe this wasn't a useful avenue of inquiry. Maybe
I should run over a list of the women I'd slept with and see if I could
remember how each of them looked with their clothes off.
I was up to Brenda Loring, who had looked excellent with her clothes off, when the phone rang.
"This is Meredith Teitler," a woman said. "Phyllis Wasserman gave me your number."
"I'm a detective," I said. "I represent a woman who is currently being stalked."
"I understand," Meredith said. "What do you wish to know?"
"You worked at Hall, Peary?"
"Still do," she said.
"You were a stalking victim."
"Yes."
"Is it still a problem?"
"I am no longer being stalked," she said.
"Did you ever identify the stalker?"
"No."
"Did you ever date anyone at Hall, Peary?" I said.
"Yes."
"Who?"
"He wouldn't have been the stalker."
"How can you be sure?"
"Well, he just wouldn't. He was, is, very nice."
"Can you give me his name?"
"No, really, I'm happy to help. But I don't wish to make trouble for a man who's guilty of nothing."
"Did you ever date Louis Vincent?" I said.
There was silence.
After a moment I said, "May I take that as a yes?"
"Why did you ask about Louis?"
"He's suspected in a stalking on the North Shore," I said.
Again silence. This time I waited her out.
"Yes," she said finally, "I dated Louis Vincent."
"And what caused you to stop dating?" I said.
"I… I went back to my husband," she said. "I had dated Louis while my husband and I were separated."
"How'd he feel about you reuniting with your husband?"
"He was very much for it," she said. "That's why I can't…"
"Did he have any thought that you might continue to see each other after you reunited?"
"I… well, he did say at one point it would be fun if we could
still meet once a week or so and… ah… be in bed together."
"And you said no."
"I said I didn't see how that would work if I were married again. He said he understood."
"Thank you," I said.
"Will this have to come out?" she said. "I mean my husband and
I… well, it's working now. I'd hate to drag thing back up."
"I don't see why it has to be a public thing," I said.
"I don't really believe it was Lou," she said.
"You never know," I said.
Profound.
I hung up and went back to looking out the window, and thinking
about nudity. It was late afternoon and I was up to how Susan looked
with her clothes off, when the phone rang. It was a guy named Al.
"I'm calling for a woman in Hingham," he said. "You know who I mean?"
"Yes," I said.
"She doesn't want to talk about the stalking thing. But if she can
help stop it for some other woman she wants to help. She asked me to
call."
"You her husband?"
"Something like that," Al said. "I can answer most of your questions."
"One, really," I said. "She ever date a guy named Louis Vincent?"
"I'll ask her," Al said.
The line was silent for a minute or so, then Al came back on the line.
"Yes," he said.
"Anything she can tell me about him?"
"No."
"Already been discussed?" I said.
"Yes."
"Thank her for me," I said.
"You think this guy Vincent is the stalker?"
"Yes, I do," I said.
"You know where to find him?"
"Yes, I do."
"Where?"
"I think I won't tell you," I said.
"Well, you see him, tell him," Al said. "There's a guy looking for
him, big guy, had some fights in his life, likes it, tell him when this
guy finds him he's going to yank his fucking head off."
"I'll tell him," I said.
Chapter 22
It was nearly noon. I was at my desk with my feet up reading the
to-be-outed list I had acquired from Prentice Lamont's file drawer. It
was dated at the top two weeks before Lamont died. The list was several
pages long with notations next to various names, which apparently
suggested likelihood: "not sure" or "dead giveaway." Some were more
graphic: "wrinkle room" or "chicken fucker." Near the bottom of the
third page was Robinson Nevins, and the notation "research continues."
So there was a connection between Prentice Lamont and Robinson Nevins.
There were several names I recognized on the list, but nobody seemed
more likely than anybody else to have tossed Prentice out the window.
Even the women on the list couldn't be eliminated. Prentice was small,
and I knew some lesbian women who might throw me out the window.
I put the list aside and picked up the stack of OUTrageous magazines
again and began to read. It was not pleasant. Whatever Prentice Lamont
had been, he had not been a writer. His literary style was school
newspaper gossip prose. It was twenty to two and I was on my third back
issue of OUTrageous, when I came to an interview with
"scholar/activist" Amir Abdullah about the problems he encountered as
an African-American man who was also gay. The article added nothing to
my understanding of the situation, but it did connect Prentice Lamont,
already connected to Robinson Nevins by the Out list, to Amir Abdullah.
It might mean nothing. They were after all also connected to the same
university. It didn't mean Robinson was gay. The Out list had been
still researching the question. And if Robinson were gay it didn't mean
that he had been intimate with Prentice Lamont, and even if he had
been, it didn't mean he had thrown Prentice out the window. Still when
the same names kept turning up, it sometimes meant something. And when
nothing else meant anything, it was a thing to hang on to. The
interview between Prentice and Amir could have been the source of the
story which Amir had passed on to the tenure committee about a
connection between Robinson Nevins and Prentice Lamont. Had Prentice
asked Amir about Nevins in the course of the interview? Had Amir
suggested Nevins to Prentice in the course of the interview? Could Amir
have suggested Nevins for reasons of university politics? Could Amir
have embroidered what he learned from Prentice for reasons of
university politics? I was pretty sure that worse had been done in the
service of university politics. And if any of it were true how did it
connect to one of the few facts I had-which was that Prentice Lamont
was dead, and he'd died with a quarter of a million dollars in the
bank. I thought about the quarter million, which was a relief.
Sexuality was a slippery devil. Greed you could get a handle on. Any
time there's money in a case, what do you do?
"Follow the money," I said aloud, just as if I were the first person to have thought of that approach.
Even when there's sex in the case too?
There's always sex, what are cases about but sex and money.
"Follow the money," I said again.
I pulled my phone over and called Mrs. Lamont.
"Would you call Maxwell T. Morgan at Hall, Peary," I said, "and tell
him that he may discuss your and Prentice's account with me?"
"Why?" she said.
"I'm trying to help you find out how there came to be so much money," I said.
It wasn't exactly untrue.
"If you think I should," she said.
"I do," I said, and gave her the phone number and made sure she had
it right and got up and went out to see Prentice Lamont's financial
advisor at Hall, Peary.
Maxwell Morgan had a smaller office than Louis Vincent, two floors
lower and in the middle of the building with a view of another
building. He didn't seem to mind. He was a big round blond cheerful
healthy-looking guy with pink cheeks.
"Max Morgan," he said. "Come on in."
I sat across his desk from him in a moderately comfortable chair
with arms. He had on the uniform-shirtsleeves and suspenders, his coat
jacket hung neatly on a hanger on the back of his door.
"Care to invest in American Industry?" Morgan said.
"No."
Morgan grinned. "Okay," he said. "You got a thingamajig that says you're a detective?"
I showed him my license.
"So what do you need?"
"You handled Prentice Lamont's investments."
"Yes."
"Lamont is dead."
"Yes, I know, poor devil killed himself, I understand."
"I don't think so," I said.
"You don't?"
"No, but that's not our issue. What can you tell me about the quarter of a million he has invested with you."
"Not much," Morgan said. "Alive or dead Mr. Lamont is entitled to confidentiality."
"Did Mrs. Lamont call you?"
Morgan smiled and nodded.
"Just wanted to be sure it was you," he said.
"I understand," I said. "Lawyers."
"You better believe it, the bastards took over Wall Street about
five years ago." Morgan shook his head sadly. "This business used to be
fun," he said.
"So," I said. "Tell me about all this money that a
twenty-three-year-old graduate student suddenly began investing in a
management account."
He swiveled his chair sideways and brought the file up on his computer.
"Cash," he said. "Always in the amount of nine thousand."
"Cash?"
"Well, bank checks."
"Close enough," I said.
"What bank?"
"Endicott Trust," Morgan said. "You don't think he was a suicide?"
"No," I said. "I think he was murdered."
"Jesus," Morgan said.
"Always the same bank?"
"Yes."
"Always nine thousand dollars?"
"Yes."
"Sounds like he was avoiding the cash reporting laws."
"It does," Morgan said.
"Would he have paid cash for the bank check?"
"Probably. I can call over there for you:"
"I'd appreciate it."
While he called, I looked out the window of his office and into the
window of the office across from his. There was a guy in shirtsleeves
and suspenders on the phone and another guy looking out the window at
me looking out the window at him. Was there a guy in shirtsleeves and
suspenders talking on the phone on the other side of the building while
another guy stared out the window at a guy in shirtsleeves… I
shook my head and turned back to Morgan.
"Thank you, Bricky," he said. "I owe you lunch."
He hung up and turned to me.
"Cash money," Morgan said. "In hundreds, ninety of them. Several times a week. Each time he'd get a bank check made out to him."
"How often did he deposit with you?"
Morgan looked at his screen for a few moments.
"Averaged about twice a month."
"So what did he do with the rest?"
"Wine, women, and song?" Morgan said.
"Probably not women," I said.
Morgan shrugged.
"Cigarettes, whiskey, and wild, wild men?" he said.
"I don't know." I said. "If he was going to spend it, why did he convert it to bank checks?"
"Maybe put it in his checking account."
"Why not just deposit the cash?" I said.
Morgan shrugged.
"Hey, I'm a simple stockbroker," he said. "You're the fucking sleuth."
"Thanks for reminding me," I said. "Sometimes it's hard to tell."
Chapter 23
When I got back from Hall, Peary, KC Roth was waitng in the hall
outside my office door wearing an ethereal-looking white summer dress.
She appeared not to be wearing stockings. Her legs were tanned. She had
on white high heels with no back. Even in the harsh fluorescent light
she looked like a slumming angel.
"We must talk," she said.
I unlocked my door. KC preceded me into the office. As soon as the
door closed behind us, KC turned and pressed herself against me and put
her arms around my neck and kissed me urgently.
"Kiss me back," she murmured.
After a while she moved her mouth away and whispered, "Hold me."
She moved her body against mine in several different directions. I
had never figured out how women did that. On the other hand I'd never
actually hugged a man. Maybe they did it too and I didn't know it.
"I've wanted you since I saw you," KC whispered.
"Don't blame you," I muttered.
"Put your hands on me."
"They are on you."
"They're on my shoulders," KC said.
"It's a start," I said.
She pushed against me more insistently. I would have said more
insistent was not possible, but she managed. She bent her head back and
looked up at me, and her lips brushed mine as she spoke.
"Have you ever made love in this office?" she said.
"No," I said, "I was waiting to get a couch."
"You could take me now, here, on the floor."
"I think we've gone through this," I said.
"Come on, you want to."
"Of course I want to," I said. "But I'm not going to."
"You have to," she said. "You have to."
"You left your husband for a guy and didn't end up with the guy," I
said. "You're being stalked. You're feeling shaky. You need
affirmation, and here I am, the guy who's going to rescue you from the
stalker."
"That's just talk," she said. "You're a man and I'm a woman."
There wasn't much room to maneuver around that, so I left it alone. I didn't have a lot of experience fighting for my virtue.
"You ever fuck Susan here?" she said, her face almost touching mine.
"I'm impressed," I said. "The question is intrusive, annoying,
coarse, and voyeuristic, that's quite a lot to get into a simple
question."
"Well, did you? I'll bet you didn't. I'll bet she wouldn't. She
wouldn't want to do it in a chair," KC's voice got very ftutey,
"because it wouldn't be ladylike. And she wouldn't want to do it on the
floor because she'd be afraid she'd mess her clothes."
"Enough," I said.
I took a somewhat firmer grip on her shoulders and walked her
backward toward one of my client chairs. She thought I was succumbing.
I could feel her shoulders relax. I sat her down in my client chair and
held her there. She raised her face with her eyes closed and her mouth
open.
"You and I are not going to have sex," I said. "I don't like that much better than you do, but it's a fact."
She reached out and began to rub my thigh. I slapped her hand. The
action was involuntary, but effective. She pulled her hand away and
burst into tears. I went around my desk feeling completely idiotic and
sat down, and breathed in and out as quietly as I could. She cried for
a little while and rubbed her hand where I'd slapped it.
"You hit me," she said.
"Not very hard," I said.
"It was too hard," she said.
"Hard is in the eye of the beholder, I guess," I said, and wished I hadn't said it quite that way.
KC rubbed her hand some more, and sniveled a little. It didn't seem
to me like a good time to tell her that Louis Vincent was almost
certainly the guy who was stalking her. Or that she was but one of a
fairly long list of women he stalked. Perhaps there was another way to
approach that problem.
Then she said, "I don't understand you, most men would jump at the chance to fuck me."
"Of course they would."
"Don't you think I'm beautiful?" KC said.
"Absolutely," I said.
"As beautiful as poopie old Susan?"
"No less," I said.
"You're not even married to her."
"I know," I said.
"I need a man to hold me."
"Maybe you just want one and think it's need."
"What's that mean?"
I shrugged.
"Just a thing to say."
"Well, I've been through hell," KC said with a breathy sorrowful catch in her voice.
I nodded.
"And I don't need a lot of holy-than-thou crap from some guy I've hired."
"I think that's holier," I said, "holier than thou."
"And don't patronize me."
Lucky I was a liberated guy and perfectly correct in sexual attitudes or I might have said something under breath about women.
"KC," I said. "I'm trying, with some difficulty, and against most of
my genetic programming, to avoid sex with you in a pleasant fashion.
Maybe it can't be done. Maybe the closest I can get to it is to
patronize you."
She sat and looked at me and thought about that. She was gorgeous. I
knew virtue was its own reward, but sometimes I wondered if the same
might be true of vice.
"So tell me about Susan," she said. "What is it she does to make you like this?"
"It has to do with love, I think."
"But how does she get you to do what she wants?"
"She doesn't," I said. "I want to do what she wants:"
"But she must do something."
"What she does," I said, "is she tries not to want me to do things I don't want to do."
"I'm serious," KC said.
"Me too," I said.
KC stared at me, she crossed her bare legs some more.
Finally she said, "I don't get it."
"No," I said. "You don't."
Chapter 24
I took a rosewood-paneled elevator up to the top floors of the State
Street Building where Hall, Peary flourished. There were five guys in
striped shirts and red suspenders riding up with me. For a guy who kept
all his money in his wallet, I was spending a lot of time with
stockbrokers. When I went into Louis Vincent's big corner office I
closed the door behind me. Louis was contemplating his computer screen,
breathless with adoration.
"Hello there," I said. Spenser, the genial gumshoe. Vincent looked up.
"Oh, hi. Come on in, or, well, you are in, aren't you."
"I bring you greetings," I said, "from KC Roth, and Meredith
Teitler, and a woman in Hingham whose name I do not know, but whose
significant other is a large fierce man named Al who says he will
remove your head if he ever encounters you."
"What the hell are you talking about?" Vincent said.
"Don't dick around with this, Vincent. You've stalked a number of women in the past and you are stalking KC Roth currently."
He got to his feet. "You're crazy," he said.
I walked around the corner of his desk and put a good short left
hook in under his rib cage on the right side. He gasped and staggered
back, and began flailing at me with both hands. He was so inept that
his fists weren't fully closed and if he'd hit me it would have been
more of a slap than anything else. But he didn't hit me. It had been a
long time since somebody who punched like he did had hit me. I hit him
again, same punch, same place, and he gasped again.
Then he hollered, "Betty."
I punched him in the solar plexus with my right hand and he sagged.
He tried to yell Betty again but he had too little breath. Behind me
the door opened.
A woman's voice said, "My God."
"Call cops," Vincent gasped.
I stepped away. He tried to straighten up, still struggling to get
air in, and I clipped him on the jaw with a good professional right
cross and he sat down hard on the floor and stayed there.
"Stop it," Betty screamed, "stop it."
"Done," I said.
Betty turned and ran toward her desk. Vincent was staring at me from the floor. He was about half functional.
"Can you understand me?" I said.
He nodded.
"If anything even slightly annoying, anything at all happens to KC
Roth, ever again, I will come back and knock every tooth out of your
head."
He continued to stare.
"And maybe I'll tell Al where you are." I could see that he heard me.
"You understand that?" I said.
He nodded very slightly. He was very pale, and he kept himself rigid as if any movement would make him disintegrate.
"Feel free to explain to the cops why I punched you," I said and turned and walked out of his office.
Betty had hung up the phone. When she saw me she pointed me out to a
couple of vigorous-looking young guys who were probably good at squash.
"That's him," she said. "Don't let him get away."
I didn't feel like instructing them in the difference between
scuffling and squash, so I smiled at them courteously and opened my
coat so they could see that I was wearing a gun.
"Let him get away," I said. Which they did.
Chapter 25
Pearl and Susan and I were sitting in Susan's large black Explorer
in the parking lot of the Dunkin' Donuts shop on Route 1 in Saugus,
eating donuts. Actually Susan and Pearl were sharing a donut and I was
eating several, with coffee.
"I got a call from KC Roth this morning," Susan said.
She sprinkled a little Equal into her decaffeinated coffee and swirled it with the little red swizzle that came with the coffee.
"Swell," I said.
I liked the donuts they sold with the little handle on them. When
you had finished the donut you still could eat the little handle and
have the illusion that you'd gotten extra.
"She says you've been hitting on her."
I finished my donut and drank some coffee to help it down.
"And how did you respond?" I said.
"I said that it seemed very unlike you."
"And she said?"
"That apparently I didn't know you as well as I thought I did."
"Well," I said, "if I were going to hit on someone besides you, she'd be an early candidate."
"Yes, she is undeniably stunning," Susan said. "But I'm pretty sure that I do know you as well as I think I do."
"Maybe better," I said.
"So I don't want you to deny it," Susan said. "Because I don't
believe you did it. But I'd be curious as to why she is telling me you
did."
"She blandished me and I was unresponsive," I said.
"Blandished?"
"Yes."
"As in blandishments?"
"Yes."
"Are you sure that's a word?"
"It is now," I said.
"Tell me about her blandishments," Susan said.
So I did, graphically.
"I don't wish to hurt your feelings, but KC has always been something of a hot pants."
"Damn," I said, "I thought maybe you had told her what a Roscoe I was in bed."
Susan shook her head and sipped some more decaf.
"Your secret is safe with me," she said.
From the backseat Pearl nudged at my elbow as I was about to bite into a new donut.
"Excuse me," I said and broke off a piece and gave it to her.
"KC and I have been friends a long time," Susan said. "I would have hoped for a little better behavior."
"Maybe she's different with men than she is with other women," I said.
"I'd say that was a given," Susan said.
"I don't know why, and obviously I'm making some rather large
intuitive leaps here, but she seems to be in bad need of male attention
and she seems to need it from men she can be scornful of."
"Including you?" Susan said.
"If I had, ah, come across," I said. "Then she could have been scornful of me because I was unfaithful to you."
"Maybe that was part of your attraction, in addition to being a Roscoe, of course."
"This is your department," I said, "but maybe it's why she cheated on her husband. He seemed hard to scorn."
"Yes, Burt is quite admirable. How about her stockbroker?"
"Easy to scorn."
"I of course understand some of that."
"You understand some of everything," I said.
Susan smiled and held her decaf up so Pearl could lap a little from the cup.
"Yes we do," she said. "How did your talk go with Louis Vincent? Did he admit it?"
"Not exactly."
"Did he seem remorseful?" Susan said.
"I think by the end of the discussion he felt some remorse."
"Does his remorse have any connection with the bruised knuckles on your right hand?"
"It was a talking point," I said.
"Did you have to talk much?"
"Awhile," I said.
"So how come there aren't any other bruises on your knuckles."
"All the other talking was to the body," I said.
"Did you reach an agreement?"
"We agreed that he would stop bothering KC."
"Leaving KC all the free time she needs," Susan said, "to bother you."
"Exactly."
"Maybe I'll talk with her."
"And say what?"
"And say that if she doesn't stop fucking around with my honey bun, she'll be sleeping with the fishes:'
"You shrinks know just the right thing," I said.
"Yes," Susan said. "We do."
Chapter 26
One of the people who had been outed by the OUTrageous, was a
television reporter named Rich Randolph. I sat with him in his cubby
inside the newsroom at Channel Three, next door to the news set.
"I wasn't exactly in the closet," he said. "But I wasn't, you could say, broadcasting it."
"Probably not the road to advancement," I said.
Randolph was slimmer than he looked on camera, with a good haircut, round, gold-rimmed glasses, and a sharp-edged face.
"Hell, glasses put you at a disadvantage."
"And well they should," I said.
He glanced at me for a moment and then smiled.
"Nothing," he said, "is too trivial for local television."
"Did you know Prentice Lamont?" I said.
"He the guy ran the magazine?"
"Yes."
"No, I didn't know him. I saw his name on the masthead. Somebody, I
assume it was he, wrote me an unsigned letter saying that I was
scheduled to be outed in the whatever date issue of OUTrageous, unless
I wished to make other arrangements, and included a phone number. I
called the number and I said what sort of arrangements, and he said,
financial. And I said you mean you'll take money not to out me? And he
said, yes, and I told him to go fuck himself, and hung up. About two
weeks later I was out."
"Sounds like you passed on a good piece of investigative reporting."
"I did," Randolph said. "It was also my life, and I thought maybe I
can just sit tight and it'll blow over. I mean who ever heard of
OUTrageous, anyway? I thought they might be bluffing, and if they
weren't I thought no one read the damned thing."
"Unless they backed it up," I said, "and made sure somebody saw it."
"The station manager got a copy in the mail."
"How'd that work out?"
"He was hurt," he said, "that I hadn't leveled with him. The sonovabitch. Like he's telling me about his sex life."
"But he didn't fire you."
"Hell no. The union would be on them like ugly on a warthog. The PR fallout would swamp him, and he knows it."
"He taking any action?" I said.
Randolph shrugged. "You watch the news on this station?"
"No," I said.
"Well, if you did, you might next see me covering a fashion show."
"Or modeling them," I said.
"Ah, if only," Randolph said.
"Was it Lamont that was doing the blackmail, you think?"
"I don't know. The letter was unsigned, appeared to be written on a
computer. The voice on the phone was anonymous. I have no idea who I
talked to, but how big an operation was it?"
"Maybe bigger than I thought," I said. "Could you tell anything from the voice? It was male."
"Yeah, male. Native English speaker, I'd say."
"How old?"
"Couldn't tell. Wasn't a kid, or an old person. Twenty-sixty, somewhere in there, I guess."
"Race?"
Randolph shook his head.
"Anything to indicate that it wasn't Prentice Lamont?"
"Given that I don't know who Prentice Lamont is, no."
We sat for a moment. Outside his cubicle the newsroom clattered and
hustled. Monitors gleamed. Assignments were being given. Phones were
ringing. Computers were being keyed.
"You talk to any other people who've been featured OUTrageous?" I said.
"No."
I nodded.
"How come you get a cubicle?" I said.
"Senior correspondent," he said.
"Wow," I said.
"Yeah," Randolph said.
We sat for another moment.
"You know what my real name is?" Randolph said. "My real name is
Dick Horvitz. Media consultant said it didn't have sympathetic
overtones."
"Gee," I said, "I choked up the minute you said it."
"You ever wonder why people care about shit like this?" he said.
"Often," I said.
"You have an answer?"
"No."
He leaned back and put his feet up.
"Senior correspondent," he said.
Chapter 27
It was time to find out about Prentice Lamont. So I drove over to
the university and parked my car in a space marked faculty only.
Actually it was past time to find out about Prentice. If I knew any
less I'd be in some sort of informational deficit.
I started with the Dean of Arts and Sciences, whose name was
Reynolds. We sat in his first-floor office with a view of coeds in the
student quadrangle. His desk was neat without being barren, and a
picture of his wife and three daughters was displayed on a side table.
"I can get you Prentice Lamont's transcript," he said, "hold on."
He stood and walked to the door and stuck his head out and spoke to one of the women in the outer office.
Back behind his desk, he smiled.
"Things move quicker," he said, "when it's a request from the dean's office."
Reynolds was a tall trim man with a bald head and hornrimmed
glasses. He wore a dark suit with a red silk tie, and a matching pocket
square.
"The information from the English department tenure committee will
be harder. Requests from the dean don't impress them, and legally, they
have the right to keep their proceedings secret."
"Legally in a court of law?"
Reynolds shrugged.
"I don't know. Legally under university bylaws."
"Even if the proceedings may in themselves have violated university bylaws?"
Reynolds smiled again.
"My guess would be," he said, "especially then."
"Did you know Prentice Lamont?" I said.
"No."
"How about Robinson Nevins?"
"I recognized him if we passed in the corridor, I don't think we've ever talked."
"How about Amir Abdullah."
Reynolds leaned back in his chair and put his hands behind his head.
"Ah," he said, "Mr. Abdullah."
I waited.
"I understand you've already had an altercation with Mr. Abdullah."
"I prefer to say I've already won an altercation with Mr. Abdullah."
"Not everyone can claim that," Reynolds said. "You appear to have the build for it."
"How've you done?" I said.
"Our altercations are somewhat different," Reynolds said. "But I guess we're about even."
"What can you tell me about him?"
"Officially? Professor Abdullah is an esteemed member of our faculty."
"And unofficially?"
"A great pain in the ass," Reynolds said.
"I need to know as much as I can," I said.
"About Abdullah?"
"About everything. You seem to know about Abdullah."
"I know something about Abdullah, and I have some opinions, but they are not for dissemination."
"It is not in the best interest of a guy who does what I do," I
said, "to blab things told him in confidence. And you have my word that
it will be in confidence unless I am legally compelled to repeat it."
"Fair enough," Reynolds said. "Abdullah is a poseur. He is
intellectually dishonest. He exploits his blackness and his gayness for
his own advantage. He cares only about his own advancement. He does not
like to teach, and his publications are polemic rather than
scholarship. He is, I believe, though I've not been able to catch him,
a sexual predator who preys on young men in his classes."
"If you catch him?"
"If I catch him," Reynolds said, "he's gone. Tenure or no tenure."
"And you win," I said.
"And I win."
A tall good-looking black woman with gray highlights in her short hair came in carrying a copy of the transcript.
"Who gets this?" she said.
Reynolds pointed at me and she handed it to me and smiled and walked out. I gave the transcript a fast eyeball.
"Prentice took three courses last semester in African-American studies," I said. "Could they be Abdullah?"
Reynolds put out a hand and I gave him the transcript; he glanced through it.
"All of them," he said, "would be Professor Abdullah."
"What is Prentice's major?"
Reynolds glanced at the transcript.
"He was getting a master's degree in English literature," he said.
"Is it unusual that he'd take all these African courses?"
"Yes."
"What department does Abdullah belong to?" I said.
"English. The African-American Center is not funded by the
university and has no official standing, though we are not opposed to
it, and would be hesitant to oppose it anyway."
"If you do find that he is hitting on young men in his class and you
fire him, will there be a firestorm of protest alleging you are
homophobic and racist?"
"Absolutely," Reynolds said.
"But you'll do it anyway."
"There are no university bylaws that tolerate sexual exploitation of students by faculty, straight or gay, black or white."
"I can prove he hit on a student at the community college some years ago."
"Doesn't help me here," Reynolds said.
"Maybe it will," I said.
Reynolds studied me for a moment. His eyes were both humorous and hard, like a turtle's.
"One entry," he said after a moment, "into the proceedings of the
tenure committee would be to talk with the members. Some are fools, but
one or two are quite human."
"Who would you say is the most human?"
"Tommy Harmon."
"Does he know all the words of `Hail to the Victor'?" I said.
"It's a nickname, I believe his real name is David."
"Doesn't sound like you had to sort through a long list," I said. "To come up with him."
Reynolds smiled.
"I'll call Tommy if you like and tell him you'll be stopping by."
"Do," I said.
Chapter 28
Tommy Harmon had an office with a big bay window that gave him a
sweeping vista of the MBTA station. There was a boom box on top of his
bookcase and he had a CD playing.
"Carol Sloane," I said.
"With Clark Terry," he said. "Very good."
He was a blocky man with a thick neck and a kind of healthy-looking
redness to his face that suggested he spent time out of doors.
"I represent Robinson Nevins," I said.
Harmon nodded.
"He thinks he was jobbed on his tenure promotion."
"I do too," Harmon said.
"And he asked me to look into how that happened."
"And?"
"In the process I came to the conclusion that Prentice Lamont didn't commit suicide," I said.
"You think he was killed?"
"Yes."
"Christ!"
"Which lends a larger urgency to the inquiry," I said.
"I should say so."
"It's my impression that Nevins was denied tenure because of
allegations that his relationship with Lamont resulted in Lamont's
suicide."
"Nobody ever said that, exactly," Harmon said. "And, of course, no
one is required to explain or even admit their vote. What makes you
think he was killed?"
"He couldn't have opened the window he went through," I said.
"Perhaps it was open."
"Perhaps."
"And perhaps I ought to stick to my area of expertise," Harmon said. "Have you shared your theory with the police?"
"Not yet, one of my goals is to refurbish Nevins' reputation, which I thought I might attempt, before I called the cops."
Harmon nodded again.
"What do you need from me?"
"I don't know," I said. "I'd like you to tell me whatever you can
about the deliberations of the tenure committee. Maybe I'll recognize
something I need."
Harmon reached over and turned off his boom box, then he shifted
back in his chair and put one foot up on a partly open drawer in his
desk. He was wearing an open-collared white shirt, khaki pants, and
white sneakers. On his desk next to a couple of books by R. W. B. Lewis
was a book titled Death in the Landscape: The American Pastoral Vision
by David T Harmon.
Harmon took in a long slow breath and let it out slowly.
"University politics is very odd. You get a lot of people gathered
together who, if they couldn't do this, really couldn't do anything.
They are given to think that they are both intelligent and important
because they have Ph.D.s and most people don't. Often, though not
always, the Ph.D. does indicate mastery over a subject. But that's all
it indicates, and, unfortunately, many people with Ph.D.s think it
covers a wider area than it does. They think it empowers their superior
insight into government and foreign policy and race relations and such.
In addition these people are put into an environment where daily, they
judge themselves against a standard set by eighteen- or twenty-year-old
kids who know little if anything about the subject matter in which
their professors are expert."
"Makes it hard not to take yourself very seriously," I said.
"Hard, not impossible," Harmon said. "More of them ought to be able to do it."
"But they can't?"
"But they don't. Exemplar of the species is Lillian Temple. There is
no liberal agenda, however goofy, that will not attract her attention.
There is no hypocrisy, however bald, that she will not endure if she
can convince herself that it is in the service of right thinking."
"How about Bass Maitland?" I said.
"Officially he is as committed to right thinking as Lillian," Harmon said. "In fact he is his agenda."
"He a friend of Lillian Temple?"
"I believe they are more than friends."
"Lovers?"
"I'd say so."
"Are they the source of the Robinson Nevins-Prentice Lamont rumor?"
"Yes."
"Where was Amir Abdullah in this?"
"Amir declines to attend tenure meetings which he views, with some
justice, as a bunch of white straight people who will only vote for
people like themselves."
"A situation his attendance might help to modify," I said.
"Amir is never that lucid," Harmon said.
"Is he friends with Temple or Maitland?"
"Since he is gay and black, Lillian feels obligated to like and
admire him. Bass tries to, but I believe that Amir makes him
uncomfortable."
"How do you feel about Amir?"
"I think he's a jerk," Harmon said.
"Since Robinson Nevins is black and alleged to be gay, why doesn't Lillian Temple feel obligated to like and admire him?"
"Because he is a relatively conservative black. Which completely confuses Lillian."
"Harder to feel the white person's burden," I said, "if he's not asking for help."
"Exactly," Harmon said. "Basically, Robinson is interested in his
students and his scholarship, but if asked he will tell you that he is
opposed to affirmative action. I have heard him argue that a course,
say, in Black Rage, is not an adequate substitute for a course in, say,
Shakespeare, or American transcendentalists."
"Do you share his view?"
"Pretty much. But whether I did or didn't I could still pay
attention to Robinson because he tries to base his views on what he has
seen and experienced, rather than on a set of reactions preordained by
race or social class. Lillian and maybe Bass, and maybe Amir, though I
frankly don't know what makes Amir tick, seem to feel that this is
behavior unbecoming a black man."
"Kind of rattles their stereotypes," I said.
"Yes, I'm afraid it does."
"Would they lie about Robinson to deny him tenure?"
Harmon thought about that. While he thought about it, I looked past
him out through his window at an MBTA train grinding out of the
station, full of people, mostly students, the train running on elevated
tracks for a while to clear the parking lot below it before it dipped
with angular sinuosity and disappeared into its tunnel.
"Bass would lie, I think, about anything at all if it served his
best interest. Lillian probably would not knowingly lie. She would have
to be able to convince herself that it wasn't a lie. Which she could do
quite easily, since her grip on truth and falsehood is pretty shaky
anyway."
"Who actually told the thing about Robinson?"
"Lillian."
"Did she say where she got it?"
"No."
"How many people believed her?"
"That I can't tell you," Harmon said. "I can tell you that on an
eighteen-member committee, Robinson got only three votes for tenure.
Mine was one of them."
"Will your colleagues be angry with you for talking so freely?" I said.
"I imagine."
"I can avoid mentioning your name."
"Feel free to mention it. If I said it, I'm responsible for it."
"Okay," I said. "You ever play halfback at Michigan?"
"Tommy's a pretty standard nickname for kids named Harmon," he said. "I went to Williams College. I was a wrestler."
"Ah," I said. "That explains the neck."
"And you used to box," he said.
"Which explains the nose," I said.
"And the scar tissue," Harmon said. "You going to talk with Lillian again?"
"Have to," I said. "I need to know where she got her information."
"I'd like to know where she gets most of it," Harmon said.
We shook hands and I left.
Chapter 29
Lee Ferrell and I were driking beer at a bar called The Limerick, near Broad Street.
"I figured you'd order a pink lady," I said.
"I'm trying to pass," Farrell said.
"It's not working," I said.
"Maybe if I wore my gun outside my coat," Farrell said.
"Might help," I said. "Long as it's not color-coordinated."
"Department issue drab," Farrell said. "My off-duty gun is chartreuse."
"Zowie."
"Yeah. You invite me out to exercise your homophobia, or was there something you needed?"
"Mostly the homophobia," I said. "But have you ever heard of a publication called OUTrageous?"
"Yes, I have."
"What do you know about it?"
"It is an obscure journal published by some graduate students which outs prominent gay people."
"You're safe then," I said.
"I'm also out."
"Oh yeah. Is the paper legitimate?"
"I haven't been able to prove that it isn't," Farrell said. "But its editor committed suicide a while ago."
"I know. It's the case I'm on."
"Someone thinks it wasn't suicide?"
"Me," I said.
"So tell me."
I told him why I thought it was murder.
"For obvious reasons, I catch most of the gay squeals," Farrell
said. "If you'll pardon the expression. I caught this one. So as soon
as you got something that won't give giggle fits to an assistant DA,
let me know."
The bartender came down the bar and put a fresh bowl of peanuts in front of us. While he was handy, we ordered two more beers.
"You think there was something wrong with OUTrageous?" I said.
"Nothing I can prove," Farrell said.
"But?"
"But there's some blackmail involved."
"There is," I said.
"Got anyone that will testify to it?"
"No."
"We don't either," Farrell said.
"So, what's your take on `outing'?" I said.
"You start treating people as the means to an end, it's a slippery slope."
"That's what I think. You sure you're gay?"
"Gayer than laughter," Farrell said.
"And younger than springtime."
"You could of got all this from Belson, or Quirk," Farrell said. "Probably did. The gay aspects of this case bothering you?"
"It's a pleasure to watch the work of a trained investigator," I said.
"Yeah, cops are us. What's bothering you?"
I told him about the case.
When I finished, he said, "Guy made a move on Hawk?"
"When Hawk was a kid," I said.
"I didn't know Hawk was ever a kid," Farrell said.
"I knew him when he was a kid," I said. "And I find it hard to imagine."
"You and Hawk were kids together?"
"We fought on the same card when we were eighteen. But Hawk isn't what's bothering me."
"You straight guys are simple tools," Farrell said. "Lemme tell you
what's bothering you. You're chasing along after whatever it is that
you can't quite catch, and every gay person you encounter is sleazy,
crooked, secondrate, and generally unpleasant."
"Or so it has seemed," I said.
"And, being a basically decent guy, despite the smart mouth, you
fear that maybe you are prejudiced and it's clouding your judgment."
"Also true, except for the smart mouth part."
"Same thing happens to me with blacks," Farrell said. "I spend two
months on a drug-related homicide and everybody's black, and
everybody's a vicious sleazebag, and I begin to wonder, is it me?"
"Neither one of us gets to deal with the best parts of a culture," I said.
"No. We deal with the worst. You got a case involving murder and
blackmail, most of the people you meet are going to be scumbags."
"Regardless of race, creed, or color," I said. "Or sexual orientation."
"And not because of race, creed, color, or sexual orientation," Farrell said.
"You mean homos aren't any better than the rest of us?" I said.
"Most of us are," Farrell said, "but not all of us."
"How disappointing."
"I know," Farrell said.
There was a big picture window in the front of the bar. The sun was
west of us now and throwing long shadows onto the street outside. Men
in suits carrying briefcases sidled in for a few fast ones before they
got the train to Dover. It wasn't a place where women came much.
"Shall we have another beer?" I said.
Farrell grinned at me.
"We'd be fools not to," he said.
Chapter 30
I spent the rest of the afternoon in my office with a pad of lined
yellow paper drawing little connection diagrams among the principals in
the Prentice Lamont case. None of them seemed very useful, but that
just made the exercise like all the other ones I had been through.
Maybe it was time to get the cops into it. I knew Quirk when he tried
the window Lamont had jumped from would agree with me that the suicide
smelled bad. But with the cops came the press, and Robinson Nevins
would be frequently mentioned in connection with the murder of a gay
man. This was not, I was pretty sure, what he'd wanted when Hawk
brought him to me.
Twice the phone rang, and both times, when I answered there was
nothing but the sound of someone not talking at the other end. I did
business with enough wackos that it could be one of several, but at the
moment my money was on KC Roth. After the second one I dialed *69 and
the phone rang for a while but no one answered, which meant nothing. KC
could have shut off her answering machine. She could be refusing to
answer. She could have called from a phone booth which was now ringing
to the empty sidewalk. Or it could have been someone else doing these
things.
It was after six when I left the office and walked down Berkeley
Street toward my apartment. When I turned right onto Marlborough Street
I saw her hiding behind a tree across from my apartment. When I got to
my apartment entry I turned and looked over at the tree.
"KC," I said. "You're slightly larger than the tree trunk. I can see you."
She came out from behind the tree and walked toward me. She was
dressed in black. She wore a large black hat, and her face, pale in
contrast to her outfit, was tragic.
"I can't stay away from you," she said.
"Work on it," I said.
"I think of you all the time."
"How about the stalker," I said. "He come back?"
"No. I need to talk with you."
"Go ahead."
"Can we go upstairs?"
"No."
"Afraid?"
"Yes."
She looked up at me with her head lowered. She looked like an old Hedy Lamarr publicity still.
"Of me or yourself?" she said.
"You," I said.
"Damn you, can't you understand how desperate I am. I've been abandoned, betrayed, my husband has left me, I'm being stalked."
"I don't think you're being stalked anymore," I said.
"You caught him?"
"Yep."
"And?"
"I reasoned with him."
"Who?"
"Louis Vincent," I said.
"Louis?"
"Sorry."
"Louis-oh my god," she said and fell forward into my arms.
I held onto her and waited while she cried a little. When she
stopped crying I let her go. She stayed where she was, leaning hard
against me.
"Stand straight," I said.
"I can't," she said. "It's too much, too awful."
I gave her a couple of seconds and when she didn't stop leaning in
to me, I stepped suddenly back away from her. She lurched forward and
caught herself, and got her balance.
When she was on her own balance again her face darkened and she looked at me.
"You unutterable bastard," she said, and turned and strode away.
Her hips swung angrily as she headed toward Arlington Street.
Unutterable, I thought. Not bad.
Chapter 31
Hawk and I were drinking draught beer in a joint across from the
Fleet Center. The Fleet Center had replaced the old Garden, and I could
tell that the joint was trying to go along with the upscale clientele,
because there was a bowl of cashews on the bar. I had several. So did
Hawk.
"Usually it's a fight to see who gets the six cashews in a bowl of mixed nuts," I said.
"Kind of ruins the competition," Hawk said. "When they all cashews."
We drank some beer.
"You got that stalker thing worked out?" Hawk said.
"Yes, I identified the stalker and explained to him why he should stop it."
"Firmly," Hawk said.
"Quite."
"Good," Hawk said. "Don't like stalkers."
"Only problem is now getting rid of the stalkee."
Hawk turned his head slowly and looked at me and his eyes were bright with pleasure.
"She taken a liking to you?"
"You might say."
"Hear victims do that sometimes."
"Sometimes," I said.
"You say she good-looking?"
"Un huh."
"And, you ain't available, being as how you in love and all."
"True."
"Maybe you can divert her my way," Hawk said. "She'll thank you for it."
"I'll keep that option in mind."
We emptied the bowl of cashews, and the bartender came over and refilled it and drew us two more beers. Way upscale.
"How we doing with Robinson?"
"We?"
"Yeah, you and me. We finding out anything?"
"We figure Prentice was killed," I said.
"'Cause of how he couldn't have opened the window," Hawk said.
I nodded.
"And we're pretty sure he was blackmailing people," I said.
"How about at the university?"
"I know that the rumor of his relationship to Prentice was introduced by Lillian Temple and a guy named Bass Maitland."
"Lillian from Cambridge," Hawk said.
"Clearly. And Bass is her boyfriend."
"Lillian got a boyfriend?"
"Maybe when she lets her hair down and takes off her glasses," I said.
"They don't do that in Cambridge," Hawk said.
I shrugged. "We know that both Lillian and Bass are friends with Amir Abdullah," I said.
"Which tell you something about them," Hawk said.
There were still cashews left. I took a couple.
"And we know that Amir had met Prentice because Prentice wrote about him in his little magazine."
"So there a connection from Prentice through Amir to Lillian Cambridge and her boyfriend."
"Bass Maitland. Yeah there is."
We both drank some beer. The bar was nearly empty in the middle of
the afternoon. The television above the bar was dark. There was no
music playing on the jukebox. The light from the street filtered
quietly in through the front windows.
"You know what I thinking?" Hawk said.
"Maybe," I said.
"I thinking that if the kid Prentice banking a quarter of million
out of the blackmail gig then it too good a gig to end when he die."
"And you're thinking it might be a good idea to keep an eye on the ones doing the magazine now."
"Yowzah."
"That would be Walt and Willie."
"You know them?"
"Yes."
"They business partners or are they a couple?"
"Couple, I think."
"So one's in it they probably both in it."
"Maybe," I said.
"They know you too?"
"Yeah."
"So we'll go by tomorrow," Hawk said, "and you point them out to me and I'll watch them for a while."
"Christ," I said, "almost sounds like a plan."
"Do," Hawk said, "don't it."
Chapter 32
Pearl the wonder dog was staying with me while Susan was at a
two-day conference in Atlanta. We were lying in my bed watching the
Braves game on cable when the phone rang.
A woman's voice said, "Is Susan there?"
"No," I said, "she's not. Can I take a message?"
"Does she make a lot of noise when you fuck her?" the voice said.
"Mostly she yells `bravo,"' I said.
"I'll bet she lays there like an old laundry bag," the voice said.
"KC," I said. "Stop being a pain in the ass."
"There's a letter for you," she said, "in your mailbox downstairs."
Then she hung up. I thought about not looking, but that would be
childish, so I got up, put on my pants, stuck a gun in my back pocket,
and went down to look in my mailbox. The letter was there. Hand
delivered obviously, no stamp, and no address, only my name. I took it
and went back upstairs. Pearl was still on the bed though she had
raised her head and was looking annoyed. I got back into bed beside her
and opened the letter. It was handwritten in blue ink by someone who
had been taught that a person was judged on her penmanship.
I think about you and Susan all the time. Is it still romantic or
does she just undress and lay on the bed? Do you take off her clothes
for her, slowly, one garment at a time until she's naked? Are you naked
when you do it? Or do you undress after she's undressed? Does she
respond? Is she lively? Does she know a lot of tricks? Is she kinky? Or
is she just the kind of prude who closes her eyes and lets you do what
you want to her? She is so smart and sarcastic I have often wondered if
she could ever be genuine enough to enjoy sex the way I do. The way we
would, you and I. I would give you everything. Does Susan? I would ask
nothing in return. Does Susan? You could still be with Susan. And have
me on the side. And when you were with me, you might learn things that
Susan can't teach you.
The letter made me uncomfortable. A little girl talking dirty
without using bad words. It always interested me that people had a lot
more trouble writing a dirty word than they did saying it. It was also
very uncomfortable to be the object of salacious fantasy. The idea that
a good-looking woman would think such things about me was attractive.
The reality was embarrassing. It also made me think about why KC had
trouble with men. She thought that it was about sex, when what it was
about was love. It made me sorry for her. I could try to explain but
she wouldn't understand it, and, worse, if she did understand it she
wouldn't believe it.
"KC is doomed," I said to Pearl.
Pearl opened her eyes and looked at me without raising her head. I
didn't follow up the remark so she lost interest and closed her eyes
again. On television Andres Galarraga hit a hanging curveball into the
general area of Buckhead scoring Chipper Jones ahead of him, and the
ball game was over. I clicked off the television and lay quietly beside
Pearl thinking about KC. I wondered if in fact I would learn something
by sleeping with her.
"You never know," I said to Pearl.
Pearl had discerned already that I was not looking for an answer so
she moved her ear slightly to let me know she was listening, but she
didn't open her eyes. I was hungry. I got up and went to the kitchen
and made one and a half ham sandwiches on light rye with dark mustard.
I brought it back into the bedroom with a bottle of Sam Adams White
Ale, got back into bed, gave Pearl her half, and ate my sandwich, and
drank my beer from the bottle.
"We're going to have to do something about KC," I said.
Pearl was engaged with her half sandwich.
"If only I knew what."
Pearl had mustard on her muzzle, she wiped it on the spread as I spoke. I drank some beer and had another bite of sandwich.
"This may be," I said to Pearl, "a job for Susan:"
Pearl stood up, turned around three times, and settled back down
with a large sigh. Clearly it was enough chitchat for the night.
Chapter 33
It was time to pay some more attention to Lillian Temple. I called
the Brandeis alumni office and got her current address from them.
Alumni offices know your address when even the IRS can't find you. I
called the university English department to make sure she wasn't
teaching any night classes. Which she wasn't. The secretary sounded a
bit offended that I would think she might be.
At about six o'clock in the evening I got in my car and drove over
to Cambridge. Susan wasn't due back until the next morning, so I took
Pearl with me. We parked outside Lillian's apartment building on
Kirkland Street and waited. I didn't know what I was waiting for, but I
often didn't. I was trying to figure out a way to get information from
a hostile witness.
Pearl and I watched the sights and sounds of Cambridge pass by the
car. Pearl reacted only to other dogs, and then with hostility,
otherwise she rested her head placidly on the backseat and stared.
"Cambridge was placed here," I said, "across the river from Boston to provide comic relief."
A woman came by with an ugly black dog wearing a bandanna. Pearl barked at her. Or maybe it was her owner.
Across the street Lillian Temple came out of the door to her
building and walked across the street behind the car. It was a cool
night. I cracked the windows.
"I gotta go," I said to Pearl, "you gotta stay. I'll be back."
I locked the car doors and followed Lillian down Kirkland Street
toward Mass Ave. It was still light, but she seemed a single-minded
person, like many in Cambridge, who didn't pay much attention to what
was happening around her. She took no notice of me tagging along
behind. At Mass Ave she turned left and walked toward Harvard Square.
There were some guys in native garb playing Peruvian pipes outside the
Harvard Coop. Three or four people asked me for money. One offered to
sell me a newspaper called Spare Change, "the newspaper by and for the
homeless." There was a guy beating rhythm on the bottom of a series of
different-sized inverted buckets. There were many kids with
ring-pierced body parts and pastel hair hanging around the subway
kiosk. Harvard students, and future Harvard students, parents, faculty,
and staff all moved about the square among the street people ignoring
the traffic and the traffic laws. There was a diverse variety of cops
around the square. MBTA cops hanging at the subway entrance, Cambridge
cops lingering near the corner of JFK and Brattle, a motorcycle cop
with gleaming boots parked near Cardullo's, Harvard cops standing
outside the Holyoke Center near the perpetual chess games.
Lillian turned right at Nini's corner and went down Brattle Street
to The Casablanca bar and restaurant. When I got inside she was at the
bar. It was about 7:20 on Thursday night and the bar was half empty. Or
half full depending on how much you'd been drinking. I slid onto a bar
stool beside her. She paid no attention to me. But she was aware of at
least a male shape beside her because she looked at her watch sort of
obviously to let me know she was waiting for someone and was not
available. She ordered a glass of white wine, making it a longer
process than it might have been by asking what kinds they had and how
much it cost. She settled on a modest California chardonnay. I ordered
a draught beer. I looked around on the bar, no cashews. They didn't
seem to care about becoming upscale. Maybe they already were upscale.
Lillian sipped her wine and looked ostentatiously at her watch again,
lest one of the unaccompanied males, made reckless by animal lust,
proposition her. She made no eye contact with anyone. Everything in her
being vibrated with I'm-waiting-for-someone.
"Excuse me," I said. "Do you come here often?"
She fixed me with a withering stare, which changed slowly into recognition, which changed slowly into anxiety.
"Oh," she said, "it's you."
"Yes it is," I said.
"I'm waiting for someone," she said, and drank some of her wine.
"Really?"
"Yes. Bass, Bass Maitland:"
She said the name as if it would make me slide off the stool and scuttle for the door. I held fast. She drank some more wine.
"While you're waiting," I said, "may I buy you a glass of wine?"
"I… I'd… I would rather you didn't," she said.
"Okay," I said.
I sat and looked at her. She looked at me and looked at her watch
and glanced around the bar casually, the way a rat does when it's
cornered. I drank a little beer. She finished her wine. I was quiet,
still looking at her with a friendly look. Spenser-large but pleasant.
She looked at her empty wineglass. She glanced at me and smiled a half
smile. And glanced quickly down the bar toward the door to remind me
that Bass was imminent. I remained calm.
"Offer still stands," I said.
"Oh, well, very well. It's kind of you."
I gestured to the bartender.
"Martin," I said, "a glass of white wine, for the lady."
"You've been here before," she said.
"I've been everywhere before," I said in perfect imitation of Humphrey Bogart.
She didn't seem to recognize it.
"Really?" she said.
Martin brought the wine and looked at my beer. I shook my head.
"Sure, the other guy is Gary," I said. "Impressive, isn't it."
She smiled politely. Badinage didn't seem her strongest suit. She
drank nearly half of her new glass of wine. Maybe that was her
strongest suit. I didn't say anything. She looked around the bar again.
I had a swallow of beer. She drank most of the rest of her wine. I
nodded at Martin. She checked the doorway, looked at her watch,
finished her wine, and Martin brought her another one.
"Oh, I really couldn't," she said.
"Okay," I said.
She looked at the fresh glass of wine. A trickle of moisture ran down the side of the cold glass.
"I don't mean to be ungracious," she said.
"No offense," I said.
She looked at the wine. I swallowed a little more beer. She picked up the wine and drank some.
"No point in being stubborn," she said and smiled at me thinly.
She was wearing black sandals and a loose ankle-length black dress
with pink and yellow flowers printed on it. Her hair was pulled back
tight to her head and culminated in a long braid. Her skin was pale,
and she had on no makeup except some pink lipstick.
"How are you doing in your, ah, investigation," she said.
"Depends on how you define progress," I said. "I'm no closer to
finding out whether Robinson Nevins got jobbed in his tenure bid, but I
have found out that Prentice Lamont was a blackmailer, and that he was
murdered."
"Murdered?"
"Un huh."
"How do you know that?"
"I detected it."
"And what's this about blackmail?" Lillian said.
She was nearly finished with her third glass of wine and when Gary went by she gestured him for a refill.
"He was blackmailing homosexuals who would rather not be outed," I said.
She finished her previous glass and handed it to Gary as he set the new glass down.
"My God," she said.
"Exactly," I said.
She looked at me uneasily for a moment.
"Did you come here to talk to me?" she said.
"I followed you here," I said.
"Followed?"
"Yep. I need to know who told you that Lamont's suicide was connected to Robinson Nevins."
"I have already told you that is confidential information."
"Not anymore," I said. "I haven't gone to the cops yet, because I'm
trying to save everybody a lot of grief. But if I can't solve this
myself, I will take it to the cops, and you can tell the homicide guys,
who, by the way, are nowhere near as charming as I am."
"Homicide?"
"You are going to have to tell, Professor Temple. You can tell me, now, or you can tell the cops soon."
She looked at the door again, and around the bar, and at her watch,
and drank some wine and turned to me and said, "Difficult choices."
"Not really," I said. "One's easy, one's hard, same outcome."
She stared at me for a moment, looked away, looked down at her wine,
looked back at me, but couldn't hold the took. Staring at the wineglass
she said, "Will he have to know I told?"
"Probably not," I said. "I can't guarantee it, but I won't tell if I don't have to."
She nodded, still staring into the wineglass.
"Amir," she said.
"Amir Abdullah?"
"Yes."
"He told you Prentice Lamont and Robinson Nevins were having an affair?"
"Yes. And that Robinson broke it off cruelly and Prentice killed himself."
"He say how he knew this?"
"No."
"And you took it and reported it whole, as he told it."
"I had no-have no-reason to doubt him. Amir is a very principled man."
I had some reservations about exactly how principled Amir Abaullah
was, but I let them slide, because Bass Maitland had arrived. He was
strolling in from the front door. By the way Lillian was looking at him
he might have been walking on water.
"Bass," she said.
"Hi, Lil," he said in his big round satisfied voice.
He was wearing a seersucker jacket, well-faded blue jeans, a black
polo shirt with the collar turned up, and deck shoes, no socks.
Lillian said, "You remember Mr… the detective we talked to."
"Spenser," I said.
"Oh, absolutely. How are you?"
He gave me the kind of big firm handshake that a big firm man would
give. He was so pleased with himself that it was infectious. I almost
liked him.
"Is this a coincidence," he said with a big smile, "or are you staking us out?"
"Holding your place for you," I said, and stood up.
"Appreciate it."
He took my seat and smiled again, like an affable crocodile. He was
probably a very principled man, too. So were they all, all principled
men. And women. There were few things more annoying than a visibly
principled person. Or more troublesome. Most of the ones I'd met could
have used a little uncertainty to dilute their principled-ness. But it
didn't seem a fruitful topic to discuss with Bass and Lillian, so I
said good-bye and went off to get my dog.
Chapter 34
The call came from KC Roth just after I had settled in to watch the Sox and the Angels from the West Coast.
"Come quickly," she said. "Please. I need you."
She sounded teary.
"What's your problem?"
"Louis."
"What about Louis?"
"He came back."
"Really?"
"Oh, please, come quickly. Please."
"Why?"
"He, he… please come."
"What did he do?"
"He… violated me."
"Do you mean he raped you?"
She was silent.
"Did he rape you?" I said.
"Yes."
"Have you called the police?"
Oh, God no, I can't talk about this with the police. I, please, I have to see you, you're the only one."
"When did this happen," I said.
"Just now. He just left."
"He's gone."
"Yes. He beat me and he violated me."
"Have you been to the doctor?"
"No. I told you. I can't…"
"Don't take a shower," I said. "Don't bathe or wash yourself. Stay
still. I'll be there in half an hour. Will you be all right until then?"
"Yes."
"Okay. When I get there I'm going to take you to the doctor."
"No."
"Unless you agree to that I won't come."
"I… I can't…" She was crying.
"You'll have to promise. Otherwise I'll hang up and call the Reading cops and it'll be you and them."
"No… oh why are you so awful?"
"Promise?"
She was silent, sobbing.
I waited.
"Oh yes, goddamn you," she said and hung up.
I got dressed and drove up to Reading. She was hugging herself
looking out the door waiting for me. Until I saw her I thought she
might be making it up. Now I was pretty sure she wasn't. Someone had
slapped her around pretty good. Her upper lip was swollen and one eye
was puffed. It would be shut by morning. She had on a white tee shirt
and gray sweatpants and moccasins. Her hair was a mess.
"Oh God," she said, and backed away as I came in.
"Come on," I said. "Hospital."
"You're really going to make me?"
"You bet," I said.
I took her arm. She flinched away for a moment. But I kept hold and she relaxed enough to go with me.
The on-call gyno who showed up at the emergency room was a young
woman with red hair and a good backside who whisked into the examining
room, took one look at KC, and whisked me out with one brisk
all-inclusive gesture. I sat in the waiting area and looked at people
with bruises and cuts and breathing problems and stomach pains as they
came and went. I read several ancient copies of People magazine, which
left me feeling like I'd eaten too much fudge.
After about an hour, the gyno came out and said, "Mr. Spenser?"
"Me," I said.
"Come in please."
I went in. KC was in a johnny and those silly slippers that they
give you. Her hair had been combed and her face washed and she seemed a
little foggy. A large black woman in a nurse suit hovered around and
looked at me disapprovingly.
"I'm Dr. Tripp," the red-haired woman said. "Mrs. Roth says I may speak freely with you. What is your relationship to her?"
"Employee," I said.
"In what capacity?"
"I'm a detective. She hired me to prevent this from happening to her."
"She may wish to rethink that," Dr. Tripp said.
"She may," I said. "Was she raped?"
"She was."
"No doubt of it?"
"None. There's vaginal bruising. There's semen. The police have been notified."
KC stared at her.
"No," she said thickly. "I don' wan' that."
"Mrs. Roth, I'm required to," she said. "Neither you nor I have a choice."
"Tranquilizer?" I said.
"Valium. You're not with the police."
"No. I'm a private detective:"
"Really," she said. "Do you know who did this?"
"I think so," I said.
"No. He din't," KC said. "I will swear he din't."
Dr. Tripp stared at her.
"You'll protect the man who did this?"
"I don' know who did," KC said.
Dr. Tripp looked at me. I shrugged.
"I would like to keep her overnight," Dr. Tripp said.
"I think that's a good idea," I said. "Maybe you can put the cops off until tomorrow."
"One reason I want her to stay," Dr. Tripp said.
"Will you stay wi' me?" she said to me. "I won' stay 'less you stay wi' me."
"It's permitted," Dr. Tripp said.
"Oh good," I said.
Spending the night sitting in a chair by KC Roth's bedside was about
as appealing as a Howard Stern film festival. I took in a lot of air
through my nose and let it out the same way. Dr. Tripp and the black
nurse and KC all stared at me with various degrees of male-oriented
hostility.
"Sure," I said. "Be glad to."
Chapter 35
In the morning, under the stern gaze if Dr. Tripp, the Reading cops
were solicitous, and KC was uninformative, and I was tired. KC insisted
that she didn't know her assailant. The cops clearly did not believe
her but couldn't figure out why she'd protect him, and neither could I.
They had a young female assistant from the Middlesex DA's office who
seemed bright and sympathetic and was pretty clever in some of her
questions but not bright enough, or apparently sympathetic enough. KC
refused to change her story and finally resorted to crying, which
worked. The crying may have been sincere. She had been beaten and
raped, but I also knew that she could cry at will, and life had made me
cynical.
After the cops left and the bright young sympathetic DA went with
them, Dr. Tripp told KC that a social worker would stop by to talk with
her in a while. And that Dr. Tripp felt that KC should stay another
night. KC nodded. Her crying had dwindled to sniffling. She patted her
unswollen eye with a Kleenex and blew her nose and sat up a little
higher in the bed.
"Keep that eye cold," Dr. Tripp said as she went out.
We were alone. I handed KC one of the compresses from the tray on her bedside table. She held it against her nearly closed eye.
"No one here but you and me," I said. "I won't tell, you have my word on it, but I have to be sure. You said it was Vincent."
She started to cry again. Not boo boo, more sniff sniff, but still crying. She seemed to be hiding behind the cold compress.
"Dip that in the ice water," I said. "It was, wasn't it?"
She cried some more.
"Damn it, KC, yes or no? You don't have to speak. Just nod. You said it was Vincent."
Nod.
"Thank you," I said.
We were quiet. She sniffled a little more and stopped.
"Will you kill him for me?" she said.
"No," I said. "But I'll make sure he leaves you alone."
"You promise?"
"I promise."
"I think he's a little crazy," she said. "You know how it's crazy time when a romance breaks up."
"Um hmm."
"I can count on you, can't I?"
"Yes."
"I feel as if I've known you all my life."
"You haven't," I said, "and you're a little crazy yourself, right now. But you'll be better."
"Of course I'm crazy," she said. "What I've gone through. I have a right to be crazy."
"Of course you do," I said. "But only for a while."
The social worker stuck her head around the partly open door.
"Can I come in?" she said.
"Tell her yes," KC said to me.
"Come in," I said.
The social worker was a thin-faced black-haired woman wearing round glasses with green rims.
"I'm Amy Coulter," she said, "from Social Services. Dr. Tripp asked me to come and see you."
"Sit down," I said. "I'm leaving anyway."
"Where are you going?" KC said.
"Home," I said. "Sleep."
"You'll come back?"
"Like esophageal reflux," I said.
I always tried to make my similes appropriate to the ambiance.
Surprisingly neither Amy Coulter nor KC remarked on it. Too bad Dr.
Tripp wasn't there. She'd appreciate my kind of quality medical humor.
Chapter 36
I stopped for coffee and a couple of donuts, and then went straight
to Susan's house and let myself into her living space. I submitted to
five minutes or so of lapping and jumping about from Pearl before I got
her quieted down enough so I could take off my clothes and lie on the
bed in my shorts. Always game for a nap, Pearl jumped up on the bed,
turned around several times, and got ready to lie down beside me. I was
asleep before she did.
When I woke up Pearl was gone. I looked at my watch. It was 6:20 in
the evening. I got up and walked around the house. I noticed that
Susan's purse was on the front hall table, and Pearl's leash was gone.
I went back into the bedroom and took a long shower and shaved in the
shower and put on clean clothes from the wardrobe stash I kept at
Susan's place, and was pouring two ounces of Dewar's over a lot of ice
in a tall glass when Pearl and Susan came back from their walk. Pearl
bounded about the way she does when she knows supper is imminent, and
Susan, more restrained, came over and gave me a kiss on the mouth.
"Good to see you up and about," Susan said. "When I came up from the office and found you I thought you might be dead."
I poured club soda over the ice in my tall glass, getting it as
close to the top as I could, without it being so full I couldn't pick
it up without spilling.
"Did you have a plan for how to deal with that?" I said.
"If you were still dead when I came back from walking the baby," Susan said, "I was going to call someone."
I got a bag of Kibbles 'N Bits dog food out of the cupboard and put
a cup and a half's worth into Pearl's bowl. I knew it was Pearl's bowl
because it said Pearl in violet script on the outside.
Susan said, "She likes it with cheese, remember."
I got some shredded cheese out of the refrigerator and sprinkled
some over the food and put it down on the floor. Pearl did like it with
cheese. She also liked it without cheese, or with sawdust. Susan went
into her bedroom, and I sat at the counter and sipped my scotch and
soda. Susan came out in a while barefooted, in a dark blue tank top and
white shorts, with her hair combed, and wearing fresh lip gloss.
"Got any snacks?" I said. "I appear to have slept through lunch."
Susan got an elegant wine goblet sort of the color of sea mist from
another cabinet and poured some Merlot into it, and took a small sip.
"I have some rice cakes," Susan said. "And some broccoli sprouts,
and…" She got up and opened her refrigerator door and gazed
in…"half a bagel."
"Gee, a cornucopia," I said.
Susan had great glassware and wonderful china and beautiful silverware and no food.
"And some shredded cheese, but that's for the baby…" She
closed the refrigerator and opened the cupboard. "… and some
bite-sized shredded wheat."
She turned and looked at me optimistically, as if I might like shredded wheat and broccoli sprouts with my scotch and soda.
"That's okay," I said. "We can order out."
"Chinese?" Susan said.
"Yes, a bunch of everything, and tell them to hurry. In a little while it will be a medical emergency."
Susan called and ordered a bunch of everything including some
broccoli, sauce on the side, and steamed rice. Then she came back and
sat across the counter from me and took a sip of her wine.
"What I don't get," I said, "is this creep beats her up and rapes her and she won't tell the cops."
"But she admitted it to you."
"Yes."
"Well, that aside, consider it from her perspective," Susan said.
She was leaning her elbows on the counter holding her sea mist wine
goblet in both hands, looking at me over the top of it. I had a fresh
drink.
"Okay," I said, "she leaves her husband for the man of her dreams and the man of her dreams turns out to be an abusive rapist."
"Bad mistake," Susan said. "But to report him to the police is to certify that mistake."
"So?"
"So maybe it means her husband wins and she loses," Susan said.
"And she'd rather shield her rapist than lose to her husband?"
"It's not just that she loses, it's that he has the triumphant
gratification of seeing her be humiliated for her own folly. It might
be worse for her than rape."
"So why does she tell me?"
"Because she has to tell someone. Because she needs you to protect
her. Because she somehow has learned already that you won't judge her.
Because you may have replaced, what's his name?"
"Louis Vincent."
"You may have replaced Louis Vincent as the man of her new dreams."
"Well," I said. "You would certainly know what that's like."
Susan paid no attention. When she was thinking she was filled completely by the subject of her thoughts.
"And," Susan said and smiled slightly, "because you knew anyway. And
she'd cozy up to you by making you the only one she'd tell."
The doorbell rang. Pearl went ballistic as she always does when the
doorbell rings. I went downstairs and paid for the Chinese food and
brought it back up. The smell of fresh delivered Chinese food almost
defines anticipation. Pearl barked once at me when I came into the
living room before she realized I wasn't a bell-ringing intruder, then
got a whiff of the food and became very focused. I put it on the
counter prepared to eat it from the cartons, but of course Susan had
set the counter and put out place mats and silverware and a pair of
ivory chopsticks for herself. She liked to eat with chopsticks. I did
not. Susan served.
"If she won't tell the cops, of course, this becomes my problem."
"Oh really," Susan said.
"What do you mean `oh really'?"
"Given what we know about her, and the letter you showed me," Susan said, "isn't that exactly what she would want?"
I thought about it.
"Yes," I said. "But she couldn't have contrived the rape."
"No, I'm sure she didn't. But she has exploited it, consciously or not, to serve what she thinks is her best interest"
"Which is me."
"Yes."
"Because I'm so debonair?"
"Because KC is a cliche. For whatever reasons, she needs a knight to
gallop in and save her, and if it's a debonair one, so much the better."
"My strength is as the strength of ten…"
"I know," Susan said. "What did you promise her."
"What makes you think I promised her anything?"
"Because I have been with you for a very long time, Sir Percival. What did you promise her."
"That I'd make sure he left her alone."
"Perfect," Susan said. "What are you going to do?"
"I spoke with him once," I said.
"And it didn't take," Susan said. "How vigorous are you prepared to be?"
"I gave my word," I said.
"Perhaps Hawk," Susan said.
"No. Hawk didn't give his word. I gave mine. I can't ask him to do something because I don't want to do it:"
"No," Susan said, "I know you can't."
We were silent. Pearl put both front paws on the edge of the counter
and gazed at the food. I gave her an egg roll and she dropped down and
dashed to the couch to eat it.
"Vincent must be in the grip of his own pathologies," Susan said. "You are able to frighten most people off."
"I know."
"You won't kill him," Susan said.
It wasn't a question.
"No."
"Perhaps you and Hawk could broach the subject to him together."
I nodded.
"Many white men are more afraid of black men than they are of other
whites," I said. "If he's one of them we could exploit his racism."
"My thought exactly," Susan said.
"Can you do anything to help KC?"
"You mean professionally?"
"Whatever. She sure as hell needs something."
"I can't be her shrink," Susan said. "I've known her too long, and I am not, ah, above the fray."
"You're not?"
"You may recall a few phrases from the lovely little mash note she
stuck in your mailbox. Such as: `when you were with me, you might learn
things that Susan can't teach you."'
"That means nothing to me," I said.
"It means something to me," Susan said.
"Are we feeling a little unprofessional jealousy?" I said.
"We are feeling a little unprofessional desire to kick her fat little ass," Susan said.
I was drinking scotch and soda and eating chicken with cashews and the girl of my dreams was jealous. I smiled happily.
Chapter 37
Hawk came into my office at about 3:30 carrying a brown paper bag.
With him was a barrel-bodied black man with short, slightly bowed legs
and long arms. The black man had gray hair and the kind of amused eyes
that Robert Benchley used to have. Hawk put the bag on my desk and
pulled one of my office chairs around, and the gray-haired black man
sat in it.
"Spenser," Hawk said. "Bobby Nevins."
I stood and came around and shook hands with Nevins. Hawk went to
the Mister Coffee machine on top of my file cabinet and began to make
some coffee. I looked in the paper bag. There was a large square
loaf-shaped something wrapped in aluminum foil.
"Corn bread," Bobby Nevins said. "Hawk always like corn bread."
Bobby Nevins was a legend. He'd trained fighters for more than fifty
years. All of his fighters could fight. All of them were in shape. None
left the ring broke. None were strolling queer street. In a business
riddled with charlatans his word was good. Hawk had the coffee brewing
and came back and sat down in the other client chair.
"Bobby in town to see about how we doing with his kid," Hawk said.
I nodded, thinking about the corn bread.
"And I got some things you don't know 'bout yet."
"Would everybody like me to open the corn bread up while the coffee's brewing?" I said.
"Sure," Hawk said. "Okay with you, Bobby?"
"'Course," Nevins said.
His voice came from deep in his chest and seemed to resonate in his
barrel body before it emerged. I unwrapped the corn bread and set it on
the unfolded foil in the middle of my desk. It smelled good. From my
desk drawer I got a large switchblade knife, which I had once taken
away from an aggressive but clumsy drug dealer, and now used as a
letter opener. With it I cut three squares of corn bread. Hawk brought
over the coffee. I took some corn bread. And chewed it carefully and
swallowed it and drank some coffee.
"My compliments to the chef," I said.
"Always liked to cook a little," Nevins said. "Now I gotten older
got more time. Hawk says this thing about my boy is turning into a hair
ball."
"Hawk's right," I said. "Thing is I still don't know quite why he
was jobbed on the tenure thing. It seems like the only thing I can't
find out. Meanwhile I've got a murder and some blackmailing-which, as
far as I know, has nothing to do with your kid."
"Anybody paying you for this?"
"Corn bread will do," I said.
"Ain't right, you not getting paid."
"I owe Hawk a favor."
Hawk snorted.
"A favor?"
"A favor or two," I said.
Nevins nodded. He ate some more corn bread and drank some more
coffee. Hawk got up and took Nevins' cup and refilled it, pouring in a
little milk from the mini-refrigerator, stirring in two spoonfuls of
sugar. He brought the cup back and set it in front of Nevins on the
corner of my desk. Nevins picked it up and took a sip and held the cup.
"Thank you, Hawk," he said.
Hawk nodded. Nevins looked at me.
"You think Robinson is queer?"
"Don't know," I said.
"I don't either. Hard thing for a boy to tell his father, I imagine."
I nodded.
"He's forty years old," Nevins said, "ain't never been married."
"Hawk and I have never been married either," I said.
"How you know about me?" Hawk said.
"Who would marry you?"
"Okay," Hawk said. "You got a point."
Nevins paid no attention.
"Thing is it don't matter much," he said. "Still my son."
"Yes," I said.
"I was forty-two when he was born," Nevins said. "Coulda been his
grandfather. His mother was only twenty-three, schoolteacher, fresh out
of college. I coulda been her daddy."
Hawk and I were silent, drinking coffee, listening to Nevins. There was no age in Nevins' voice, no weakness in him.
"She left when she was thirty."
"Another man?" I said.
"Another one and another one," Nevins said. "Probably still going on."
There was no resentment in Nevins' voice either, not remorse, nor anger, nor self-pity, only the sound of retrospection.
"Always sent her money for Robinson, and, I say this for her, she
never kept me from seeing him on the weekend. But I know she didn't
like boxing, and I pretty sure she didn't like me, and I don't believe
she kept quiet 'bout it to Robinson. So be hard for Robinson to feel
real close to me. He was a real smart little kid. He loved to read. He
was kind of scared of the fighters. I used to take him to the museum
and the public library and places, never read much myself, but I knew
that was where his life was going to go. Too bad I didn't know more
about things like that. We could never talk much. Spent a lot of money
getting him through Harvard College and all those other schools he went
to so he could be a professor, and I think he knows that. Probably
could tell his mother he was queer, but I don't think he could tell me."
"You want us to find that out?" Hawk said.
Nevins thought about this for a while, sipping his coffee slowly, looking past the cup at the long corridor of time past.
"No," he said. "Don't matter."
We were quiet.
"Tell me 'bout the murder and blackmail."
"I'll tell you what I know," I said, "and what I'm guessing."
Which I did.
Nevins didn't say a word as I talked. His gaze was steady and
somehow both benign and stern. When I was through I looked at Hawk.
"You got something?" I said.
"Un huh."
"Were you planning to share it?"
"Un huh."
I cut another small piece of corn bread. I had learned from Susan
that cutting off one small piece at a time was better for you even if
you ate the whole thing one small piece at a time. Hawk got himself
some more coffee. He looked at Nevins.
"Bobby?" he said.
Nevins shook his head. Hawk looked at me. I shook my head. Hawk came back and sat down.
"Been watching Walt and Willie," Hawk said.
He looked at Nevins.
"They the people inherited OUTrageous I told you about."
Nevins nodded. He was nearly motionless as he sat. Time made no difference to him.
"Might be they knew about the blackmail. Might be they carrying it on. So I'm watching them, see what develops."
"Sneak up on them in the dark better, too," I said.
"Like you could in a snowstorm," Hawk said. "Which one is the little blond queen?"
"Willie."
"He stepping out on Walt," Hawk said.
"Walt know this?"
"Don't know. Don't seem mad when he around Willie. Want to know who he stepping out with?"
"Yes I do."
"Your friend and mine, Amir Abdullah."
"Oh ho," I said.
"Oh ho?"
"Yes. That's what you say if you're a top-level sleuth and a clue falls out of a tree and hits you on the head."
Hawk looked at Nevins.
"Honkies are strange people, Bobby."
"What's the clue?" Nevins said.
"The connection between the OUTrageous folks and the tenure folks.
Amir's the one who told the tenure committee that Robinson had an
affair with Prentice Lamont. OUTrageous had a list of possible people
to out with your son's name on it and the phrase `research continues."'
"So what does that mean?"
"Research continues?"
"No, what is the, ah, significance, of all that?"
"Hell, Mr. Nevins, I don't know. It's just more than we knew before.
And maybe Abdullah got it from Willie, or maybe Willie got it from
Abdullah-which would be my guess."
"Don't help my son get tenure."
"Not yet."
"Strange system," Nevins said. "Keep you for life or they fire you."
"I know."
"Robinson wants to be a professor at the university," Nevins said.
"We going to get that for him, Bobby," Hawk said.
I would have been happier if he hedged it a little, but Hawk wasn't much for hedging.
"I hope so," Nevins said.
Me too.
Chapter 38
I was taking a walk. Sometimes when I had to think I liked to walk
along the river. Today was especially good for that because it was
raining pleasantly. It was warm and there was no wind, just the steady
moderate rain coming straight down and dimpling the dark surface of the
river. I had on jeans and running shoes and a windbreaker and my old
Boston Braves baseball hat. Impervious.
Before I got Robinson Nevins tenure at the university, I had the
issue of Louis Vincent and KC Roth to resolve. I didn't have it in me
to walk up and kill him. I'd killed people. And maybe I would again,
but I'd always thought it was because I had to. Hawk would do it. He
was more practical than I was. He didn't wait until he had to. He'd do
it if it seemed a good solution to the problem-which it did. But I
couldn't ask Hawk to do things I was too squeamish to do. What I needed
to do was figure out what I was not too squeamish to do.
I crossed the little footbridge over Storrow Drive and onto the
Esplanade and turned west and strolled upriver. The narrow strip of
parkland ran along the Boston side of the Charles River all the way out
to Watertown and beyond. In good weather it was crowded with people
walking and jogging and walking dogs and bicycling and Rollerblading
and sunbathing. Today, except for a few people who owned intrepid dogs,
the space was pretty much mine. Not everyone understood about a walk in
the rain. Pearl, for instance, despite her great hunting lineage, would
not walk in the rain. Even for a cookie.
Squeamish was actually the wrong word for my hesitation. I would
have, in fact, loved to throw Louis Vincent off a bridge. But it seemed
somehow the wrong thing to do, and while I tried not to get hung up on
abstractions more than I had to, I couldn't seem to get around this
one. I could tell the cops he was the man, but as long as KC wouldn't
testify, what could we do that was legal? Hitting him hadn't worked. I
could hit him more, and harder. Which would be heartwarming, but if he
was as obsessive as he seemed, it might merely wind him tighter. I
needed KC to testify.
The racing crews in their eight-man shells were on the river, men's
teams and women's teams, which meant, I supposed, that some of the
shells were eight-woman shells, or that all of the shells were
eight-person shells. The crew coaches, in motorboats, hovered near them
like sheepdogs. During rest periods the rowers slumped over their oars
as if they were dead, letting the rain beat down on them without regard.
I thought about Susan's analysis. KC's refusal to identify Louis
Vincent seemed to be as much about her ex-husband as it was about Louis
Vincent.
At the B.U. Bridge I turned back, my collar up, my Braves hat pulled
down over my eyes, liking the feel of the rain as it came down in a
straight easy fall, watching the idea coalesce. By the time I got back
to my place the idea was nearly complete, or as complete as it could be.
I stripped off my wet clothes and tossed them in the washer, took a
hot shower, toweled off, and put on fresh clothes. Then I went to the
kitchen. It was 5:20 in the evening. Time enough for the first drink of
the day, maybe past time. I filled a pint glass with ice, put in two
ounces of scotch, and filled it with soda. I took the first sip. The
first sip wasn't the best thing in the world, but it was in the top
five. And trying to recapture the first sip is a reminder that maybe
you really can't go home again. I picked up the glass and inspected my
food supply. It was embarrassingly similar to Susan's. But there was a
head of garlic and a can of black beans and some linguine and some
biscuits left over from breakfast.
I put the biscuits in a low oven to warm. The coalescing idea
unified and I knew what I was going to do. I drank a toast to my brain.
Then I tucked a dish towel into my belt to make a little apron, the way
my father used to, got out a knife and separated the garlic head into
cloves and peeled the cloves. I cooked the garlic on low heat with some
olive oil in a fry pan for a while, and while it was cooking I heated a
large pot of water. When the water boiled I added a dash of olive oil
and a little salt and put the linguine in. When the garlic cloves were
soft I added some sherry, and as it began to cook down I opened the can
of black beans and drained off the liquid and dumped them in with the
sherry and olive oil and garlic and put a lid on the fry pan. I toasted
my coalesced idea again and the glass was empty and I mixed another. It
was still good, but it wasn't the first one. The first one wouldn't be
available until tomorrow.
I sprinkled a little cilantro in among the black beans, garlic,
olive oil, and sherry. When everything was cooked I tossed the black
beans with the linguine and got out the biscuits and sat at my kitchen
counter by myself and ate the pasta and sipped the scotch and soda and
wondered if my plan would work. There was a lot I couldn't control, but
it was a better plan than any of the others, except maybe just shooting
Louis Vincent. But since I didn't think I should do that, and wouldn't
ask Hawk to do it, and had promised KC that Louis Vincent would bother
her no more, and since I had had two scotch and sodas, it seemed a very
fine plan indeed, with every chance of succeeding. Of course, a lot
depended on Burton Roth. But he'd seemed a solid guy when I'd met him,
and I had hopes. On the other hand, if I didn't have hopes what the
hell was I doing in this business. I could always make a fine living
creating great suppers out of nothing.
Chapter 39
Early spring had drifted into late spring and it was still raining
the next morning. On my way to work, with my collar up and my hat
pulled down, looking dashingly noir, I stopped into a store on Newbury
Street called Bjoux, where I had been conspiring with the owner, a tall
good-looking woman named Barbara Jordan, about a surprise birthday gift
for Susan. Then I went to the office, and took time to clean up a few
old business things still unresolved. I answered some mail, looked at
my bank statements, and called a guy named Bill Poduska to ask him if
he was going to charge me for helicopter services on a missing-child
case I'd done last winter. I was hoping he might say it was pro bono,
because the client hadn't paid me, even though I'd gotten the kid back.
Bill apparently knew that, because he said there was no charge. I said
thank you. Then I made some coffee, looked out at the rain for a while.
It was an especially good rain because there was thunder and lightning
with it and that always gave the weather a kind of charged tension that
I enjoyed.
After watching the lightning and counting the seconds until I heard
the thunder and figuring out by doing that how far away the storm was,
and wondering if that actually was accurate, and then wondering why I
in fact cared, I decided I had stalled on my plan long enough and
called Burton Roth with somewhat less confidence than I had felt after
two drinks the night before. We talked for half an hour and I had been
right after all. He understood the problem and was prepared to help me
solve it. Never a doubt in my mind. I told Roth I'd get back to him,
and hung up just before Hawk came in with raindrops still beaded on his
lavender silk trench coat.
"Got a plan?" Hawk said.
"Got a million," I said. "Or are you talking about a workable plan?"
Hawk unbuttoned his coat and went and stood looking out my office
window at the rain falling on the corner of Berkeley and Boylston.
"Bobby worried about his kid," Hawk said.
"Even after he met me?" I said.
"Bobby don't know about you."
"I'm not so sure about me sometimes either."
"I gave him my word," Hawk said.
"Yeah. Thanks."
"So what you got in mind?"
"Well, I was thinking about pitching it in and becoming a
caterer-you know? Leftovers R Us. Come in, take whatever there is in
the house, fix up a tasty meal?"
Hawk continued to stare at the rain through my window. I went over
and stood beside him and looked down. Puddles had formed and the
raindrops hitting the puddles made tiny eruptions. The lightning
skidded along the arch of the sky and shortly afterward the thunder
cracked. It was dandy.
"I'd target the WASP market," I said.
Hawk nodded. The rain slithered in thick rivulets down the outside
of my window. It diffused the lightning flash prismatically for a
transitory moment.
"Be about a hundred million white guys in this country," Hawk said as the electricity crackled in the sky, "I end up with you."
"Talk about luck," I said.
"Talk about," Hawk said. "What we gonna do about Bobby's kid?"
"Do what we always do," I said. "Keep dragging on the end we got hold of, see what we pull out of the hole."
"What end we got hold of?"
"Willie and Amir."
"So we follow them and see what's at the other end."
"Exactly," I said.
"That your plan?"
"You bet," I said.
"And you do this for a living?"
"So far," I said.
"We gonna share?" Hawk said.
"Yes, you take Amir, I'll take Willie."
"Okay I give Amir a swat, I get the chance?"
"Long as he doesn't spot you tailing him," I said.
Hawk turned from the window.
"How you doing with that other gig, the stalker?"
"I'm working on it," I said.
"You doing as good with that as you are with this?" Hawk said.
"No."
Hawk nodded and smiled.
"Leftovers R Us," he said. "Might catch on."
On the street below, people were shielding themselves from the rain
by various means, including but not limited to umbrellas. A woman went
by holding her purse over her head, another used a briefcase. Several
Boston Globes and at least one Boston Herald were also deployed.
"I figure I can buy a couple cases of cream of mushroom soup," I said. "And I'm in business."
"The basis of WASP cuisine," Hawk said. "While I walking around behind Amir Abdullah, you got any idea what I'm looking for?"
"We'll know it when we see it," I said. "We need to know two
things-who threw Prentice Lamont out the window, and why Amir was
trying to sink Robinson Nevins' tenure."
"'Cause Amir a creep?" Hawk said.
"Good enough for you and me, maybe not good enough for the university tenure committee."
"They overrule the English department," Hawk said.
"They can, Susan told me, and so can the dean," I said. "Though Susan says neither one likes to."
"So Robinson got a couple more shots."
"If we can come up with something," I said.
"We up against it I can always hold Amir upside down," Hawk said, "and shake him until something falls out."
"That's plan B," I said. "First we find out what we can by watching.
Otherwise while you're shaking him other people might scoot out of
sight."
"What other people?"
"That's what we're watching to find out."
"Why you think there's other people?"
"Leads somewhere," I said. "Assume there aren't any other people, and we don't know what to do next."
"You caterers do be some deep philosophical motherfuckers," Hawk said.
"We do," I said.
Chapter 40
Before we could unleash ourselves on Amir and Willie, we had Louis
Vincent to attend to. It was a tricky one to time. I had shared my plan
with Sgt. O'Connor of the Reading cops. He was keeping an eye on KC and
reported that she was home. Burt Roth had given me his beeper number
and said he'd be standing by. So it was all in place, at least for the
moment, and if Louis Vincent came out to lunch this noontime we might
be in business. If he didn't we'd have to innovate.
He did. I was standing in a doorway on the opposite corner of State
and Congress so I could see him whichever door he came out. State
Street was one way, so Hawk was idling his Jaguar, on the corner of
State and Broad, two blocks down. Vincent walked out onto Congress
Street wearing a Burberry trench coat and a tweed hat and turned the
corner and headed down State Street toward the waterfront. I let him
see me and as soon as he did he ran. It was a panic run. Hawk turned up
onto State Street and was idling at the curb when I caught Vincent.
Vincent tried to kick me and I turned my left hip and deflected the
kick and nailed him on the chin with a right hook. He sagged, I caught
him. Hawk was out of his car and had the back door open. I shoved
Vincent in, and went in after him. Hawk was back in and behind the
wheel by the time I got straightened up, and we were off to Reading. A
couple of pedestrians stared after us.
Vincent took a while to get over the right hook, so he was quiet as
we went down past North Station and through the old West End. As Hawk
went up onto the expressway at Leverett Circle, Vincent said, "What are
you doing?"
"Shut up."
"You can't… "
I slapped him across the face. It was more startling than painful. He put his hands up in case I was going to do it again.
"Shut up."
Vincent was a quick study, one slap was enough. He didn't say
another word as we went up Route 93. Hawk dialed Burt Roth's beeper,
punched in his car phone number, and hung up. As we were passing
Medford Square the car phone rang, Hawk spoke into it a moment, and
hung up. Vincent looked worried but didn't say anything.
"He'll be there," Hawk said to me without turning his head.
Vincent looked more worried when we turned off at the Reading exit
and even more worried when we headed north on Route 28 toward KC's
place. A Reading police car was parked out front. Roth was in the
parking lot in a green Subaru station wagon. When we pulled in, I got
out and waved at the Reading cruiser. Sgt. O'Connor gave me a thumbs-up
sign out the window as he pulled away. Hawk had gotten out and was
standing by Vincent's door. I went around and opened it and jerked my
head at Vincent.
"Where we going?" Vincent said.
Hawk reached in, got hold of his hair, and dragged him out headfirst.
"Hate a rapist," Hawk said.
Burt Roth got out of his car and walked toward us. And stopped in
front of us and looked at Vincent. Roth's face had no expression.
"You know each other?" I said.
"Know of," Roth said. "We've never met."
"Who are you?" Vincent said.
"Burt Roth."
"Jesus."
"Let's go inside." I said.
"I don't want to go in," Vincent said.
I took his arm and moved him firmly toward the door. As I did so he had half an eye on Hawk.
"Nobody here cares anything at all about what you want, Louis."
I rang the doorbell and KC answered. Even here, in the face of what
must have been a genuinely shocking event, her reaction had a
theatricality about it. She stared and then opened her mouth and then
staggered back several steps into her living room. Burt Roth went first.
"It's okay, KC," he said. "Everything is okay."
Her eyes were wide and she made small noises which were not quite
crying. It was as if she couldn't get enough air into her lungs to
actually cry. I moved Vincent in ahead of me and Hawk followed us and
closed the front door and folded his arms and leaned on it. Talk about
theatrical.
KC said, "Burt," in a strangled kind of voice. She didn't look at Vincent.
Roth spoke softly and fast.
"This is kind of like an intervention, KC. People who care about you gathered together to help you get past a hard thing."
"You care about me?"
"Of course. No false messages. Our life together is over, I believe.
We each have another life to live. But I've known you most of my adult
life. We share a child. Of course I care about you."
She was trying so hard to pretend that Vincent wasn't there that it made all her motions stiff as she avoided seeing him.
"I don't even know that man," she said looking at Hawk. Hawk smiled
at her. When he chose to he could look as warm and supportive as a
cinnamon muffin.
"He's with me," I said. "We brought Vincent."
When I said his name it was as if I had jabbed her with an electrode. She winced visibly and looked very hard at her ex-husband.
"What are you going to do?" she said.
"This man raped you, KC," Burt Roth said quietly. "You are too important to let someone misuse you that way."
"You know… ?"
"I know he did, KC."
"I never… " Vincent started.
Hawk put his hand on Vincent's shoulder and said, "Shhh."
Vincent seemed to freeze when Hawk spoke to him.
"You made a mistake with him, maybe," Burt Roth said. "Everybody
makes mistakes. You probably made one with me, too. But they are
honorable mistakes. Mistakes made for love. The best kind of mistake to
make."
KC was staring at him as if she'd never seen him or anything quite
like him. I wasn't sure how much of what he was saying he believed, but
he was saying it well.
"And I'm determined," Roth went on, "that you will not have to suffer as you've suffered for making honest mistakes."
"God," KC said, "I have suffered."
"And if we don't put this creep where he belongs." He nodded at Vincent and paused.
I admired how clever he was at avoiding specifics.
"If we don't," Roth said, "will he rape you again? Who else will he rape?"
He paused again, and looked steadily at KC.
"Maybe one day he'll rape Jennifer," Roth said softly.
KC made kind of a moan, and stepped back again and sat down on the
edge of her couch as if her legs had given way. Again I believed her
sincerity, without missing the contrived quality of it. Maybe she was
simply an endless series of contrivances and when they had all been
peeled away she could cease to exist.
I said, "Did Louis Vincent rape you, KC?"
She stared at Roth for a time as if I hadn't spoken, then, for the first time, she looked at Vincent.
"Yes," she said.
Behind her eyes genuine hatred crackled, for a moment, like heat lightning.
"Yes he did," she said.
Vincent started to speak, looked at Hawk, and didn't. His gaze
shifted rapidly around the room, as if he could find a place to run. He
couldn't. I walked over to the end table beside the couch and picked up
her phone and called Sgt. O'Connor. Roth sat down on the sofa beside
KC. She put her hand out and he took it. Hawk looked at Roth and nodded
his head once in approval. For Hawk that was the Croix de Guerre.
O'Connor came on the line.
"Spenser," I said. "We have your rapist if you'd like to come up and get him."
I hung up the phone and turned. Vincent was staring at me. Suddenly
his eyeballs rolled back in their sockets and he fell backward. Hawk
stepped aside and let him fall against the wall and slide to the floor.
He lay on his back with his eyelids open over his white eyeballs and
his mouth ajar. We all looked at him.
"Rapist appears a little vaporish," Hawk said.
Faintly I could hear the police sirens coming our way.
Chapter 41
I met Robert Walters of Walt and Willie in the late afternoon at a gay bar in the South End near the Ballet.
"Well, the world's straightest straight boy," Walt said when I came in.
He was drinking red wine. And I could tell that he'd been doing it for a while.
"Good to be the best at something." I said.
The bartender had bright blond hair and an earring. The bar had Brooklyn Lager on draught. I ordered one.
"So what you want to talk about, Mister World's Straightest?"
I saw no reason to vamp on the subject.
"I'd like to talk about the blackmail doodle you guys were running with OUTrageous."
"Huh?"
"I'd like to talk about the blackmail doodle you guys were running with OUTrageous."
"Doodle?"
"You guys were discovering closeted gay people and threatening to
out them if they didn't give you money. I'd like us to talk about that."
Walt finished the rest of his wine and motioned to the bartender.
"I'm going to switch to martinis, Tom."
"Belvedere," the bartender said, "up with olives."
"You got it," Walt said.
I waited. Walt watched as the bartender mixed his martini and
brought it to him. The bartender put out the little napkin, set the
martini on it, and went away. Walt picked up the martini carefully and
took a sip, and said "ahh." Then he looked at me, and as I watched him,
his eyes began slowly to fill up with tears.
"Whose idea was it?" I said.
Tears were running down Walt's face.
"Willie and I have been together for seven years," he said. His voice was shaky.
"Long time," I said.
Susan and I had been together for more than twenty, with little time
out in the middle. So I didn't actually think seven was a long time,
but it seemed the right thing to say at the moment.
"I never cheated on him," Walt said.
He drank most of his martini and then stared wetly into the glass, twisting it slowly by the stem as he talked.
"And here he is stepping out with Amir Abdullah," I said.
Walt looked at me as if I'd just leaped a tall building at a single bound.
"I'm a detective," I said. "I know stuff."
Walt finished his martini and gestured for another.
"That son of a bitch," he said. "He used to be Prentice's boyfriend, you know that?"
Walt was monitoring the construction of his second martini, and when
it arrived he sampled it immediately. He wasn't paying much attention
to me.
"So what about the blackmail?"
"Willie and I didn't know anything about it. We were serious about OUTrageous."
He studied his martini again for a time. His face was wet with tears.
"Then when Prentice died, Amir came to Willie and me. He explained
what Prentice had been doing. He said that it had a wonderful justice
to it, that queers without the courage to come out of the closet could
at least be made to contribute to those of us who were loud and proud
about it."
"Good to take the high road," I said.
"He said Willie and I ought to continue it," Walt said. "Said that it was a proud tradition."
"He want a cut?" I said.
"No. He said he didn't need the money."
Walt ate the single big olive from his martini, in several small bites.
"Willie loved it," Walt said. "He's always been more rebellious than me. Always ready to give the finger to the straight world."
"What's this got to do with the straight world?" I said.
"During Gay Pride he'd march in outrageous drag," Walt said. "Once
he went as a priest with the collar and everything, only wearing a
skirt, holding hands with two altar boys."
"That ought to shock them in Roslindale," I said.
"I was always kind of embarrassed by it," Walt went on.
He was having more trouble now, talking, because periodically he'd
have to stop and get control of his crying enough to continue.
"Willie used to tell me I was just playing into the straight guilt
trap, that I was ashamed of my sexuality. I guess I'm pretty
conservative. Willie was always much more out there than old stick in
the mud Walt. It's probably why it happened."
He was nearly to the bottom of his second martini. His speech was
slurring. I didn't know how much wine he'd drunk before I arrived.
Considerable was a fair guess. Right now it was working for me. He was
drunk and garrulous and had someone to talk to about his pain. But I
didn't know how long I had before he would get too drunk to talk. I
wanted to push him; but I had the feeling that if I pushed I'd remind
him that he was admitting to a felony and, drunk or not, he might shut
up.
"Why what happened?" I said carefully.
"Why Willie started fucking Amir," Walt said and started to cry full out.
The bartender looked at me. I shrugged. The bartender went to the
other end of the bar and began to reorganize some clean glasses.
"Who would blame him?" Walt said, snuffling and gulping. "Got this
uptight homophobic gay lover. Who wouldn't want somebody more
interesting, for crissake. Who wouldn't want somebody with more…
" He stopped and tried to get his breathing under control. "With
more… I don't know what, just more."
"I don't know a lot about this," I said, "but I do know that in a
situation like this if you can blame yourself it gives you hope. He's
out of your control, but if it's your fault, maybe you can fix it."
"I can change," Walt said.
He had some trouble with the ch sound.
"Sure," I said. "You think Amir had anything to do with Prentice going out the window?"
"Amir?"
"Amir Abdullah," I said.
"You mean do I think he killed him?"
He had a lot of trouble moving his mouth from I to think.
"You could put it that way," I said.
"I… I… I don't… " As he stumbled over his
answer, Walt got one of those crafty looks that drunks get when they
have this great insight, which in the morning will embarrass them.
"I bet he did," Walt said. "I bet he did an' I bet Willie help' him."
"Why?"
"'Cause he a sonfabish," Walt said. "They both sonfabish."
He pushed the nearly empty martini glass away from him and folded
his arms on the bar and put his head down on them and mumbled
"sonfabish" a couple of times and was quiet.
"Any evidence other than him being a son of a bitch?" I said.
I waited. Walt didn't move. The bartender ambled down the bar. Walt started to snore.
"Walt a friend of yours?" the bartender said.
"No," I said.
"Okay. He's a regular. Bar's almost empty. Let him sleep it off a little. When he wakes up I'll send him home in a cab."
"Good," I said.
"He's got a forty-three-dollar tab here," the bartender said. "Including your beer."
I put a hundred-dollar bill on the bar.
"My treat," I said. "Take his cab fare out of that too."
"Thanks."
"No problem," I said.
As I was leaving I contemplated the, albeit illusory, sense of power
one achieved by slapping a C note on a bar. Maybe I should start
carrying several. More important, maybe I should start earning several.
At the moment I was doing two pro bonos, one for Susan, one for Hawk. I
wondered if it was too late to cut myself in on OUTrageous. Maybe I
could earn a bonus by telling everyone everything about everybody.
It was raining again, but I was dressed for it, and the walk back up
to my office wasn't very far, and I liked to walk in the rain. So I
strolled the block down Tremont and turned up East Berkeley with my
hands in my pockets and my collar up, while the rain came down gently.
I thought about what I knew. I knew a lot, but nothing that solved my
problem with Robinson Nevins. It was clearly time to talk with Amir
Abdullah again. He almost certainly was a son of a bitch, but he didn't
look like someone who could have forced open that jammed window and
thrown anyone through it. On the other hand, he might know someone who
could.
Chapter 42
Hawk and I were parked on Commonwealth Avenue outside the former
Hotel Vendome, now a condominium complex. We had decided to conduct our
discussions with Abdullah in a different venue, the first discussion
having been a little brisk.
"Lives on the fourth floor front," Hawk said.
"Learned anything else about him?" I said.
"Stops by the packie on Boylston, couple times a week, and buys two,
three bottles of wine," Hawk said. "Usually before Willie comes
calling."
"Anybody else come calling?"
"Almost every day," Hawk said. "Young men. Any race. Look like students. Most of them are one time only."
"You think he's tutoring them in the formulaic verse of the North African Berbers?"
"Be my guess," Hawk said, "that they exchanging BJ's."
"Yeah," I said, "that's another possibility."
"He went away last weekend."
"Where?"
"Took a cab to Logan to one of those private airways service areas, walked out onto the runway, got in a Learjet and…"
Hawk made a zoom-away gesture with his hand.
"Came home Monday morning, went to class."
"Private jet?"
"Yep."
"You have any idea where?"
"Nobody I asked knew," Hawk said. "Plane was a Hawker-Sibley, left
at two thirty-five last Friday from in front of the Baxter Airways
building. Some numbers printed on the tail."
Hawk handed me a slip of paper.
"Somebody has to know," I said. "They have to file a flight plan."
"You know who to ask?" Hawk said.
"Not right off the top of my head."
"My problem exactly," Hawk said. "I bet Amir will know."
"Of course," I said. "Let's ask him."
"He's teaching a late seminar," Hawk said. "Doesn't get home until about seven."
"Good," I said. "Give us time to break into his apartment."
"You think he might not let us in if we knocked nice and said howdy doo Mr. Abdullah?" Hawk said.
"I hate your Uncle Remus impression," I said.
"Everybody do," Hawk said happily.
We left the car in a no parking zone and walked across to the
Vendome. Hawk said hello to the good-looking black woman at the
security desk and pointed at the elevator. She smiled and nodded us
toward it.
"Isn't she supposed to call ahead and announce us," I said.
"Un huh," Hawk said.
"Been busy," I said.
"Never no strangers," Hawk said, "only friends you haven't met."
"That's so true," I said, and pushed the call button for the elevator.
"You know," Hawk said as we were waiting for the elevator, "I
suppose Amir got the right to go off on a weekend without us coming in
asking him where and why."
"Absolutely," I said.
"But we going to ask him anyway."
"Absolutely," I said.
"'Cause we don't have anything else to ask," Hawk said.
"Exactly," I said and got into the elevator.
Hawk got in with me and pushed the button for the second floor.
"You ever think of getting into a line of work where you knew what you was doing?" Hawk said.
"Why should I be the one," I said.
"No reason," Hawk said. "Just a thought."
The elevator stopped. We got out. Hawk pointed left and we walked
down the corridor to the end door. I knocked, just to be sure. No one
answered. I bent over to study the lock.
"You want to kick it in?" Hawk said.
"Looks like a pretty good dead bolt," I said. "We'll raise a fair ruckus kicking it in."
"Might as well use a key then," Hawk said.
I looked up at him. He looked like he might spit out a canary feather.
"The Nubian goddess at the desk?" I said.
"Un huh."
"You sure you been keeping an eye on Amir all this time?" I said.
"She got a little closed-circuit TV can watch the lobby from her
bedroom," Hawk said. "While he in his apartment teaching young men
about them formulaic Berbers, I doing a little lesson plan with Simone."
Hawk unlocked Amir's door. We went in. The dark room was close,
heavy with the smell of men's cologne mingling with something that
might have been incense. I flipped the light switch beside the door.
The room was done in tones of brown and vermilion. There was a six-foot
African ceremonial mask on the far wall facing us between the
seven-foot windows. A squat fertility goddess from Africa's bronze age
stood solidly on the coffee table in front of the beige sectional sofa,
and a large painting of Shaka Zulu on the wall opposite the sofa. The
rugs were thick. The windows along the front were heavily draped. To
our left off the living room was a dining area, with a glass-topped
table ornamented with two thick candlesticks in tall ebony holders that
had been carved to resemble vines. A kitchen L'd off the dining area.
The bedroom and bath were to our right. The bed was canopied. On the
night table was a small brass contraption for burning incense. On the
bureau was a framed photograph of a stern thin-faced black woman with
her hair pulled tightly back and her dress buttoned up to the neck.
"Amir got some style," Hawk said.
"Incense is a nice touch," I said.
I sat on the couch. Hawk went over and turned the lights back off.
"Don't want Amir to spot it from the street," Hawk said. "Want him to walk right in and close the door behind him."
He came over, walking carefully while his eyes grew accustomed to
the dark, and sat beside me. He put his feet up on the coffee table.
"What's happening with the woman got raped?" he said.
"She's staying with her mother in Providence."
"She getting any help?"
"Susan referred her to a rape crisis counselor, down there," I said.
"She going?" Hawk said.
"I don't know. Her ex-husband said he'd pay for it."
"He likely to end up with her back in his lap," Hawk said.
"I don't think so. I think he's pretty clear about her."
Hawk was quiet for a time.
"'Course there's always your lap," he said.
"Not if I keep moving," I said.
"We got a plan what we do when Amir shows up?"
"We'll ask him a bunch of questions," I said.
"And when he lies to us?"
"We ask him some other questions."
"When do I get to hang him out the window by his ankles?" Hawk said.
"We can always hang him out the window," I said. "Trouble is then
he'll say anything he thinks we want to hear, and we may learn as much
stuff that's not true as we will stuff that is."
"You just too soft-hearted," Hawk said.
"Softer than you," I said.
"Probably both happy 'bout that," Hawk said.
"This visit we try it the easy way." I said.
"Might stir the pot a little," Hawk said. "Might make him do something that we can catch him at."
"Might," I said.
There was the sound of a key in the door. We were both on our feet.
Silently on the thick carpet I stepped into the kitchen, Hawk went into
the bedroom. The bolt turned. The door opened. The lights went on. The
door shut. I could hear him put the chain bolt on. I stepped out of the
kitchen and stood in front of Amir. There was an Asian boy; Japanese
was my guess, maybe eighteen years old, with Amir. The moment he saw me
Amir spun toward the door. Hawk had stepped out of the bedroom between
Amir and the door. Amir turned again and tried for the phone beside the
sectional sofa. I stepped between him and it. Amir stopped and looked
toward the bedroom. Not a chance. Same with the kitchen. He had nowhere
to go. He stood frozen between us. Behind him Hawk took the bolt off,
and opened the door slightly.
"You go home," he said to the Asian kid.
The kid looked at Amir. Amir had no reaction. He was stiff with panic.
"Now," Hawk said.
The kid turned and Hawk opened the door enough and the kid went out. Hawk closed the door and put the chain back on.
"Sit down," I said to Amir. "We need to talk."
"Don't hurt me," he said.
Amir's voice was shrill and thin-sounding, as if it was being squeezed out through a small opening.
"No need for hurting," I said. "Just sit down and talk with us."
"The boy saw you here, he'll tell the police," Amir said.
Hawk stepped up behind Amir, put his hands on Amir's shoulders, and steered him to the couch and sat him down.
"Stay," he said.
Amir stayed. Hawk sat on the couch beside him. I sat on a hassock
across from them, and rested my elbows on my knees and clasped my hands.
"Now, here's what we know about you. We know it was you who informed
the English department tenure committee that Robinson Nevins was sort
of responsible for the death of graduate student Prentice Lamont."
"I…"
Hawk said, "Be quiet, Amir."
"We know that you yourself were having a sexual relationship with Prentice Lamont before his death."
Amir opened his mouth, looked at Hawk, closed his mouth.
"We know that Prentice was blackmailing gay people who didn't want to be outed, and we know that you knew about that."
Amir sat with his mouth clamped shut, trying to look intrepid, determined to make a virtue of necessity.
"What else do we know?" I said to Hawk.
"We know you a chicken fucker, Amir," Hawk said.
Amir tried to look haughty. He was, after all, a professor.
"I don't even know what that means," he said.
"Sure you do," Hawk said. "Means you'd fuck a young snake if it was male and you could get it to hold still."
Hawk's expression was, as always, somewhere between pleasant and
noncommittal. Amir's expression failed at haughty. It was more a kind
of compacting silence, as if he was becoming less, dwindling as he
listened, freezing in upon himself.
"We know you advised the current staff of OUTrageous, namely Walt
and Willie, that they should continue the blackmail," I said. "We know
you declined to be a financial part of it because you said you didn't
need the money. We know you are currently having an affair with Willie,
which is causing Walt to refer to you as a son of a bitch."
"And," Hawk said, "we know you went away this weekend in a private plane."
"And here's what we don't know," I said. "We don't know if you made
up the story about Nevins, or if it's true. We don't know why you told
the committee about it in either case. We don't know why you condoned
the blackmail. We don't know why you didn't then take any money from
it. We don't know why you claim not to need money. We don't know where
you went this weekend. We don't know if you are responsible for
Prentice Lamont being dead."
The silence in the thick sweet stench of the living room was palpable.
Hawk said very softly, "We'd like to know."
"I didn't do a thing to Prentice," Amir said.
"Know who did?"
"Prentice killed himself."
"No," I said. "He didn't. Do you know who did?"
"Prentice killed himself," Amir said again.
"Who'd you go to see this weekend?"
"I didn't go anywhere," Amir said.
"You took a private jet out of Baxter Airways at two thirty-five last Friday."
"I didn't."
"We can run that down," I said. "You think people who are gay and don't want the world to know should be announced?"
"There's nothing shameful about being gay."
"I agree. But my question stands."
"Every gay person who announces himself proudly to the world is another step toward full recognition of our sexual validity."
We were beginning to discuss abstractions, and Amir was on firmer ground. His voice was less squeaky.
"Unless they pay off," I said.
"I think of it as a fine for noncompliance," Amir said.
"But you wouldn't take any of the money."
"I do very nicely thank you on my salary and my lecture tours and my writing."
"You have an affair with Prentice Lamont?"
"Prentice and I were lovers. There's nothing wrong with that."
"While he was in love with Robinson Nevins or before?"
Amir hesitated. He could sense a pitfall in the question.
"While," he said.
Wrong answer.
"So he was willing to cheat on Nevins but when Nevins left him he was so heartbroken that he killed himself?"
"You don't understand the gay life," Amir said.
"Why do you think Prentice killed himself?"
"Everyone thinks so," Amir said.
"And why did you tell the tenure committee?"
"I felt honor bound to do so."
"Honor bound," Hawk said.
Amir looked at Hawk sort of sideways trying to seem as if he weren't looking at him.
"I know you from before," he said.
"Sure, we come to your office, couple weeks back," Hawk said. "Boogied with some of your supporters."
"No, I mean a long time ago. I know you from a long time ago."
Hawk didn't say anything. His face showed nothing. But something
must have stirred in his eyes, because Amir flinched backward as if
he'd been jabbed.
I let the silence stretch for a while, but nothing came out of it. Amir was rigidly not looking at Hawk.
"Amir," I said. "I don't believe a goddamned thing you've said."
Amir stared straight ahead. I nodded at Hawk. We stood and went to
the door. I took off the chain bolt. We opened it and went out. Before
he closed it Hawk looked for a time at Amir. Then he closed the door
softly.
Chapter 43
I was with Robinson Nevins at the university in the faculty
cafeteria, drinking coffee. I was currently experimenting with half
decaf and half real coffee. Not bad.
"I met your father the other day," I said.
"Most people are impressed when they meet him," Nevins said.
"He's impressive," I said.
"Hawk's affection for him is sort of touching," Nevins said. "Since,
as you must know better than I, Hawk shows very little of anything, let
alone affection."
"You like him?" I said.
"He's my father," Nevins said. "I guess I love him. I'm not very comfortable with him."
"Because?"
"Because he is from a different world. Machismo is the essence of his existence, and I am remote from that."
"Is he disappointed in you?" I said.
Nevins looked startled.
"Why I… no… I don't think he is."
"I don't think he is either," I said.
"You talked about me?"
"Yes. He asked me if I thought you were queer."
"And?"
"And I said I didn't know. And he said he didn't know either, but
that it didn't matter much one way or another. You were still his son."
"I knew he wondered," Nevins said. "Forty years old and unmarried."
"I guess the time has come, I need to know," I said.
"If I'm queer?"
"Yeah."
"No," Nevins said. "I'm not."
"Might have saved you some grief if everyone knew that."
"Might have," Nevins said. "But I have always thought that it is
entirely corrupt to judge people based on what they do with their
genitals in private with a consenting adult."
"I think that's right," I said. "Here's an even worse question. Can you prove it?"
Nevins stopped with his cup half raised to his lips and stared at me
a minute, then he put the cup down, and folded his hands and rested his
chin on them and looked at me some more.
"Just how do we go about that?" he said. "Go down to the Pussy Cat Cinema, perhaps, see if I erect?"
"Maybe the testimony of satisfied females?" I said.
He nodded slowly, an odd half smile on his face.
"I don't like this much better than you do, but everybody's telling me nothing, and I need some kind of fact to wedge in with."
"What is really, what, ironic, I guess, is that at least one member
of the tenure committee knows perfectly well that I'm heterosexual."
"Care to share the name?"
He didn't say anything.
"Look." I said. "It would have to be a female. How many are there on the tenure committee?"
"Four."
"For crissake," I said. "I'm a detective. You think given four names I can't find out which one it was?"
"If I tell you, can you keep it to yourself?"
"I can keep it from anyone who doesn't need to know it," I said.
He still looked at me above his folded hands. The odd half smile faded. Finally he spoke with no expression at all.
"Lillian Temple," he said.
"If that's true," I said, "Lillian Temple knowingly lied about you
in the tenure meeting. She was the one who introduced the business
about Prentice Lamont."
Nevins nodded slowly, without taking his chin off his folded hands.
"Was this before she was Bass Maitland's main squeeze?" I said.
"While," Nevins said.
"Ah," I said. "And you are too gentlemanly to kiss and tell."
"That relationship is important to her. I don't want to destroy it."
"You're getting lynched here," I said, "and won't say anything in your own defense because it would be dishonorable."
Nevins shrugged.
"Honor requires difficulty," Nevins said.
"Jesus Christ," I said. "Your old man isn't the only one for whom machismo is the essence of existence."
Nevins widened his eyes at me as he sat there, and cocked his head slightly without lifting it.
"You think I'm motivated by considerations of machismo?"
"I hope so," I said. "I hope you're not crazy."
An old fat black woman in white sneakers shuffled to our table,
cleared the table debris, including the coffee cups we hadn't finished,
into the cart she was pushing, and shuffled on. Neither of us said
anything. I wasn't even sure she had seen us.
"Have you had other girlfriends," I said.
I wasn't even investigating anymore. I was simply interested.
"Yes, and I've been reticent about them because they have been white."
"Un huh."
"And… I don't know how to say this without sounding like a priggish jerk."
"It's okay," I said. "You're a professor."
He smiled sort of automatically.
"Well, I am badly overeducated. I can only relate well to women who are also badly overeducated."
"And most of those women are white."
"Yes."
We were quiet while the old fat black woman came back and wiped off our table with a damp cloth and moved on.
"I'd have thought interracial dating would not have caused problems in your circles."
"I don't know if it would have. I wasn't brought up to believe that
it wouldn't. My mother was very careful about staying on our side of
the line. I find it difficult to overcome my upbringing."
"I've heard that could be hard," I said. "So you kept your dating a private matter."
"Yes."
"And because you were single and forty it was assumed you were gay?"
"Single, forty, educated, bookish, unathletic—do you know I've never played a basketball game in my life?"
"A clear betrayal of your heritage," I said.
"You know, the funny thing, I have no interest in sex with other
men, but I am, in many ways, more at home in the gay community than the
straight. I found the gay world readily accepting of a black man and a
white woman. No one expected me to be Michael Jordan."
"No one expects anyone to be Michael Jordan," I said.
"You know what I mean."
"Yes, I do. You have a large number of gay friends?"
"Yes. I'm more comfortable in the gay world than I am in the black world."
I wasn't sure that worlds divided themselves so neatly as Robinson suggested, but that wasn't my issue. I nodded encouragingly.
"America expects black men to be macho," he said.
Again, I wasn't sure either of us was in a position to know what
America expected, and, again, it wasn't my issue. So I nodded some more.
"Of course," and he smiled suddenly, "I am also refighting the
family fight, you know, the refined mother and the father who trained
fighters?"
That sounded a little closer to it and I liked him better for knowing it.
"Yes," I said. "Being a straight man in a gay circumstance would be a nice way to do that, wouldn't it."
His eyes widened and he looked at me.
"Well," he said, "you're not…" He made a little oh-I-don't-know hand wave.
I finished it for him.
"… as stupid as I look," I said. "In fact I am. But I have a smart girlfriend."
"I'm impressed," Robinson said.
I went for the complete show-off.
"For a black man," I said, "dating white women might be another way of dramatizing his ambivalence."
"Your girlfriend must have had some therapy," Robinson said.
"She's a shrink," I said.
"Oh," Robinson said, "well, that's not fair."
"Of course not," I said. "I don't like to ask this, but may I speak to your current girlfriend?"
"Yes. Her name is Pamela Franklin. I'll give you her address."
He took a ballpoint pen and a small notebook from his inside pocket
and wrote for a moment and tore the page out and handed it to me.
"Thank you. Do you know Arnir Abdullah?"
"Yes."
"Comment?"
"Amir is a fraud. He's an intellectually dishonest, manipulative, exploitive charlatan."
"Know anything bad about him?" I said.
Robinson started to protest, caught himself, looked at me a moment, and smiled without much humor.
"You're joking."
"Yes."
"Perhaps you shouldn't joke so much," he said.
"Almost certainly," I said. "Tell me more about Amir?"
"He has created himself in the image of a black revolutionary,
without any vestige of a philosophical ground. I am not by nature a
revolutionary or an activist, but I can respect people who genuinely
are. Amir is not. He is a contrivance. He gets what he wants by
accusing anyone who opposes him of being a racist or a homophobe."
"Or a Tom," I said.
"Yes."
"Are you and he politically opposed?"
"I am not political," Robinson said. "But I disagree with almost anything Amir espouses."
"Have you been critical of him?"
"Yes."
"Would your denial of tenure benefit him?"
Robinson looked thoughtfully at the old fat black woman shuffling among the now nearly empty tables.
"Someone once remarked," he said, "I don't recall who, that the
reason academic conflicts are so vicious is that the stakes are so
small. There is no genuine benefit to Amir if I am denied tenure. But
it would please him."
"And it would reduce by one the number of people who could confront him without the risk of being called a racist."
"Given the number of black faculty members, that would be a significant reduction," Robinson said.
"How about Lillian?"
"What about her?"
"She and Amir are the two members of the tenure committee who told
the cops they had direct knowledge of your relationship with Prentice
Lamont."
"Lillian?"
I nodded.
"I haven't done anything to Lillian."
"And since we agree that the allegation is untrue, why would she make it?"
"I don't know," he said, "but I could hypothesize."
"Do," I said.
Robinson took in a long breath and let it out slowly.
"Most straight black men know someone like Lillian," he said. "She
has very little connection to what people outside of English
departments sometimes refer to as the real world. She doesn't do things
because they would be fun, or they would be profitable, or they would
be wise. She does things because they conform to some inner ideal she
has structured out of her reading."
"I've met Lillian," I said.
"Okay," Robinson said, and smiled, "a pop quiz: why would you guess she is in this long-term relationship with Bass Maitland?"
"Because he reminds her of Lionel Trilling," I said.
"Or Walter Pater," Robinson said. "You've got the idea. Now, for extra credit, why was she sleeping with me?"
"White woman's burden," I said.
"Yes." Robinson's face was suddenly animated. "And why did she stop?"
"You weren't black enough."
"Wow," Robinson said. "You're good."
"I've met several Lillians," I said. "If she transferred her
passions to Amir she could be supporting the aspirations of her black
brothers and sisters and still stay faithful to Bass."
"Yes, and I'm sure that's what happened because that was what she
thought she was doing. But she'll be unfaithful to Bass again."
"Because what she really liked was the sex?" I said.
"As long as she could disguise it under a mound of highmindedness."
"My guess is that Bass is not Lionel Trilling."
"No," Robinson said. "He's just your standard academic opportunist blessed with a good voice and nice carriage."
"We might have saved a.lot of time and aggravation," I said, "if you'd told me all this at the beginning."
"Or if you'd asked," Robinson said.
I nodded. "Both had the same reasons, I guess. Can you prove you had a relationship with her?"
"Obviously I can't prove I, ah, penetrated her. I've got some pictures of us together."
"I'd like the best one of you both," I said. "You meet anyplace where there'd be a witness?"
"Witness?"
"Did you check into a motel, have drinks together in Club Cafe? Spend the night at a friend's house on the Cape?"
"We spent several nights together at a little place in Rockport that is hospitable to black people."
"What's the name?"
"Sea Mist Inn," Robinson said.
"When's the last time?"
"We went up there last Labor Day weekend. Last time we went out."
"Thank you."
"I don't want to cause her trouble," Robinson said.
"Me either."
We were quiet then. The old fat black woman had shuffled out and we were alone in the empty dining room.
"You know," Robinson said after a while. "My father named me after Jackie Robinson."
"No one better," I said.
"I know. I guess I've always felt I never lived up to it."
"Nobody's Jackie Robinson," I said. "You're doing pretty well."
"I wish you were right," he said.
"I'm always right," I said. "I have a smart girlfriend."
Chapter 44
I was asleep when my car blew up. The sound of it woke me, and I got
to the window in time to see some of the fragments land on Marlborough
Street. Aside from the post-explosion fire, there was no activity on
the street. I looked at my watch, 3:35 in the morning. I couldn't think
of anything to do about my car. I didn't see a felon fleeing the scene.
But I was too wide awake to go back to bed, so I stood and watched. In
about ten minutes a police cruiser pulled up Marlborough and halted
near the now declining embers where once my car had been. I got dressed
and went down, and announced myself as the owner. While I was talking
with the cops, the fire department arrived and then a couple of arson
investigators, and my night was shot.
When I got to my office about ten in the morning, less rested than I
was used to, there was a message on my machine to call Captain Healy at
State Police Headquarters.
"Plane you were asking about," Healy said when I got him. "Private
plane owned by an outfit called Last Stand Systems, Inc. Flew from
Logan to Bangor, Maine."
"Do you know anything about Last Stand Systems?"
"No."
"Got an address for Last Stand Systems, Inc.?" I said.
"Beecham, Maine."
"That's it?"
"That's it," Healy said. "You ever heard of Beecham?"
"No."
"Me either."
"It's a wonder you got promoted to captain," I said.
"No wonder at all," Healy said and hung up.
I got out my atlas and looked up Beecham. It was on the coast,
southeast of Bangor. I called the office of the Maine Secretary of
State in Augusta and, after a while, learned that Last Stand Systems,
Inc. was a not-for-profit corporation. After another while, I got the
names of the principal officers, and the members of the board.
According to their incorporation papers Last Stand Systems was
committed to social and political preservation. After I hung up I
looked at the list of names. None of them meant anything to me. The CEO
was somebody named Milo Quant.
I called information and asked for Last Stand Systems, Inc. and got
it. I called them and asked for literature. They asked my name and
address. I told them I was Henry Cimoli and gave them the address of
the Harbor Health Club.
Then I called Henry and told him to look for the literature and asked him to have Hawk stop by. Which Hawk did in about an hour.
There was always something lustrous about Hawk. His shaved head
gleamed. He moved as if he were spring loaded. And there was about him
a kind of genial absence of affect that made him seem almost
otherworldly.
"I think we might have buzzed somebody's button," I said. "My car blew up last night."
"Trying for you?" Hawk said.
"I don't think so. It went off at three thirty-five in the morning,
a guy who could have rigged that device wouldn't have gotten the timer
so far off."
"Want to kill you he ties it to the starter anyway," Hawk said.
"Yes. But there's no way to know what I'm being warned about, yet."
"So they going to have to follow up," Hawk said.
"Un huh. Call me, write me, come and visit me."
"They'll come calling," Hawk said. "Show you they can reach you whenever they want."
"Yes," I said, "and see how I take the warning."
"You talk to anyone since we sat with Amir?"
"No."
"So maybe talking with Amir was the buzzer."
"Maybe. Or maybe busting Louis Vincent was the buzzer, and they just got around to following up."
"Nope," Hawk said, "this a warning. Too late to warn us off Vincent."
"Yeah," I said. "You're right."
"Who that plane belong to?" Hawk said.
"Last Stand Systems, Inc.," I said. "Out of Beecham, Maine."
"Beecham, Maine?"
"I never heard of it either," I said.
The door to my office was open so that Hawk and I could keep an eye
on Lila in the design office across the hall. Six men in close
formation came through the open door like a drill team. Two moved to
the left of the door, two to the right, and two marched straight up to
my desk.
"Maybe these guys know," Hawk said.
"You guys know where Beecham, Maine, is?" I said.
They looked like Secret Service men or IBM executives. They were all
in dark suits and white shirts. They all wore ties. They all had short
hair. They all were of northern European descent. When everyone was in
place the suit closest to the door pushed it shut.
One of the two men in front of my desk said, "Spenser?" He was
wearing horn-rimmed glasses, which made him look smart, probably why he
was the designated speaker.
"Yes," I said. "Is it on the coast?"
"Is what on the coast?"
"Beecham."
Horn Rims shook his head in dismissive annoyance.
"You've been put on notice," he said. "As of this morning at three thirty-five."
I looked at Hawk.
"Did you take those library books back like I told you?" I said.
Hawk was leaning against my file cabinet as if he might fall asleep. He smiled softly.
"Can't be librarians," Hawk said. "Librarians would know where Beecham is."
Horn Rims didn't change expression.
"You are to stay entirely away from Amir Abdullah. Repeat, entirely.
If you fail to comply you will be incinerated as was your car."
"How come," I said.
"You've been informed," Horn Rims said. "Your Negro friend as well."
"You guys associated with Last Stand Systems?" I said.
One of the guys in the back opened my door, and four of them marched
out. Horn Rims and his partner marched out after them. At the door,
Horn Rims' partner turned and aimed a semiautomatic pistol with a
silencer. He squeezed off three rounds; each shot broke one of the
three coffee cups that were lined up on the file cabinet about a foot
from Hawk. Hawk never moved. The gun disappeared. The door closed. We
were left with the silence and the smell of the gunfire.
Hawk looked at the remains of the coffee cups.
"Guy can shoot," Hawk said.
"Yes, my Negro friend, but is he a nice person?" I said.
Chapter 45
The pictures of Lillian and Robinson arrived in my office by FedEx.
I took them with me when I drove up to the Sea Mist Inn and talked with
the homey-looking woman at the desk. She remembered them clearly
enough, a black man and a white woman. They had registered as Mr. &
Mrs. Robinson Nevins on the Friday before last Labor Day, and, yes,
that was Mrs. Nevins in the picture.
I drove back to Boston and over to the university and took the
information and the pictures with me. I fell in beside Lillian Temple
as she came down the steps of the library carrying her briefcase. She
appeared to recognize me, but she didn't appear to take any pleasure in
it.
"Hi," I said.
"I'd prefer that you did not bother me while I'm at work," she said.
"Don't blame you," I said. "You know anything about the Sea Mist Inn?"
"Excuse me?"
"Sea Mist Inn, place up in Rockport where you and Robinson Nevins spent last Labor Day weekend."
She stopped dead in the middle of the quadrangle.
"Labor Day?"
I took the photographs from my inside pocket.
"I showed these pictures of you and Robinson," I said. "And the woman on the desk recognized you."
She stared at the photographs.
"This came on you kind of sudden," I said. "Should we sit on this bench, while you think about it?"
Without comment, she plopped down on a bench beside some evergreen
bushes near the entrance to the administration building. She was
staring at the pictures I still held for her.
"Those pictures don't prove anything," she said finally.
I put them back into my inside pocket.
"No, but they're suggestive, coupled with what the Sea Mist lady told us, and what Robinson Nevins said."
Again she was silent, staring at the place where the pictures had been. She let out a long breath.
"Well," she said, "you seem to have invaded my whole life."
"Just doing my job, ma'am."
Lillian looked at me somberly. "Not a job one can admire," she said.
If Lillian had a sense of humor, I had no idea how to access it.
"So," I said. "Since we can assume you know Robinson Nevins was heterosexual, a question presents itself."
Lillian continued to look at me with blank sobriety, which might
have been her attempt to look stern. Lillian's mind didn't seem to move
very quickly, even for a professor. While the question had come upon
her rather suddenly, it was a pretty obvious question. I waited.
Finally she said without affect, "What question?"
"Why you reported to the tenure committee a story about Robinson Nevins that you had considerable reason to doubt."
"He could have been bisexual."
"Yes he could have. Did you think he was?"
"I didn't know he wasn't."
"Did you ask him?"
"Of course not." She was, maybe genuinely, outraged. "One's sexuality is neither my business nor yours."
I looked at her for a while, aware of my breath going in and out.
"It's breathtaking," I said. "You have ruined a man's career by
repeating a slanderous allegation you know to be false, and you still
find a way to mouth moralistic platitudes when you're caught."
"I'm sorry you think the right to privacy is a moralistic platitude."
"I am also not sure if you know that you keep diverting the topic or
not. I don't think you're smart enough, but now and then I'm fooled."
She stood, holding her briefcase with both arms, as if I'd tried to cop a feel.
"I do not have to sit here and allow you to berate me," she said.
"No you don't," I said. "And neither will the Dean of Liberal Arts, when I discuss it with him."
She sat back down again, hugging her briefcase a little closer.
"You'd go to the dean?"
"Yep. Probably go to Bass Maitland, too. And probably the student newspaper."
She was horrified. The look of haughty incomprehension had been replaced by wide-eyed staring fear.
"I want a lawyer," she said.
"Sure," I said. "Go get one. I'm not a cop. You're not under arrest.
But I now know that Robinson Nevins got jobbed in his tenure hearing,
and I know by whom, and I can prove it, and I will. What I don't know
yet is why, but I'm not sure why matters."
The class break had ended and the next period had begun. The
quadrangle was relatively empty. Some students sat on the library steps
smoking, and listening to headphones, and talking and thinking about
sex. In the small plot of dirt where the evergreens grew by the steps
of the administration building, some tough-looking city birds,
starlings mostly, and a few sparrows, pecked industriously for whatever
birds peck after. In front of the university, MBTA trains stopped and
let people out and took people on before they tunneled back underground.
Finally in a voice that sounded almost girlish Lillian said, "You wouldn't understand."
"Probably not," I said.
She took her left hand off her briefcase and began to play with the hair at the back of her neck.
"A university faculty is special. It is a place, maybe the only place, where the ideal of a civil society still flourishes."
"I can see that," I said.
If she heard me she didn't show it.
"Robinson is a decent man, but he… he has no place on a
university faculty. He is not… how to say this… he is not
consistent with the current best thinking on racial matters."
"How is he at teaching English?" I said.
"That's a fallacy. A university faculty is not simply about
teaching, it is about creating and passing on culture. The university
is a place where the best minds must be allowed freedom to contemplate
the most basic human issues. A university faculty is the progenitor and
propagator of culture."
I was certainly glad I had said "by whom" a while ago.
"Would you say Robinson is out of step with current racial thinking
in the sense that he does not see it as genocidal to teach dead white
men in his classes?"
"That's part of it, though of course you would put it in a way that makes it sound puerile."
"So you felt obligated to lie about him to the tenure committee because he was not the right kind of black guy," I said.
"Again you have demeaned my point," she said.
"Someone ought to," I said. "I'm glad I could be the one."
"I did what I thought best in the larger context."
"Let me get one thing clear," I said. "This bastion of civility
you've been speaking of, is Amir Abdullah a tenured member of it?"
"Yes."
"I refute it thus," I said.
She came out of her abstraction trance enough to look puzzled.
"Is that a quote?" she said.
I couldn't stand her anymore. I stood.
"Samuel Johnson," I said. "Look it up." I left.
Chapter 46
Unless I am under actual attack, I always read the paper in the
morning while I drink coffee. If I'm away I read whatever morning paper
is local. When I'm home I read the Boston Globe. So when Henry dropped
off the literature from Last Stand Systems on his way to work on
Tuesday morning, I put it aside until I had drunk my third cup of
coffee and finished the comic section. Then I folded the paper back up
and put it aside in case I wanted to consult it later. Sometimes
"Doonesbury" was too hard for me the first time through and I had to
reread it later.
The stuff from Last Stand Systems was obviously computer-generated,
though it was pretty professional-looking with colors and
right-justified margins and typefaces that someone had thought about.
It was also dreck. The centerpiece of their promotional literature was
a newsletter titled Alert! which warned against the encroaching
mongrelization of the white race, the feminization of the American
male, the homosexual assault on marriage, the debasement of American
Christianity, and the arrival of the Antichrist. There was a thoughtful
discussion, complete with footnotes and bibliography, of a secret plot
which festered deep within the power centers of the federal government,
abetted by Zionism, whereby this country would be handed over to the
One Worlders at the UN. The author signed himself Octavio Smith, Ph.D.
The writing was grammatical and wooden.
I put Alert! down and picked up the other stuff. There was a letter
from the CEO, Milo Quant, explaining that Last Stand's mission was to
restore the America our fathers had founded. There was also an
application for membership, and a calendar of upcoming Last Stand
events. I filed the application which required a $100 fee and looked at
the calendar. It was mostly a list of Quant's public appearances. The
closest one was at the state college in Fitchburg, Mass., Friday night,
sponsored by a student group. A don't-miss opportunity.
Last Stand Systems, Inc., seemed the most unlikely organization to
be flying a black homosexual radical activist named Amir Abdullah up to
Maine for the weekend. But they had, and there was no plausible
explanation that I was able to come up with. It was also possible that
they had sent out a squad of well-scrubbed shooters to chase us away
from him. Again I couldn't think why. Maybe they were using him as a
recruiting ploy. Enough exposure to Amir Abdullah would make anyone a
racist homophobe.
My office door opened. It was Susan. She had a small bag of Key lime
cookies she'd bought somewhere and wanted to share them with me over
coffee. Sharing meant Susan ate most of one cookie, and I ate all the
rest in about the same amount of time. I had no problem with that.
"There's a fund-raiser at the ART Friday night," Susan said. "I'd like us to go."
She had put the cookies out on a little paper plate and was making coffee.
"Oh darn," I said. "I have to drive out to Fitchburg State and listen to a speech by a racist homophobe."
"Well," Susan said, "I couldn't ask you to give that up. Decaf all right?"
"Sure," I said. "Want to can the ART and go with me?"
I watched her as she spooned the coffee into the filter. She always made it too weak.
"Yes," she said, "but I can't. I'm on the board, you know. I just hate to go alone."
"Bring Hawk," I said. "He's got a good sense of humor."
"Oh my," Susan said.
We were silent for a moment, both of us thinking about Hawk at the fund-raiser.
"Whyn't you add another heaping spoonful of coffee," I said.
"Won't it be too strong?" she said.
"No, and a pinch of salt."
"Okay," she said and did what I said, although I could tell by the
set of her shoulders that she knew the coffee would be salty and much
too strong to drink. She turned on the coffeemaker and stood looking
down at it while it began to brew.
"I'm missing you," she said while she watched.
"Yeah, I'm missing you, too."
"I feel like we haven't seen enough of each other," Susan said.
"Working couples," I said.
"Do you think we can get away soon, just the two of us, somewhere?"
"Yes," I said. "A mystery ride?"
"I'd love that," Susan said.
"I'll put something together for us."
"I don't want to tour the new ballpark in Cleveland," Susan said.
"And you don't want to go to Cooperstown," I said, "and visit the Hall of Fame."
"That still leaves a lot of options for us," Susan said.
"I guess so," I said. "I wonder if KC Roth would like to see the Hall of Fame."
"She's probably in it," Susan said. "They probably retired her diaphragm."
"Her diaphragm?"
"I'm an old-fashioned girl," Susan said.
"And not a jealous bone in your body."
"Not one," Susan said.
The coffee had brewed enough to fill two cups. Susan poured it and
put the pot back, added milk and Equal, and brought the two cups to my
desk.
"Why are you going to listen to a speech by a racist homophobe?" she said.
"His name popped up in the Robinson Nevins case."
"Really."
I was on my second cookie. Susan had a small bite out of hers. The
coffee was just right. I knew she thought it was just right too, but
wasn't saying so because she was stubborn.
"Last weekend a plane came to Logan and picked up Amir Abdullah and
took him up to Bangor. The plane belonged to Last Stand Systems, Inc.,
of Beecham, Maine, and this speaker is the CEO of Last Stand Systems,
Inc., which appears to be at the far right end of the family values
movement."
"Is that being put kindly?" Susan said.
"Very," I said. "We asked Amir about this. He denied that it happened."
"So what will you learn by going to the speech?"
"Don't know," I said. "See what this guy looks like. Hear what he
sounds like. Maybe I'll get to ask him about Amir. Mostly I don't know
exactly what else to do, so I'm going to do that. You know, keep
looking until I see something."
"I know very well. We do somewhat the same thing in therapy."
We finished our cookies and drank our coffee.
"Coffee's just right," I said.
"I thought it was a little strong," Susan said, "and a tad salty."
I grinned at her. I got up and walked around my desk and stood in front of her.
"I love predictable," I said. "Will you give me a big lingering open-mouthed kiss?"
Susan patted her lips with a little paper napkin that had been in the bag with the cookies. She stood.
"Yes," she said. "I will."
Chapter 47
I got a call at my office the next morning from KC Roth inviting me
to lunch. I figured I was safe in a public place, so I accepted. We met
at the Legal Sea Foods restaurant in Chestnut Hill, and because we were
early we didn't have to wait long.
"I've moved back into civilization," KC said, when she was seated across from me with a glass of white wine.
"Chestnut Hill?" I said.
She shook her head.
"Not enough dollars," she said. "Place in Auburndale, the first floor of a nice two-family."
We looked at menus and ordered. KC had another glass of white wine.
"I… I have to say things," she said.
"Okay."
"I…I'm sorry about some of the crazy things I did. Calling you up and leaving you notes."
"No harm," I said.
"I was just… crazy, I guess. Crazy time, you know?"
"I know."
"And of course I want to thank you for saving me."
"Just had to convince you to save yourself. Your ex-husband was more useful than I was."
"Yes. Burt was there for me. Sometimes I think I made a mistake. I
could be there now in a nice house with someone taking care of me."
"You can take care of yourself," I said.
"I didn't do much of a job of it before," she said.
"Your ex-husband send you money?" I said.
"Alimony."
"Enough?"
"Enough to be independent," KC said.
"Or dependent."
"Sure, men always say things like that. You have no idea what it is
like to have been a married housewife forced suddenly to take care of
herself."
"You're right," I said.
She sipped her wine. The restaurant was busy. Legal Sea Foods are always busy.
"You think I should get a job?" she said.
"I think if you supported yourself and didn't take money from your ex-husband, in the long run you'd feel better about things."
"I wonder if he's seeing anyone.
" I didn't say anything.
"He was there for me," KC said.
"And he urged you not to misunderstand," I said. "He reminded you that you and he had different lives to live."
"Of course you'd stick up for him. Men always stick up for each other. The old boys' network."
"I'm not so old," I said.
"Oh pooh," she said. "You know what I mean."
The waitress brought chowder for KC and lobster salad for me. KC
took the opportunity to order another glass of wine. We each had a
taste of our lunch. KC's wine came and she had some.
"But," she said, "I didn't ask you to lunch to complain."
"Oh," I said.
"I just wanted the chance to let you know that I understand how much you've done for me."
"My pleasure," I said.
"Is he-whose-name-shall-not-be-mentioned going to be in jail a long time?"
"Ask me after his trial," I said.
"What if he doesn't go to jail?"
"He will."
"But what if there's, you know, a miscarriage of justice?"
"Then we'll take the necessary steps," I said.
"You'll still be there for me?"
"It's sort of what I do, KC."
"But I haven't even paid you."
"I know."
"What if he comes back and I still can't pay you?"
"We'll work it out," I said.
"I… I just don't think I can cope if I don't know you're there."
"Where?" I said.
"You know, there for me."
"As I said, that's sort of my profession."
"You mean you're there for anyone who hires you."
"More or less," I said.
She was taking in more wine than chowder, which was shame because
the chowder at Legal was very good. I finished my lobster salad.
"When you were sitting by my bedside," KC said, "after the…
that awful thing happened to me, I thought maybe I might be more than
just someone who had hired you to be there."
I didn't like the way this conversation was going.
"Part of the service," I said.
She put her hand out and placed it firmly on top of mine, and stared into my eyes.
"God damn it," she said, "can't you see I love you?"
I felt like I'd wandered into a remake of Stella Dallas.
"I don't think so," I said. "I rescued you from a bad situation. And
you need to be in love with someone to feel secure and you don't have
anyone else to love at the moment, and I'm handy and you think I'm it."
"Don't tell me what I feel," she said.
"Are you still seeing the therapist Susan recommended?"
"Drive all the way to Providence twice a week to talk about my father? I don't think so."
"Susan can get you someone up here."
"You think I'm crazy?"
"I think you need help in figuring out who to love and who to trust and what you need."
"Talk talk talk. Why can't men ever simply feel?"
"You need help in not generalizing, too," I said.
She stood up so suddenly that she knocked over her empty wine glass.
She came around the table and threw her arms around me and kissed me on
the mouth. I sat stock still feeling like a virgin under siege. Flight
seemed unbecoming. KC was pushing the kiss as hard as a kiss can be
pushed. I remained calm. When she broke for air she leaned her head
back and stared into my eyes some more.
"I love you, you bastard," she said. "Don't you understand that I love you."
"If you don't let go of me," I said, "and sit back down, I will hit you."
She straightened up as if I actually had hit her, and stared at me,
and began to cry. Sobbing loudly, she turned and ran from the
restaurant. Everyone in the place watched her leave, and then looked at
me with either disapproval (almost all of the women, some of the men)
or sympathy (several of the men, one woman). My waitress remained
unperturbed. She brought me the check.
Chapter 48
The post office in Beecham, Maine, was located in one corner of a
variety store in a small weathered-shingle building at the top of a
short hill which led down to the harbor. The coast of Maine was tourist
country, and a lot of shopkeepers had adopted a kind of stage Yankee
persona in order to fulfill expectations.
"I'm looking for Last Stand Systems," I said.
The shopkeeper/postmaster was a fat old guy wearing a collarless
blue and white striped shirt, and big blue jeans held up by red
suspenders.
"In town here," he said.
As he answered me he eyed Hawk. The look wasn't suspicious exactly,
it was more the look you give to an exotic animal that has unexpectedly
appeared. The way he might have looked if I'd come in with an ocelot on
a leash.
"Where in town?"
"Out the Buxton Road," he said.
"Does it have an address?" I said.
"Beecham, Maine."
The shopkeeper was seated on one of four stools bolted to the floor
in front of a marble-topped soda fountain, his fat legs dangling, his
fat ankles showing sockless above a pair of moccasins. There were
donuts under a glass dome, and straws and napkins in chrome dispensers.
"Does it have a number on it?" I said.
"Nope."
"If I went out the Buxton Road how would I recognize it?"
"See the sign out front."
"The one that says Last Stand Systems, Inc.?"
"Yep."
"That should help us," I said.
"Might."
"How do we get to the Buxton Road?" I said.
"Right out front. Turn right."
"You been working on this act for a long time?" Hawk said.
The old fat guy almost smiled for a moment, but fought it off and stayed in character.
"Yep," he said.
"Real hay shakers wear socks," Hawk said.
"Some do," the old fat guy said.
Hawk grinned.
We turned and went back out and got into Hawk's car and turned
right. Nearly all the houses were white and set on low foundations.
Many had long porches that wrapped around the front and one side where
people could sit in rocking chairs and look across the street at people
sitting in rocking chairs looking across the street. The Buxton Road
barrel-arched over a fast-moving little river and then flattened out
between tall pines on the right and the sea-foamed boulder-scattered
coastline on the left. The sea birds seemed livelier on this coast.
There was very little of the effortless gliding that gulls did in
Boston. Here, they flashed above the waves, and dove into the foam, and
scooted over the rocks and snapped food out of the tidal ponds that
formed among the rusty-looking granite chunks. About a mile out of town
there was a narrow drive off into the pine trees. A small sign, black
letters on white wood, read Last Stand Systems, Inc. Hawk U-turned and
pulled up onto the shoulder at the opposite edge of the road above the
ocean fifty yards down past the sign.
"We could be bold," Hawk said.
"And if it's the outfit that sent the well-dressed shooters," I said, "we could be dead."
"Or, we could be guileful."
"Guileful?"
"Guileful."
"I vote for guileful," I said.
"Good," Hawk said, "what you suggest?"
"You don't have a plan?"
"I come up with the strategic concept," Hawk said.
"Is that what that was?" I said. "I thought you were just showing off you knew a big word."
"That too," Hawk said.
"Okay, let's sneak around in the woods and see what we can see."
"Covertly," Hawk said.
"Of course," I said. "Covertly."
Hawk and I were both in work clothes, which meant jeans, sneakers,
tee shirt. I wore a blue oxford dress shirt with the tails out to hide
the Browning on my belt. Hawk mostly used a shoulder holster. To
conceal it he was wearing a gray silk sport coat. He took it off and
folded it carefully on the backseat. He had a big .44 Mag under his arm.
"Doesn't the weight of that thing make you tip to the side?" I said.
"It do," Hawk said. "But you never know when you might have to shoot an elephant."
Hawk put the car keys over the visor.
"Case we need wheels real quick," Hawk said. "Don't want to be looking for the keys."
"'Course this could be an outfit of pleasant people who make umbrella stands," I said.
"With an unlisted number and a private jet," Hawk said.
"Just a thought," I said.
We crossed the road and went into the woods. It had that bittersweet
scent that the woods often have on a hot day. Except for the whine of
locusts, and the occasional movement of the wind off the ocean, it was
very still. Pine needles were six inches thick underfoot. We made very
little sound as we walked. We walked in a wide circle aiming to come to
Last Stand Systems, Inc. from a direction other than the road. It was
easy going. There was very little underbrush. It was as if the land
beneath the high pines had been carefully cleared. In about twenty
minutes we saw the compound. Not much to see. It looked like it might
once have been a manufacturing facility that had been recycled. There
were three cinder block buildings with those high glass windows that
nineteenth-century industrial buildings used to have, the kind that
have a fine wire mesh running through them. The buildings were painted
flat white. The compound was surrounded by a high chain-link fence with
razor wire on top.
I climbed a tree. From there I could see that the buildings faced
onto an open area about the size of a football field. An American flag
was on a flagpole in front of one building. A couple of men in dark
suits and white shirts came out of the building by the flagpole and
walked across the open area and went into the building across the way.
I looked down. Hawk had taken a seat under the tree with his back
against the trunk and his ankles crossed and appeared to be asleep,
though he probably wasn't.
I sat in my tree some more. There's something about sitting in a
tree when you're a grown man that makes you feel like a doofus. But it
was a feeling I understood, I'd had it before. I sat, doofus-like, and
looked at the layout. To my left was a gated entrance with a guard
shack manned by a guard. The gate was open, folded back out of the way
against the chain link fence. The central building with the flagpole
was directly opposite the gate. It was clearly the administrative
place. The suits continued in and out of there. The other two buildings
seemed to be a barracks and maybe a supply warehouse. A couple of green
Jeeps and a black Lincoln stretch limo with tinted windows were parked
in front of the administration building. They all had Maine plates. I
noted the plate numbers.
As I watched, a man in starched fatigues and wearing a pistol belt
strolled slowly along the fence. There was a radio on his belt on the
hip opposite the pistol, and a microphone clipped to his epaulets. At
the corner he stopped and spoke to another guy with the same equipment
who had obviously walked down his length of fence. One of them leaned
his hand against the chain-link as they talked. Which meant the fence
was not electrified. The other two lengths of fence were hidden by the
buildings. I watched as my guy turned smartly and strolled back along
his fence and, sure enough, met another guard at the other corner.
Being a trained observer I concluded that the perimeter was guarded by
four men. I watched some more. The guards went back and forth. After
about a half hour a squad of four other men in starched fatigues came
out of the far building under the direction of another guy and they
marched out to change the guard. I sat some more. In the next hour and
a half I counted at least twenty men in starched fatigues and side arms
either guarding the perimeter or marching about in the compound in
something resembling close order drill. My left knee was beginning to
hurt where I'd gotten shot once. I wasn't sure I could stand the
excitement of another guard change, so I climbed back down the tree and
stood and stretched out my knee a little. Hawk tilted his head back and
looked at me.
"So, Hawkeye," he said. "What'd you see."
"Looks like something between an IBM retreat and Parris Island," I said.
"Got a perimeter guard," Hawk said.
"I counted about twenty guys in fatigues and side arms," I said.
"Don't seem necessary for a bunch of pleasant umbrella stand makers," Hawk said.
"No," I said. "It doesn't."
"We tough enough to go in there and roust twenty guys?" Hawk said.
"Of course we are," I said.
"How 'bout stupid enough?" Hawk said.
"Sure, but then what? I don't even know what we're looking for in there."
"Same thing we looking for when we drove way the fuck up here," Hawk
said. "We trying to figure out the connection between Amir and this
outfit."
"Oh yeah," I said. "And we're doing that because we think it might help us figure out who threw Prentice Lamont out the window."
"Exactly," Hawk said.
"Shooting it out with twenty guys may not be the best way to get that information."
"Specially if only one guy's got the information and you kill him."
"A definite possibility."
"Or we might both get shot to pieces and then the thing wouldn't ever get solved," Hawk said.
"Unlikely," I said. "But not impossible."
We both looked at the gleam of the white cinder block buildings
through the lacy distraction of the trees. The high locust whine was so
much a part of the woods that it had become nearly inaudible. The
bittersweet smell of the woods was stronger as the sun had gotten
higher.
"I think guile is still our best option," I said.
"So what the guileful thing to do?" Hawk said.
"Go back home, maybe have a couple beers, and think about it," I said.
"Works for me," Hawk said.
Chapter 49
Heading back to the car we were maybe twenty yards from the highway when we both stopped short at the same time.
"You smell it?" I said.
"Cigarette," Hawk said.
I nodded. Hawk took his elephant gun from the shoulder holster and
stuck it into his belt at the small of his back. He shucked off the
shoulder rig and dropped it and moved off to the right. I went left. We
emerged onto the highway bracketing the car, Hawk ten yards beyond it,
me ten yards this side. There were four of them leaning on the car.
They had on uniforms and carried side arms. An unmarked blue Jeep was
parked behind Hawk's Jag. I sauntered toward them with a big friendly
smile.
"Hi," I said. "You waiting for me?"
One of them turned toward me. He was still wearing his horn-rimmed
glasses and it still made him look smart. Of course, appearances can be
deceiving.
"This your car?" he said.
After he said it, he stared at me and I could see recognition begin to form behind his lenses.
"Actually it belongs to my Negro friend," I said.
They had not planned on being approached by two people at the same
time from opposite directions. They should have divided the chore. Two
look at me. Two look at Hawk. But they hadn't decided in advance, and
therefore didn't know, which two should look at whom. Training is good,
but sometimes innovation is better.
"I know you," Horn Rims said.
"And a better man for it," I said.
Hawk and I kept coming. Horn Rims put a hand on the radio at his
belt and turned his head and spoke something into the microphone
clipped to his epaulets. Then he unsnapped the flap of his holster.
"Stop right where you are," he said.
"Here?" I said.
For a moment all four of them were looking at me. When two of them
looked back at Hawk, he had put the car between him and them and was
resting the big .44 on the roof with the hammer back.
One of them said, "Jesus Christ," and all four looked for a moment
at Hawk. When two of them looked back at me I had the Browning out and
cocked and pointed.
"You guys got to be better organized," I said. "Move away from the car."
Horn Rims glanced toward the driveway. He was expecting
reinforcements. I stepped closer and hit him with a left hook that
staggered him into the road. Then I got in the car and fumbled the keys
down from the sun visor. Hawk remained with his gun on the security
guards.
"You're a dead man," Horn Rims screamed at me. "Wherever you run,
whatever you do, even if you kill some of us, we'll run you both to
ground and kill you."
From up the long driveway I could hear the sound of cars coming. More than one. I started the Jaguar.
I heard Hawk say, "Watch this."
There were two big booms from the .44 and in the rearview mirror I
could see the Jeep settle forward on its rapidly deflating front tires.
I heard Hawk say, "All of you on the ground, facedown."
Then Hawk was in the front seat. I stomped on the accelerator and
the Jag lunged forward spinning up gravel from the road shoulder. We
lurched up onto the road surface and screeched away. I could smell the
tires scorching and there was some small-arms fire, but nothing hit us.
Hawk slammed the door shut as the car stabilized and smoothed out.
"We going to have to do something about these guys," Hawk said.
I was driving as fast as the Buxton Road would let me back toward
Beecham. Hawk had the cylinder of his .44 open and was feeding in two
fresh rounds that looked about the size of surface-to-air missiles.
"I'll bet they're back there saying the same thing," I said.
Chapter 50
I had the mystery ride all put together. Until I figured out exactly
what Hawk and I were going to do about Last Stand Systems, Inc., I
wanted the time I spent with Susan to be covert. I was in a profession
where getting threatened was part of the deal. So was Hawk. But Susan
was not. So I left Hawk to look out for himself for a long weekend and
took Susan for a few days to Lee Farrell's empty condominium at Sanibel
Island on Florida's west coast. It was late June, and as out of season
as you could get. But I was pretty sure no one would shoot at us while
we were down there.
It was all right on the plane, and in the car rental office, and the
car we rented was air-conditioned. The walk from the car to the
elevator and the ride up in the elevator was not air-conditioned, and
we were near collapse by the time I got Farrell's door unlocked. The
condo was roasting. It had been closed since Farrell's last vacation. I
staggered to the thermostat and turned the air-conditioning on high. In
a few minutes the crisis had passed and we were breathing normally
again.
"I don't want to disappoint you," I said to Susan after she had
unpacked and hung up all her clothes and joined me at the little bar in
the living room for a cocktail. "But Farrell made me promise there
would be no heterosexual carnality in here."
"Is this your way of telling me you want me to dress up in a man's suit again?" Susan said.
"Lee says it's in the bylaws of the condo association-heterosexuality is prohibited."
"Oh boy," Susan said. "Finally a real vacation."
"Gee," I said. "Usually when someone tells you that you can't do something, you want to do it immediately."
Susan sipped on the Bellini I had made her and looked at me and frowned thoughtfully.
"You know," she said, "you're right. That is how I am. The hell with the condo association. Let's fuck."
"That's the Susan I know," I said. "Did you say something about a man's suit?"
"Just a little humor," she said.
"How about maybe just the shirt and a tie," I said.
"Stop it," Susan said and got up and walked toward the bedroom. I followed.
"How about just the tie?" I said.
Susan unzipped her shorts.
"How about less talk and more action," she said.
Later that night we had dinner at The Sanibel Steak House. The
dining room was small and pleasant with glass at the far end looking
out over some greenery. We both had martinis. They were excellent. We
both ordered steak. For Susan to order steak was a breach of
self-discipline comparable to masturbating in public. Salads arrived
first. They were excellent. The steaks arrived shortly thereafter.
Susan recovered herself sufficiently to cut her steak into halves and
put one half aside.
"I guess we showed them," Susan said as she chewed on a small piece
of steak. "Sex, martinis, and steak. How much more carnality is
possible."
I took a bite of my steak. It was excellent.
"That can be our project while we're here," I said. "See how much carnality is possible."
"Would you care to tell me exactly why we are here?"
"Haven't been away in a while," I said. "Lee offered:"
"Lee's a cop," Susan said. "He doesn't spend all winter here either. Why now at the end of June?"
"Sure it's out of season," I said. "But everything's air-conditioned."
"I'm not complaining about the heat," Susan said. "And so far I'm
having a lovely time. But I think that there's something lurking behind
the arras."
"A rat, maybe?"
"Or Polonius," Susan said. "Shakespeare aside, I know you nearly as well as you know me. What's up?"
I finished my martini, and in a burst of unbridled carnality, Susan
finished hers. The waitress noticed our situation and came over. We
ordered red wine. She went to get it. And brought it back and left.
"You remember Beecham, Maine?" I said.
She shook her head. I told her, all of it. She listened as I talked
as she always did, with full attention, her eyes fixed on me. I could
feel the charge in her. I could feel the energy between us. It made
talking to her a lush experience.
"And you obviously believe them," Susan said when I finished.
"That they'll try for Hawk and me? You remember Clausewitz on war?"
"I should," Susan said, "by now. You keep quoting him."
"And what is the quote?"
"Something like `you must prepare for the enemy's capability, rather than his intentions."'
"Yes."
"So you have to assume they might try."
"If I assume they might try and I'm wrong, I'm inconvenienced. If I assume they won't try and I'm wrong, I'm dead."
"Which is why you brought me here. Because if we were to spend time
together you wanted it where I wouldn't be in danger by proximity."
"Yep. I figure they follow us down here in late June and their bullets will melt."
"And you still don't know their connection with Amir?"
"Only that they sent a plane for him. And warned us away from him."
"It's the first time in this case that you've run into people who seem like they could have killed Prentice Lamont," she said.
"Yeah, I noticed that too. Don't know if they did, but at least we can assume they would."
Susan had another bite of steak. I sipped some red wine. I had
finished my steak and was keeping track of what happened to the half of
her steak that she had put aside. It was still aside. I remained
hopeful.
"So what are you going to do?"
"Keep pushing," I said. "Something will pop out."
"The police can't help you?" Susan said.
I shrugged.
"We say they threatened us, they say they didn't, what are the cops going to do?"
"You wouldn't go to the police anyway," Susan said. "And certainly Hawk would not."
I didn't say anything. Susan put her knife and fork down, and folded her hands under her chin and gazed at me in silence.
"Don't let them kill you," Susan said.
"I won't," I said.
She thought for a minute, looking at me, and then said, "No, you won't, will you."
"No."
We sat and our eyes held like that for a long minute. Finally I said, "You going to eat the rest of that steak?"
She kept staring at me and then began to smile and her eyes filled
up, and then she began to laugh and the tears spilled onto her cheeks.
She managed to say, "No."
"Good," I said.
I forked the steak onto my plate and sliced off a bite.
"Do you have a plan for tomorrow?" Susan said.
She had herself back under control but her face was still flushed
the way it gets when she cries, or laughs, or both, and there was still
some wetness on her completely sensational cheekbones.
"I thought we could sleep late, have a leisurely breakfast, once
again defy the condo association for much of the afternoon, have a swim
and go for dinner at a place called the Twilight Cafe. I hear they have
a steak with black beans that you won't be able to finish…"
She was laughing again. There was a slivered edge of fear behind the laugh, but it was real laughter.
"As I think about it," she said, "I don't think anything can kill you."
"Nothing has," I said.
Chapter 51
We were lifting weights at the Harbor Health Club. Hawk in a tank
top is a fairly scary sight, and a number of the other patrons glanced
at us covertly from time to time. Hawk knew this. He never missed
anything going on around him, and while, as usual, he paid no attention
to anyone, I think it amused him. Now and then he would do something
showy like handstand push-ups, to impress the rubes.
"While you been vacationing," Hawk said, "I been detecting."
"Good," I said. "You can use the practice."
"Every Friday Amir go up to Bangor. Every Sunday he come back. So I
figure I better see what he doing up there, and I drive up to Bangor
International Airport…"
"International?" I said.
"Sure," Hawk said. "You think they hay shakers up there?"
"Well," I said. "Yes."
Hawk shook his head. He was doing some dips as he talked, and if there was any effort involved it didn't show in his voice.
"Anyway, I'm there on a Friday afternoon sitting in my car, and
about five o'clock here come Amir out of the terminal with his little
overnight case. Black Lincoln stretch limo waiting. Driver gets out,
opens the door. Amir hands him the overnight case, driver puts it on
the front seat, Amir hops in the back. You want to guess the license
number on the limo?"
"Don't remember but I'll bet it's in my notes."
"Same one," Hawk said.
"You follow them?" I said.
"Yep."
"To Beecham."
"Yep."
"Last Stand Systems, Inc."
"Yep."
"Stayed the weekend and came home Sunday night."
"Yep."
"You got any theories on what he's doing up there?" I said.
"Visiting."
"You got any thoughts on what he does while he visits?"
Hawk was doing pull-ups. He did five more after I asked the question, then let himself, down slowly and dropped to the floor.
"We know Amir is queer."
"Nice rhyme," I said.
"And we know he, ah, hyperactive."
"Nice phrase," I said. "You think he's got a boyfriend in Last Stand Systems, Inc.?"
"Somebody send the company plane down for him."
"You think it's Milo Quant?"
"There a Mrs. Quant?" Hawk said.
I didn't say anything for a minute.
"You think there's hanky-panky between Milo and Amir?"
"Amir was a white woman, what would you think?" Hawk said.
"That there was hanky-panky between Milo and Amir."
Hawk smiled.
"That what I'd think," he said.
"So," I said. "We don't want to be homophobic about this."
"So hanky-panky it is," Hawk said.
"On the other hand," I said, "you've read the literature. For the
leader of this movement to be having an affair with a gay black
militant is not just miscegenation, for crissake, it's treason."
"You right," Hawk said. "Couldn't happen. Be like J. Edgar Hoover running around in a dress."
"Exactly," I said. "Impossible."
I did some curls. Hawk worked on his triceps a little. I did some
dips. Hawk worked on his lats. Henry strolled past us and explained to
someone that the leg extension machine gave you a better workout if you
put some weight on it. He showed them how to set the weight, then he
walked back past Hawk and me without looking at us.
After a while Hawk said, "I feelin' short on electrolytes."
"Me too," I said. "Luckily Henry keeps some in his office."
We went back into Henry's office that looked out over the harbor and got some beer out of the refrigerator.
"Milo is speaking out in Fitchburg," I said. "I thought I'd go out and listen."
"Why?"
"Why not? Right now I got so little that knowing what he looks like will help."
Hawk nodded.
"I had a lover in Maine," he said, "and he coming to Fitchburg, maybe I arrange to meet him."
"Why don't you stick with Amir," I said. "And I'll tag along behind Milo Quant. And we'll see."
"Say we catch them doing the hoochie coochie," Hawk said. "What we got?"
"More than we got now," I said.
"That much," Hawk said.
"Well, we've got some stuff," I said. "We've already got Amir
connected to an outfit that is capable of pitching someone out a
window."
"True."
"What we don't have is proof that they did it, or any reason why."
"Prentice a blackmailer," Hawk said.
"Could be a reason," I said.
"Don't forget why we doing this," Hawk said.
"I know. Robinson's tenure," I said. "I think we've got enough now. But it's messy. I want it clean."
"How often you get clean?" Hawk said.
I grinned.
"Figure I'm due," I said.
Chapter 52
I was getting ready to drive out to Fitchburg when KC Roth called me on the phone.
"I'm sorry about the other day," she said.
"Un huh."
"I guess I'm a little crazy right now."
"Probably."
"It's not easy being me, you know."
"I know."
"I'm alone, I have no prospects, I need support. I guess sometimes I get a little too aggressive."
"Nothing wrong with aggressive," I said. "But you need to focus it properly."
"Easy for you to say. You're not alone."
"The question isn't whether it's easy for me to say. The question is am I right?"
"I didn't call up for you to give me advice," KC said.
"No," I said. "Of course you didn't."
"It's frankly none of your goddamned business."
"It was," I said. "But now it isn't."
"That doesn't mean I can't call. you up and have a civil conversation, does it?"
"No it doesn't," I said.
"Well fine," she said and slammed the phone down.
I seemed to be in a lovers' quarrel with someone who was not my
lover. I hung up the phone and looked at it for a moment and then got
up and went to get my car.
Fitchburg is a little working-class city of 40,000 people about
fifty miles west of Boston. It is also south of Ashby and southeast of
Winchendon and north of Leominster, and a great many people don't care
much where it is. The state college is up the hill from Route 2A. There
were signs directing me to the evening's event. When I got to the
auditorium there were several Fitchburg Police cars and at least three
blue and gray State Police cruisers parked around the place, taking all
the best spots. I parked in a slot that said Faculty Only, and walked
over to the auditorium. There were cops in the lobby, cops at the
entrances, standing around talking to each other. There were also
several Ivy League-looking guys in shirts and ties and dark suits,
clustered near the main entrance door, scanning the crowd. One of them
was the guy with the horn-rimmed glasses who had come to my office with
his associates and spoken unkindly to me and Hawk about Amir Abdullah.
He had also spoken even more brusquely to us in Beecham, Maine. I had
the impulse to step into his line of sight and say, "booga, booga," but
I was there to observe, and I usually observed better if no one was
paying any attention to me. I went in another entrance, and took a seat
in the back. The room was full. Mostly students. From their
conversations I gathered that not all of them were fans of Milo Quant.
At 7:30 Horn Rims and his fellows walked out quietly and stood at
parade rest on the floor of the auditorium between the front row of
seats and the stage. I noticed that there were state and local cops
along the walls on both sides of the auditorium. A heavyset woman in a
pale blue pants suit came onto the stage and stood behind the lectern.
She waited for a moment and when she saw that the audience wasn't going
to quiet, she began.
"I'm Margaret Dryer," she said. "I'm the dean of student affairs
here. Like many of you present I do not agree with Mr. Quant's view of
the human condition."
The audience quieted a little as she spoke.
"But I agree with his right to hold those ideas and indeed to
espouse them, however repellent I personally find them to be. That is
the meaning of free speech, and I hope each and every one of you in the
audience will respect Mr. Quant's right to free speech. There has been
talk of disruption. I have heard it, just as you have heard it. The
police are here. We have asked them to be here. We have asked them to
protect everyone's right to civil discourse. We have also asked them to
prevent any infringement on those rights, and they will do so."
She paused for a moment. The audience was quiet. Then she turned and
gestured toward the wings of the stage. "May I introduce our guest, Mr.
Milo Quant, of Last Stand Systems, Incorporated."
The audience booed the minute his name was mentioned. The booing
magnified when he strolled out from the side and replaced Dean Dryer at
the lectern. He stood silently for a time, smiling down at the
audience, allowing the roar of boos to roll over him. He was a short
fat man in a well-made blue suit, a white shirt, and a maroon silk tie.
It was hard to be sure from where I sat, but his shoes looked as if
they had lifts in them. His nose was sharp and curled a little at the
tip like the beak of a falcon. His mouth was wide with thick lips. His
face was fleshy. He, had thick eyebrows that V-ed down over the bridge
of his nose. His upturned smile was V- shaped so that he looked sort of
like a devilish Santa Claus.
The boos continued. He stood quietly, smiling. After a while the students tired. The boos dwindled. Finally it was nearly quiet.
"There," Quant said. "Feel better?"
There was some more booing, but there was also a scatter of laughter. Quant beamed down at us.
"There, I'm not such a monster now am I? Look a little like your grandfather, maybe."
Somebody laughed. Somebody yelled "Fascist."
"Do you know where the word fascist comes from?" Quant said.
He leaned slightly forward at the lectern, so that his mouth was
closer to the microphone. He let his folded hands rest quietly on top
of the lectern.
"It comes from ancient Rome. It derives from the word fasces which
refers to the symbol of Official Power, a bundle of reeds with an axe
head protruding. We at Last Stand are hardly fascists. We don't
symbolize official power. We oppose it. We oppose a government
hell-bent to dissemble my country, your country, our country. We oppose
a government which will make us not Americans, but mongrelized members
of a world government where every Arab despot and cannibal dictator may
say yea or nay to us."
He was good. The audience was listening.
"And we ask you to join us in that opposition. We are not asking of
you the sacrifices that were asked of the men who founded this country."
"And women," someone shouted. Quant smiled.
"They made their own sacrifices. But I'm talking about the men who
were asked to fight and often die for liberty. We don't ask that of
you. We ask only that you keep yourself worthy of the liberty they died
for. We ask that you keep yourself clean and straight. We ask that you
value marriage. That you respect the God of our fathers. That you honor
your ethnic purity. That you fulfill the destiny for which so many of
those men suffered and died."
He paused. They listened. He smiled warmly at us all.
"If this be treason," he said slowly, "let us make the most of it."
Some people clapped. A few hooted. Most were quiet. Quant went on.
If he spoke ill of other races and religions, if he said that all
American values were to be found only in white Christian males, he said
it obliquely, sliding it in always in terms of honor and cleanliness,
heritage, straightness, and respect.
He spoke until 8:15, and then took questions. The majority of the
questions were hostile. He handled them easily. He had heard them
before. He never said nigger, or queer, or Jew, or dyke. He managed
also to be more magnanimous than his questioner, and he always had a
gracious and convincing answer for even the most difficult questions.
His answers were largely bullshit, but they were good bullshit. I
had years ago learned that it was useless to debate zealots. They had
spent most of their adult life thinking intensely about the object of
their zealotry. Normally their debaters had not. I wanted to stand and
ask him if in fact he were wearing lifts in his shoes. But I was there
to watch and listen and I didn't want to get into it with Horn Rims or
any of the other preservers of our heritage. So I shut up. Which is a
ploy that often works well for me.
When it was over, Quant was escorted out by his keepers and the
cops. It was raining. A small group of students were standing across
the street, getting wet, chanting "Two, four, six, eight, USA can't use
your hate." I wondered why protesters so often demeaned their
deepest-held convictions by reciting them loudly in doggerel. Nobody in
Quant's party paid any attention to them. And, in fact, neither did
many people in Quant's audience. Shielded by an umbrella one of the
security guys deployed, Quant got into his black Lincoln and departed
with three bodyguards. The other security guys got into a large van.
The protesters chanted at them until they were out of sight. Then they
stood somewhat aimlessly for a few moments and then drifted away in
various directions.
I suspected that Quant hadn't convinced anyone who hadn't come
convinced. But he had made them see that he was pleasant, and that he
spoke as if what he espoused was both reasonable and kind, and they
were puzzled. And maybe they didn't enjoy doggerel much, either.
My car had a parking ticket on the windshield issued by the
Fitchburg State College Campus Police. I took it off my windshield and
tucked it carefully under the wiper of the car next to me. Then I got
in and drifted along behind Quant with the windshield wipers making
long steady sweeps across my glass, their sound like the rhythm of
music that wasn't playing.
Chapter 53
At about 10:30 with the rain coming down steadily, the Quant limo
pulled off of Route 495 near Chelmsford and into the parking lot of a
big motel that looked like the Disney version of a Norman castle. The
van kept on going. I followed Quant, and got into a slot in the next
row and watched as Milo and his bodyguard deployed umbrellas and walked
across the glistening parking lot into the hotel lobby. The place was
more hotel than motel, in that it was four stories high and entry was
through the front door. For my purposes, I would have liked the
conventional one-room one-door approach, but the more I live the more I
don't always get what I want. I sat for a while and thought. While I
was doing this Hawk opened the passenger door and slid in, the rain
beaded on his smooth head.
"Ah ha!" I said.
"Ah ha indeed, my good man," Hawk said. "The game's afoot."
"Amir," I said.
"Yowzah," Hawk said. "Rents a car this afternoon, comes out here
'bout three o'clock. I see him pull in and I take a chance and get into
the lobby 'fore he do. There a phone booth right by the desk. I'm in it
with my back turned and the phone at my ear when he gets to the desk.
He's got a reservation. He's in room four seventeen."
"Good to know," I said.
"Well, I got nothing much else to do so I hang around, sit in the
bar, read a paper, drink some Perrier with a nice wedge of lime, have a
club sandwich, drink some more Perrier and about five minutes ago in
come a group of people and one of them is our man with the horn-rimmed
glasses. They got reservations. Their rooms are four fifteen and four
nineteen."
"Either side," I said.
"Un huh."
"There were four bodyguards, right?"
"Including the limo driver," Hawk said. "Plus Quant."
"Two bodyguards in four fifteen," I said. "Two bodyguards in four nineteen. Where's Quant go?"
"Four seventeen," Hawk said. "Want to take a look?"
"Sure," I said. "Why don't I register and we can look at the room setup."
"Call from the car," Hawk said, "make sure they have a room."
I did. They did.
"Okay," I said. "Stay here. I'll call you."
I left the motor running, took a gym bag from the trunk of my car,
and walked toward the lobby. The gym bag looked right, but all it
contained were burglar tools. I checked into the lobby. They gave me
room 205. I went up and let myself in and put the gym bag on the bed
and called Hawk.
"Room two-oh-five," I said.
"Fine. Is the desk clerk a man or a woman?"
"Woman."
"Good. I'll come in tell her I'm Amir and I've lost my key."
"They often want to see ID," I said.
"She'd be scared to ask me," Hawk said. "Scared I say she racist for asking."
"And if she remembers Amir at all it'll be that he's black and so are you, so you must be him."
"Un huh."
"See you soon," I said.
And I did. In about ten minutes he knocked on the door and I let him in. He smiled at me and held up the plastic key card.
"She thought I look like Michael Jordan," Hawk said.
"You know how to play that old race card," I said. "Don't you."
"I do," Hawk said.
The room was standard B-class hotel. Tile bath and shower in the
short hall as you came in the door, king-sized bed, small table and two
chairs by the window, built-in bureau with a large television set on
top of it. The door unlocked electronically with the plastic card and
could be chain bolted from the inside. I looked at the chain bolt. The
chain was attached to the door frame by two small brass screws. I took
a small pry bar from the gym bag.
"Bolt the door," I said.
I took the room key and went out and shut the door. I heard Hawk set
the. chain bolt. I opened the door with the plastic card, slid the pry
bar in through the opening, and popped the chain loose without much
effort. I went back into the room and closed the door.
"Shouldn't be hard getting in there," I said.
"Once we in what we going to do?"
"I guess we'll ask them what they're doing here," I said. "And then we'll see what happens."
"What you want to happen?"
"I want everyone to get so percolated that they start saying things
they will later regret and we might finally know something concrete."
"And what we going to do they start hollering and the bodyguards come dashing in?"
"I thought you had that covered," I said.
"'Course I got it covered," Hawk said. "I just meant you want me to shoot them or quell them with a stern look?"
"Stern look will probably cause less ruckus," I said.
"I'll work on it," Hawk said, and we went out and took the elevator to the fourth floor.
Chapter 54
The room was half lit by the security lights that shone on the
parking lot. We could have kicked the door in while singing Verdi's
"Othello" and neither Milo nor Amir would have heard us. They were in
bed together, zonked. Hawk walked over to the bed and leveled his gun
at them. When he was in place I closed the door, found the light
switch, and turned on the lights. They slept on. Amir was on his side,
his back to Milo who lay on his back, his mouth half open, snoring
gently. Hawk put the big Magnum back under his coat. He picked up the
telephone from the bedside table and disconnected the handset and
tossed it onto one of the soft chairs by the window table. There were
dirty dishes on the table, remnants of food, glasses, and an empty
champagne bottle. There were also five small plastic pill bottles, the
kind prescriptions come in. I picked one of them up. It had no label. I
took off the top. It contained five large maroon capsules. I dumped
them out on the table. I picked up another one. Blue capsules. All five
were unlabeled. All five contained some sort of pills. I dumped all of
them out on the table.
"Recognize any of these," I said to Hawk.
He shook his head.
"Only do booze," Hawk said. "But they don't look like prescriptions."
Milo opened his eyes. They didn't focus. His mouth was still open
and he was still making soft snoring noises. Hawk took his gun back
out. Milo blinked a couple of times. He closed his mouth. He blinked a
couple more times. Then he sat bolt upright and as he did so Hawk put
the gun muzzle right up to Milo's face.
"Don't yell," Hawk said.
Milo fumbled at the bedside phone. He couldn't find the handset and couldn't seem to register that it was gone.
"Phone won't work," Hawk said.
"There's money in my wallet," Milo said in a thick voice. "In my pants pocket. On the back of that chair."
"Wake him up," I said and nodded at Amir.
Milo turned and shook Amir awake. He came back from wherever he was
even more slowly than Milo had, but after a while everyone was awake
and looking at each other.
"Tell Milo who we are," I said to Amir.
Both men had edged up into a sitting position, their backs resting
against the headboard. Both were half covered by the bedclothes. Both
their upper bodies were naked. Amir wore three thick gold chains. His
chest was black and bony. There was a lot of short curly hair on it.
Milo had no jewelry, nor hair on his chest. He was fat and pale with
blotchy pink highlights.
"They're," Amir paused, "the white one is a detective."
"Detective? Damn you, you have no right…"
Hawk tapped him gently on the forehead with the muzzle of his gun.
"Shh," Hawk said.
"Tell him what detective I am," I said.
"What detective? I don't know what…"
"I'm the detective you sent your people to threaten," I said.
"Threaten?"
I knew that Milo's brain was fuddled by whatever controlled
substance he'd been ingesting with Amir. But even so he looked
genuinely puzzled.
"Didn't he do that, Amir?" I said.
"I… how would I know?"
"Well, you and Milo seem sort of friendly," I said. "I just thought you might. So, tell him what we're doing here."
"Doing here? God, how would I know?"
"You know," I said. "Explain to Milo what we're after."
"Speak up, Amir," Hawk said.
Amir looked as if someone had taken a shot at him.
"They're after me," Amir said. "They are after me because they think I made a person lose tenure."
"Tenure?" Milo said.
"And because a kid you know got pitched out a window," I said. "Tell him about that."
"Window?" Milo said.
"It's all craziness, Milo," Amir said.
Milo looked at me and Hawk. Rallying is hard when you're half stoned, and you got no pants on, but Milo was trying.
"There are armed men in rooms on either side of us," Milo said. "If
you were to fire that revolver, they would rush in here and kill you."
Hawk smiled.
"You think?" he said.
Milo turned his head and stared at Amir.
"What is this about tenure and a person getting thrown from a window?"
"It's not anything, Milo."
"What are you doing to me, you degenerate cannibal?"
"Who are you calling degenerate?" Amir said. "I'm everything you hate and you can't stop fucking me."
Milo slapped him across the face. Amir laughed at him.
"Talk about degenerate," he said.
It came all at once. Gestalt. The whole thing. For the first time
since Hawk had come in with Robinson Nevins in the spring, I knew what
was going on. It was a feeling I wasn't used to.
"Prentice knew about you and Milo," I said to Amir.
Amir's face seemed to freeze.
"You got a lot of perks out of being a militant black man, just like
you got a lot of perks out of being a militant gay activist."
Milo had stopped looking at Amir and was looking at me.
"And Prentice caught you," I said to Amir.
He seemed to be freezing right there in front of me. Compacting as he froze, growing smaller.
"Who, pray tell, is Prentice?" Milo said.
"Kid that got thrown out the window by some of your security twerps," I said.
"I know nothing about any Prentice."
"No," I said, "you don't. Prentice Lamont ran a newspaper called
OUTrageous, which was primarily committed to outing gay men and women
who would have preferred otherwise."
Milo frowned. I knew he could identify.
"First the kid probably was doing it for philosophical reasons.
Hiding one's sexuality contributed to the belief that it was shameful.
Something high-sounding like that, but then, and I'm guessing here,
Amir started hitting on him, and the kid was flattered because Amir is
a big-deal gay guy and a leading black activist, and a professor, and
an all-around joy to contemplate."
Outside the room the rain kept coming down in the dark. The motel window was streaked with it.
"And Amir gives him the blackmail idea. Maybe he wanted a cut of it.
Maybe he wanted Prentice to think he was smart. Maybe he gets a kick
out of perverting idealism. I'd guess all of the above with the
perversion of idealism especially appealing to him, because he did it
again with Willie and Walt when he was with you, Milo, and no longer
needed the money. There's people like that, get a kick out of seducing
virgins, so to speak."
Both Milo and Amir were now watching me as if I were Scheherazade.
Hawk seemed to have faded back a little into the background. No one
made a sound. I was talking mostly to Milo now.
"Anyway the scheme was working good. Good enough for Prentice to
have accumulated two hundred fifty thousand dollars. Also, while Amir
was with Prentice, he learned that OUTrageous was investigating the
possibility that another professor at the university, Robinson Nevins,
was gay. Nevins was Amir's bitterest rival, and Amir filed that away
for future use."
The pupils in Amir's eyes seemed to have reduced to pinpoints. I spoke to him again.
"But somewhere in there you got bored with Prentice, and you dumped
him and moved on and somewhere in there you took up with Milo Quant."
Neither of them said anything.
"And Prentice was jealous, wasn't he?"
Amir shrugged, as if he were embarrassed to talk about how magnetic he was.
"And he used his OUTrageous sources and he found out who you'd left him for."
"The damned queen used to follow me," Amir said to Milo.
Milo was looking at him as if he had just discovered a Gila monster sharing his pillow.
"And that was too explosive to let out," I said. "Each of you
sexually involved with everything you hate. Hard as it is for me to
imagine it, I assume you have devotees, and your devotees would be
hysterical. It would ruin both of you."
Milo's face was mottled to an almost maroon flush. Amir was rigidly
still. It was raining harder outside. The water flooded down the motel
window in crystalline sheets.
"So you spoke to one of the bodyguards, the guy with the horn-rimmed
glasses, maybe, and they went and threw Prentice out his window, and
left a generic suicide note, and went back up to Beecham."
"I . . :" Milo Quant's voice was very hoarse, it sounded as if it
was squeezing out of a very narrow opening in his windpipe. "I knew
nothing of this."
"No," I said. "You probably didn't. Amir probably said that you
wanted it done and didn't want to know about it. Was it the guy with
the horn rims, Amir?"
Amir stood up suddenly from the bed. He was naked. Hawk moved slightly to his right between the door and Amir.
"Chuck," Milo said. "Did you have Chuck kill this boy?"
Amir stood looking around the room. He seemed unaware that he had no clothes on.
"Up to there, he'd probably have gotten away with everything, and
you and he could have waltzed to the music of time for the rest of your
lives. But he got greedy. He put out the story that the boy had killed
himself because of Robinson Nevins. That way he gets rid of the kid,
and he gets rid of a man whom he saw as a threat to his position as
boss black man at the university. And that brought Robinson's father
in. And he brought Hawk in. And Hawk brought me in and here we are. "
"Is this true, Amir?" Milo wheezed.
"No. No. No."
"You can consult with Chuck," I said. "See what he says."
Amir broke for the door.
"Let him," I said to Hawk. "How far can he get?"
Hawk smiled and Amir Abdullah, naked, burst out of the room and disappeared down the corridor.
On the bed, Milo began to blubber. I could pick out the train of his complaint at first.
"I fought it," I think he said. "I fought it day and night…
but it consumed me… it is my sin… my corruption. I gave
in to my corruption. And it has brought me to this."
The ratio of blubber to clarity diminished so quickly as he
continued that the rest seemed all blubber and I couldn't understand it.
"What I think we need here now," I said to Hawk, "is some cops."
Hawk grinned and went to the chair and picked up the handset and
reattached it to the phone. I took it and called the cops while Milo
sat in the bed with his face in his hands and sobbed.
Chapter 55
Pearl was visiting for the day. She and I had some donuts while I
read the paper, and around 10:30 in the morning I put her leash on and
took her for a stroll. As we walked down Boylston Street, I realized
that I had picked up a tail. By the time we crossed Arlington Street I
realized that the tail was KC Roth. I crossed Boylston at the light and
went into the Public Gardens. I let Pearl off her leash so she could
point pigeons and barrel fruitlessly after squirrels. KC came behind
me. I thought about what to do. Pearl spotted a duck and went into her
full point, elongating her body, sucking up her stomach, one paw
raised, head extended, tail motionless. I stopped beside her and aimed
my finger at the duck and said "Bang" loudly. The duck flew up a few
feet and resettled near the small bridge. Pearl seemed satisfied and
began tracking Devil Dog crumbs among the shrubs.
KC was still behind me. I could confront her. I could lose her. Or I
could ignore her. It was Wednesday. Susan didn't see patients on
Wednesday. She taught a seminar Wednesday mornings and took Wednesday
afternoon off. It was our day to have lunch together. I smiled-a
solution had presented itself. Pearl and I strolled and KC stalked us
until we got back to the office at 11:30. Pearl and I went up. Pearl
drank some water and then flopped on the rug. I stood and looked out my
window. KC had taken up a position across the street outside F. A. O.
Schwarz where she could gaze up at my window. I felt like the Pope.
Susan was due at noon. She arrived of course at 12:20.
"Sorry, sorry, sorry I'm late," she said.
"It's okay," I said. "You're always late. I expected you to be late."
She came over and gave me a large kiss, which, I thought, boded well
for later. When she was through kissing me she went directly to the
mirror over my washbasin and began to reapply lip gloss.
"Where shall we lunch?"
"We could go straight to my place," I said.
"Un uh," she said. "And eat about four in the afternoon?"
"We could order out," I said.
"Sure, and while we waited… ? I don't think so."
"Where would you like to go?" I said.
"Anyplace where you won't try to undress me."
"You're the one that came in here with the big kiss," I said.
"Because I love you, does that mean I have to lie down immediately on my back?"
"I think so," I said. "Though I've never been a stickler for position."
"I've noticed," Susan said. "Let's go to the Ritz Cafe."
"Sounds good," I said.
I smiled to myself.
"Why are you smiling."
"Just happy," I said.
We walked Pearl down to my place and put her in my living room. I
put fresh water in Pearl's dish, and turned on the radio so she'd have
music to listen to. She hated talk radio. Susan kissed her good-bye,
and we went out. We came back out of my apartment and turned left on
Marlborough Street and right on Arlington.
"Talk to me a minute about people who stalk people," I said.
"Sure," Susan said. "I suspect you know what I know. It is some sort
of attempt to maintain or, I suppose, acquire the feeling of power over
someone. Following a person may not give you real power, but it gives
you the feeling of it. You watch them. You know where they go, what
they do, who they see."
"Knowledge is power," I said.
"Exactly," Susan said.
"Are stalkers dangerous?" I said.
"Not necessarily. Sometimes the need for power extends to physical
coercion, sometimes not. Sometimes dirty tricks, sometimes not."
"And the purpose?"
"Fear of loss," Susan said. "A lover, say, from whom you are
estranged. You fear if she gets out of your power you'll lose her. And
the feeling of power is a way to feel as if you haven't."
We were at the corner of Commonwealth less than a block from The
Ritz when Susan spotted KC Roth. She stopped dead in her tracks and
stared at her. KC realized that Susan had seen her and tried to look as
if she were just strolling along and didn't notice us.
"What the hell is this?" Susan said to me.
"The lovely and tenacious KC Roth," I said.
"She's stalking you again?"
"Yep."
"You knew it?"
"Yep."
"And you didn't say anything?"
"I thought it would be more dramatic if you discovered her yourself."
"It is," Susan said.
She was quiet for a moment, then she turned toward KC Roth and yelled.
"KC!"
KC tried to look startled. "Susan?"
"Get over here," Susan said.
KC walked over to us.
"Susan, what are you… ?"
"Shut up," Susan said.
She jabbed at a bench on the mall.
"Sit down," she said.
Her teeth were clenched and her face was hard-edged and kind of
white except for red splotches on her cheekbones. I stood a few feet
away. Oh boy!
KC wasn't brave, but she was stupid. She stood there looking at Susan.
"Wha… ?" she said.
Susan took hold of her blouse with both hands and yanked her to the bench and slammed her onto it.
"Now listen, you asinine little shit for brains," she said with her
teeth clamped hard together. "This is the last time you bother him, you
understand?"
"Bother?"
Susan still had hold of her blouse. She pulled her close for a moment and slammed her back against the bench.
"Call, follow, whine at, see, talk to, touch, look at, annoy,
anything-you understand? Annoy him again and I will knock out every
stupid fucking tooth in your stupid fucking mouth."
KC began to cry. She twisted loose from Susan and stood up.
"I need him," she screamed at Susan. "You have no right to keep him from me, if it weren't for you…"
With her clenched fist Susan hit KC on the jaw with a left hook just
like I'd taught her, getting her shoulder into it so that the power
came from the body, not the arm. KC fell backward and sat down hard on
the bench. Her lip was bleeding.
"Are we clear?" Susan said.
KC touched her mouth and took her hand away and stared at the blood on it.
"My God, I'm bleeding," KC said.
"You'll be sleeping with the fishes, you neurotic bitch," Susan said, "if you don't stay away from him."
KC nodded, still staring at the blood on her hand.
"Say it," Susan said with such force that I was a little scared.
"I'll stay away."
"You bet you will," Susan said.
She turned and looked at me and said, "Come on," and started off
toward The Ritz at a very fast pace. I followed her. We went in the
Commonwealth Avenue entrance and across the lobby into the cafe. The
maitre d' put us in a window seat only a few inches from passersby on
Newbury Street.
"My hand hurts," Susan said.
I nodded.
"You didn't tell me that it hurts your hand to hit someone."
"Mostly," I said, "if you hit them on the face or head. It's why I try to use my forearm or elbow when I can."
"I'll try to keep it in mind."
"Were you influenced by Freud or Adler," I said, "when you gave KC a whack on the kisser."
"Wonder Woman, I think. Not very shrink-like, was I."
"No."
"Did you mind?" Susan said.
"No. I liked it," I said. "It was what I wanted to do, but felt I couldn't."
"You knew I'd blow my top," Susan said.
"I was hoping," I said.
"What do you think she'll do?" Susan said.
"Dash back to the shrink you sent her to, that she stopped going to."
"So she can report me," Susan said.
"Yep."
Susan smiled.
"So maybe it was just the right thing to do," she said.
"I'm sure it was. Will your reputation be destroyed in the psychiatric community?"
Susan smiled again, more broadly than before.
"No, my colleagues will envy me."
"Good," I said. "Want to see if they'll bring you some ice for your hand?"
"No, but they'd better rush a martini out here pretty quick," she said. "Before I'm overcome with pain."
I signaled the waiter.
"Right away, Mrs. Silverman, I sure as hell don't want to cross you. "
The drink came promptly, and a beer for me.
"You think it worked?" Susan said. "You think she'll leave you alone?"
"Oh, I'm sure it will," I said. "But you better not let word get out
about my sexual performance, or you'll be beating up beautiful women
every week."
Susan raised her glass toward me and touched the rim of it against the top of my beer bottle.
She said, "Be my pleasure, big guy."
Chapter 56
The universtiy tenure committee held Robinson Nevins'
reconsideration meeting at the university on the third straight day of
rain in late August in a room next to the president's office. It was my
first tenure meeting. The English department tenure committee, which
had originally denied Robinson tenure, had voted not to reconsider, but
the university committee, which had the right to overrule the
department committee, agreed to a second hearing. This already seemed
like several committees more than I wanted anything to do with, but
Robinson needed some testimony. Robinson, and Hawk, and I all agreed
that it was best not to turn Hawk loose among the academics.
The meeting was chaired by a professor from the Law School named
Tilhnan. I sat against the wall behind Tommy Harmon, who sat at the
conference table as Robinson's faculty advocate. Bass Maitland and
Lillian Temple were there representing the English department tenure
committee. Maitland was speaking in his large rich voice.
"So whatever ex post facto changes may have occurred in the matter
of Robinson Nevins' tenure, the department feels that a decision
arrived at in good faith should stand. To do otherwise would be to set
a precedent that most of us would regret in the years to come."
"Even though the basis for the denial of tenure turned out to be not
only unfounded but part of a criminal conspiracy?" Harmon said.
"I believe it is an alleged criminal conspiracy," Maitland said, "until a court of law reaches a judgment."
He leaned back in his chair contentedly. Lillian patted his thigh. Professor Tillman looked a little tired.
He said, "Thank you for the reminder in law, Bass. Tommy, do you have a witness for us?"
Tommy Harmon said he did and introduced me.
"This is not a court of law, and you are not under oath, Mr.
Spenser," Tillman said. "Still the business of this committee, which
today is particularly serious business, cannot proceed properly if you
do not tell the truth."
He was a spare man with a gray crew cut and half glasses. His light
tan summer suit looked a little small for him, but you could see that
he was not a rube.
"The recommendations of this committee, when they are made, are just
that, recommendations," he said. "They are not binding on the
university."
Tillman glanced over his half glasses at Bass Maitland. He didn't
change his expression, but I got the sense that he and I would agree on
Bass.
"But they are not to be cavalierly disregarded either," Tillman said. "There is considerable at stake here."
"I'll try not to lie," I said.
Tillman smiled very slightly.
"Thank you," he said. "We have all, I'm sure, read the papers, but I
would like to hear from you what you know, as succinctly as you can.
And since I am the chair of this committee, I guess I can. You may
remain seated there unless you wish otherwise."
The various professors gathered around the long conference table
shifted in their seats a little. Several of them seemed interested.
Lillian Temple and Bass Maitland looked resigned to suffering fools as
gladly as they could.
"There are police reports," I said. "Both from the Massachusetts
State Police who did some of the initial questioning, when Amir
Abdullah and Milo Quant were arrested, and from the Boston Police
Homicide Unit in whose jurisdiction the murder of Prentice Lamont took
place and to whom the state cops turned them over. I assume you all
have copies."
Everyone did.
"Okay, here's what I know."
"Excuse me," Bass Maitland said, "I think we'd all be more
comfortable if you were a bit more precise in your choice of words.
This is what you surmise."
I looked at Bass Maitland for a minute without saying anything. Then I looked back around the table.
"Okay," I said, "here's what I know."
Maitland started to say something and Tillman gestured him to be quiet.
"Prentice Lamont ran a newspaper called OUTrageous which, as the
name might imply, was in the business of outing closeted gay people. He
was also having a sexual affair with Amir Abdullah. Prentice started
out high-mindedly, hoping to improve the lot of gay Americans by
forcing prominent people who were gay to publicly proclaim themselves.
But in a while-Amir has admitted that it was his suggestion-this became
a vehicle for blackmail, and made both Amir and Prentice a considerable
profit. Amir, however, ever the romantic, lost interest in Prentice and
took up with Milo Quant, the head of an anti-gay, anti-black, anti a
whole bunch of stuff group called Last Stand Systems, Inc. Prentice,
the jilted lover, threatened to out them both if Amir didn't return to
his arms. This would work very badly for the man whose official
position was white and heterosexual. Amir was frightened about what
Milo might do, so without telling Milo, he asked a couple of Milo's
security people to shut Prentice up. He swears he thought they'd rough
Prentice up and frighten him into silence. The security guys say Amir
told them to kill Prentice. Which they did, leaving a kind of
all-purpose suicide note."
A thin wiry woman with short very curly hair raised her hand at the far end of the conference table. I nodded at her.
"Did the Last Stand whatchamacallit know about their boss and Amir?"
"No. Just the personal bodyguard. They would smuggle Amir up to a
motel near the Maine headquarters, usually, but sometimes to other
places, where he would rendezvous with Milo."
"Classic fascist ambivalence," the speaker was a small man with
longish tan hair and horn-rimmed glasses, "to lust in private after
everything they despise in public."
"You bet," I said. "So Amir decided that since he had a corpse handy, blame Robinson Nevins for it, and get a twofer."
"Excuse me?" Bass Maitland said.
"Two for one," Tillman said brusquely. "Go ahead, Mr. Spenser."
"Well, why on earth would he do that?" Maitland said.
"Amir is pretty pathological," I said. "He couldn't stand any
competition, let alone competition from a black scholar as accomplished
and as fundamentally decent as Robinson Nevins."
"Nevins never had an affair with Prentice Lamont?" the wiry woman said.
"No. Robinson isn't even gay," I said.
I looked at Lillian Temple. Her face showed nothing.
"Well, for God's sake, why didn't he say so?" Maitland said.
"Because he felt that since the charges were specious regardless of
his sexuality, proclaiming his heterosexuality was both undignified and
perhaps in some way hostile to the interests of his many gay friends."
"Bass wouldn't understand that," Harmon said.
"Tommy, please," Tillman said.
"I resent that," Maittand said.
"Bass," Tillman said.
"To prove his heterosexuality would have required women to testify
that they'd been intimate with him," I said. "Several of them were not
free to be. He declined to put them on the spot."
Again I was looking at Lillian Temple. Her appearance remained rigidly unchanged.
"My God," said the little guy with the big glasses, "he sounds like one of nature's noblemen. And we're denying him tenure?"
"Do you know who any of these women are?" the wiry woman asked.
"Yes."
"May we know?"
I shook my head. Lillian Temple's expression remained unchanged. She was so still that she was barely there.
"How do we know that this man is telling the truth?" Maitland said.
"Bass," I said, "I don't wish to appear uncouth, so I'll let it
slide that you're kind of calling me a liar. But if you do it outside
of these august proceedings, I will knock you on your Harris tweed
tookus."
Tommy Harmon chuckled. Maitland flushed.
"Mr. Spenser," Tillman's voice was like the thin edge of a piece of
ice. "Whether or not these proceedings are august, they are serious.
Bass, everything Mr. Spenser has said is corroborated in the police
reports, generally in Abdullah's own words."
"I haven't had a chance to read the reports," Maitland said sullenly.
"They were distributed three days ago. We all had the chance,"
Tillman said. "I took advantage of it, you didn't. Do you have anything
else to tell us, Mr. Spenser?"
"I have a couple of guesses. One, I think Amir was beginning to tire
of Milo. Amir's taste usually ran younger. Or maybe Milo was tiring of
Amir. Whatever, Amir proposed the blackmail scheme to Walt and Willie,
the two young men who inherited OUTrageous. He told them he didn't want
a cut. Presumably he didn't need money as long as he was with Milo. But
if he was tiring of Milo, or vice versa, or was simply insecure in the
covertness of the relationship, and was going to be on his own again,
then he'd need to supplement his teaching salary with blackmail money
as he had before, and he wanted the system in place. He also took up
with one of the young men."
"Foresighted," Tillman said.
The committee asked me maybe a dozen questions. Tommy Harmon spoke
about the injustice that they were trying to avert. Bass Maitland made
a formal statement about the danger of taking these decisions from the
hands of the department. Lillian Temple concurred.
"Are we ready for a vote?" Tillman said. They were.
"Very well," Tillman said. "Mr. Spenser, will you step outside,
please. Professors Temple, Harmon, Maitland will join him please."
All the time we stood outside in the corridor nobody said anything.
I looked at Lillian Temple. She stood as close as dignity permitted to
Bass Maitland and looked at something else. Anything else. I was sort
of hoping Bass would call me a liar again. He didn't. Maybe I could put
an eraser on my shoulder and dare him to knock it off. I thought about
explaining that to Susan afterward, and decided not to dare him.
In about twenty minutes the committee came out in ones and twos and
dispersed without saying anything to us. Tillman came out last.
"The committee has voted to recommend to the dean that Robinson Nevins be granted tenure," he said.
Tommy Harmon broke into a wide grin and shook my hand.
"You'll inform Robinson?" I said.
"Right now," he said and walked away.
Bass Maitland and Lillian Temple were still there. He began to walk away. She lingered for a moment behind him.
"Well," she said. "It looks like you've won."
"Yes," I said. "It looks like I have."
"Congratulations."
"Thanks," I said.
"I…" She paused for a long time. I waited. Finally she shook her head and turned and started after Maitland.
"Sleep warm," I said.
Chapter 57
Apparently it was going to rain forever. But today, so it shouldn't
be boring, there was thunder and lightning as well. I was standing at
my window watching the rainwater overwhelm the storm drains and back up
over the sidewalk on Berkeley Street. A long streak of lightning
razz-ma-tazzed across the sky, followed hard upon by thunder. It was
early, people were on their way to work. Below me a scatter of colorful
umbrella tops was bright against the gleaming wet pavement. Flowers on
a dark wet field.
Behind me someone knocked on my office door. I turned away from the storm and looked at the door.
"Come in," I said.
A fat guy with his hat on backward came in.
"You Spenser?" he said.
"Yes."
"Got a couch here."
"A couch?"
"Yeah, where you want it."
"I didn't buy a couch," I said.
"Well, somebody did, says here your name, this address."
"Does it say who bought it?"
"Nope. Got a phone number though."
He read it to me. It was Susan's.
"Put it next to the door," I said.
He went back out and in a minute he came in with one end of a couch
wrapped in plastic. At the other end was a tall thin black man who was
probably Haitian. They put the couch down, the Haitian man took the
plastric wrap off it. The fat guy with the hat got my signature on the
slip and they left. I closed the door and looked at the couch. It was
very manly looking, brass studs, dark green leather, and long. I tried
stretching out on it. Nap-able. I got up and went back and looked at
the weather some more. More lightning jittered past. Behind me the door
opened. It was Susan wearing a scarlet silk raincoat and a big hat. She
had a large bag of something with her. As soon as she got inside she
turned and studied the couch.
"Cute, cute, cute, cute, cute," she said.
"Five cutes," I said. "You look like the rain goddess."
"I know," she said. "Do we love our new couch?"
"Cute, cute, cute, cute, cute," I said.
"You've got the phrasing all wrong," she said. "You pause after the second cute, then rattle off the last three rapidly."
"I'll work on it," I said. "What's in the bag?"
"Eats," she said. "In case you've not had breakfast."
"I can always use another breakfast," I said.
"Egg salad sandwiches," Susan said, as she took things out of the
bag, and put them on my desk. "On light rye, coffee, and some adorable
little Key lime cookies."
"Excellent choices," I said. "Why do I have a new couch in my office?"
"You need one," Susan said.
She put napkins out and unwrapped one of the sandwiches. It was cut in quarters.
"Be nice for Pearl," I said, "next bring your dog to work day."
"Yes, she hates sleeping on the floor."
"Me too," I said. "How come you're not working?"
"I canceled my appointments today, I thought we needed to celebrate."
"Have I missed an anniversary date?" I said.
"No. I just think you've done a hell of a job in some very messy cases that your friends got you into."
The room brightened for a moment as thunder chased lightning past the window. I had a bite of sandwich and a sip of coffee.
"You being one of the friends?" I said.
"And Hawk being the other."
"What are friends for?"
"And Hawk's friend got tenure?" Susan said.
"Yes."
"And Amir whatsisname is going to jail?"
"Pretty sure. Couple of state cops found him hiding naked, trying to
get out of the rain, in a culvert under 495. Soon as they got him into
the car he started blaming Milo for all his troubles, and along the way
confessed to everything. Which works out great because Milo is blaming
everything on Amir."
"What about Milo?" Susan said.
"He appears eager to testify against Amir, and the two security guys who tossed Prentice out the window."
"Will he go to jail?"
"I believe him that he didn't know about the Lamont murder," I said.
"And since it's not illegal to be a racist gay homophobe, I assume that
if the DA believes him, he'll walk when he gets through testifying. His
future as a charismatic leader seems grim, though."
We ate a little more sandwich and watched a little more lightning and listened to a little more thunder.
"I know the meteorological explanations," I said to Susan, "and I
believe them. But it's hard not to think of the gods during a
thunderstorm."
"I know," she said. "And Robinson wasn't even gay."
"Nope."
"But he wouldn't say so."
"Nope."
"That's either great integrity or great foolishness."
"Integrity is often foolish," I said.
She smiled at me and I was thrilled.
"Of course it is," she said. "I understand from sources that KC Roth has gone back to her therapist in Providence."
"Just needed a little professional intervention," I said.
"Didn't you tell me that she asked if you'd ever had sex in the office?"
"Yes."
"And you said you didn't want to do so on the floor, and were waiting for a couch."
"Why, yes," I said.
Susan smiled again. Not the smile of approval, which thrilled me,
but the smile of promise which could easily launch a thousand ships.
"I believe I see a pattern emerging," I said.
"You're a trained observer," Susan said. "Do you mind making love after you've eaten?"
"After, before, during, instead of-whatever the schedule calls for."
Susan got up and went to my door and locked it. Then she took off
her raincoat and hung it on the coatrack. She took her hat off and put
it on top of my file cabinet. She slipped her dress over her head, and
hung it on a hanger on the rack, taking time to smooth out any
wrinkles. She fluffed her hair carefully. Then she turned and smiled at
me and finished undressing. She picked up the big hat and put it on.
"Shall we try the couch?" she said.
"With the hat on?" I said.
"Special effects," Susan said.
"Works for me," I said.
The hat was on the floor shortly after we began. The storm made the
room sort of dim, except when the lightning made it brilliant. The rain
was thick on the window. By the time we finished we were on the floor
beside the hat.
"So much for the new couch," I said.
Susan pressed her face into my neck as if her nose were cold.
"So much for KC Roth," she said.
And we lay there with our arms around each other and laughed while the thunder and lightning frolicked with the rain outside.